BEGIN:VCALENDAR
VERSION:2.0
PRODID:-//InvisionCommunity Events 4.7.23//EN
METHOD:PUBLISH
CALSCALE:GREGORIAN
REFRESH-INTERVAL:PT15M
X-PUBLISHED-TTL:PT15M
X-WR-CALNAME:RMCommunityCalendar
NAME:RMCommunityCalendar
BEGIN:VTIMEZONE
TZID:Europe/London
TZURL:http://tzurl.org/zoneinfo/Europe/London
X-LIC-LOCATION:Europe/London
BEGIN:DAYLIGHT
TZOFFSETFROM:+0000
TZOFFSETTO:+0100
TZNAME:BST
DTSTART:20250330T020000Z
RRULE:FREQ=YEARLY;BYMONTH=3;BYDAY=-1SU
END:DAYLIGHT
BEGIN:STANDARD
TZOFFSETFROM:+0100
TZOFFSETTO:+0000
TZNAME:GMT
DTSTART:20251026T020000Z
RRULE:FREQ=YEARLY;BYMONTH=10;BYDAY=-1SU
END:STANDARD
END:VTIMEZONE
BEGIN:VEVENT
SUMMARY:Francis Johnson Webb born 1828
DTSTAMP:20250806T001859Z
SEQUENCE:0
UID:444-7-c3fe8195a3dde498d013e477e2142422@aalbc.com
ORGANIZER;CN="richardmurray":troy@aalbc.com
DESCRIPTION:\n	Francis Johnson Webb was a grandson of Aaron Burr\, yes t
	he one who shot Hamilton.\n\n\n\n	Webb wrote The Garies and Their Friends
	 (1857)\n\n\n\n	 \n\n\n\n	Language: English\n\nCredits: Produced by Suza
	nne Shell\, Beth Scott and PG Distributed Proofreaders\n\n*** START OF THE
	 PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GARIES AND THEIR FRIENDS ***\nProduced by Suz
	anne Shell\, Beth Scott and PG Distributed Proofreaders\n\nTHE GARIES\nAND
	\nTHEIR FRIENDS\nFrank J. Webb\n\n1857\n\nPreface by Harriet Beecher Stowe
	\n\nTO THE\nLADY NOEL BYRON\nTHIS BOOK\nIS\, BY HER KIND PERMISSION\,\nMOS
	T AFFECTIONATELY INSCRIBED\,\nWITH PROFOUND RESPECT\,\nBY HER GRATEFUL FRI
	END\,\nTHE AUTHOR.\nPREFACE.\nThe book which now appears before the public
	 may be of interest in relation to a question which the late agitation of 
	the subject of slavery has raised in many thoughtful minds\; viz.—Are th
	e race at present held as slaves capable of freedom\, self-government\, an
	d progress?\n\nThe author is a coloured young man\, born and reared in the
	 city of\nPhiladelphia.\n\nThis city\, standing as it does on the frontier
	 between free and slave territory\, has accumulated naturally a large popu
	lation of the mixed and African race.\n\nBeing one of the nearest free cit
	ies of any considerable size to the slave territory\, it has naturally bee
	n a resort of escaping fugitives\, or of emancipated slaves.\n\nIn this ci
	ty they form a large class—have increased in numbers\, wealth\, and stan
	ding—they constitute a peculiar society of their own\, presenting many s
	ocial peculiarities worthy of interest and attention.\n\nThe representatio
	ns of their positions as to wealth and education are reliable\, the incide
	nts related are mostly true ones\, woven together by a slight web of ficti
	on.\n\nThe scenes of the mob describe incidents of a peculiar stage of exc
	itement\, which existed in the city of Philadelphia years ago\, when the f
	irst agitation of the slavery question developed an intense form of opposi
	tion to the free coloured people.\n\nSouthern influence at that time stimu
	lated scenes of mob violence in several Northern cities where the discussi
	on was attempted. By prompt\, undaunted resistance\, however\, this spirit
	 was subdued\, and the right of free inquiry established\; so that discuss
	ion of the question\, so far from being dangerous in Free States\, is now 
	begun to be allowed in the Slave States\; and there are some subjects the 
	mere discussion of which is a half-victory.\n\nThe author takes pleasure i
	n recommending this simple and truthfully-told story to the attention and 
	interest of the friends of progress and humanity in England.\n\n(Signed) H
	.B. Stowe.\n\nANDOVER\, U.S.\,\nAugust 17\, 1857.\n\nFROM LORD BROUGHAM.\n
	I have been requested by one who has long known the deep interest I have e
	ver taken in the cause of Freedom\, and in the elevation of the coloured r
	ace\, to supply a few lines of introduction to Mr. Webb's book.\n\nIt was 
	the intention of Mrs. Harriet Beecher Stowe to introduce this work to the 
	British public\, but I am truly sorry to learn that a severe domestic affl
	iction\, since her return to America\, has postponed the fulfilment of her
	 promise.\n\nI am\, however\, able to state her opinion of the book\, expr
	essed in a letter to one of her friends.\n\nShe says:—\"There are points
	 in the book of which I think very highly. The style is simple and unambit
	ious—the characters\, most of them faithfully drawn from real life\, are
	 quite fresh\, and the incident\, which is also much of it fact\, is often
	 deeply interesting.\n\n\"I shall do what I can with the preface. I would 
	not do as much unless I thought the book of worth in itself. It shows what
	 I long have wanted to show\; what the free people of colour do attain\, a
	nd what they can do in spite of all social obstacles.\"\n\nI hope and trus
	t that Mr. Webb's book will meet with all the success to which its own mer
	it\, and the great interest of the subject\, so well entitle it. On this\,
	 Mrs. Stowe's authority is naturally of the greatest weight\; and I can on
	ly lament that this prefatory notice does not come accompanied with her fu
	rther remarks and illustrations.\n\n4\, Grafton-street\, July 29\, 1857.\n
	\n* * * * *\n\nNote.—Since the above was written\, the preface by Mrs. S
	towe has been received. It was deemed best\, however\, to still retain the
	 introduction so kindly given by Lord Brougham\, whose deep interest in th
	e freedom and welfare of the African race none feel more grateful for than
	 does the author of the following pages.\n\nCONTENTS\n1.—In which the Re
	ader is introduced to a Family of Peculiar Construction\n\n2.—A Glance a
	t the Ellis Family\n\n3.—Charlie's Trials\n\n4.—In which Mr. Winston f
	inds an Old Friend\n\n5.—The Garies decide on a Change\n\n6.—Pleasant 
	News\n\n7.—Mrs. Thomas has her Troubles\n\n8.—Trouble in the Ellis Fam
	ily\n\n9.—Breaking up\n\n10.—Another Parting\n\n11.—The New Home\n
	\n12.—Mr. Garie's Neighbour\n\n13.—Hopes consummated\n\n14.—Charlie 
	at Warmouth\n\n15.—Mrs. Stevens gains a Triumph\n\n16.—Mr. Stevens mak
	es a Discovery\n\n17.—Plotting\n\n18.—Mr. Stevens falls into Bad Hands
	\n\n19.—The Alarm\n\n20.—The Attack\n\n21.—More Horrors\n\n22.—An 
	Anxious Day\n\n23.—The Lost One Found\n\n24.—Charlie distinguishes him
	self\n\n25.—The Heir\n\n26.—Home again\n\n27.—Sudbury\n\n28.—Charl
	ie seeks Employment\n\n29.—Clouds and Sunshine\n\n30.—Many Years after
	\n\n31.—The Thorn rankles\n\n32.—Dear Old Ess again\n\n33.—The Fatal
	 Discovery\n\n34.—\"Murder will out\"\n\n35.—The Wedding\n\n36.—And 
	the Last\n\nCHAPTER I.\nIn which the Reader is introduced to a Family of p
	eculiar Construction.\n\nIt was at the close of an afternoon in May\, that
	 a party might have been seen gathered around a table covered with all tho
	se delicacies that\, in the household of a rich Southern planter\, are reg
	arded as almost necessaries of life. In the centre stood a dish of ripe st
	rawberries\, their plump red sides peeping through the covering of white s
	ugar that had been plentifully sprinkled over them. Geeche limes\, almost 
	drowned in their own rich syrup\, temptingly displayed their bronze-colour
	ed forms just above the rim of the glass that contained them. Opposite\, a
	nd as if to divert the gaze from lingering too long over their luscious be
	auty\, was a dish of peaches preserved in brandy\, a never-failing article
	 in a Southern matron's catalogues of sweets. A silver basket filled with 
	a variety of cakes was in close proximity to a plate of corn-flappers\, wh
	ich were piled upon it like a mountain\, and from the brown tops of which 
	trickled tiny rivulets of butter. All these dainties\, mingling their vari
	ous odours with the aroma of the tea and fine old java that came steaming 
	forth from the richly chased silver pots\, could not fail to produce a ver
	y appetising effect.\n\nThere was nothing about Mr. Garie\, the gentleman 
	who sat at the head of the table\, to attract more than ordinary attention
	. He had the ease of manner usual with persons whose education and associa
	tions have been of a highly refined character\, and his countenance\, on t
	he whole\, was pleasing\, and indicative of habitual good temper.\n\nOppos
	ite to him\, and presiding at the tea-tray\, sat a lady of marked beauty. 
	The first thing that would have attracted attention on seeing her were her
	 gloriously dark eyes. They were not entirely black\, but of that seemingl
	y changeful hue so often met with in persons of African extraction\, which
	 deepens and lightens with every varying emotion. Hers wore a subdued expr
	ession that sank into the heart and at once riveted those who saw her. Her
	 hair\, of jetty black\, was arranged in braids\; and through her light-br
	own complexion the faintest tinge of carmine was visible. As she turned to
	 take her little girl from the arms of the servant\, she displayed a fine 
	profile and perfectly moulded form. No wonder that ten years before\, when
	 she was placed upon the auction-block at Savanah\, she had brought so hig
	h a price. Mr. Garie had paid two thousand dollars for her\, and was the e
	nvy of all the young bucks in the neighbourhood who had competed with him 
	at the sale. Captivated by her beauty\, he had esteemed himself fortunate 
	in becoming her purchaser\; and as time developed the goodness of her hear
	t\, and her mind enlarged through the instructions he assiduously gave her
	\, he found the connection that might have been productive of many evils\,
	 had proved a boon to both\; for whilst the astonishing progress she made 
	in her education proved her worthy of the pains he took to instruct her\, 
	she returned threefold the tenderness and affection he lavished upon her.\
	n\nThe little girl in her arms\, and the boy at her side\, showed no trace
	 whatever of African origin. The girl had the chestnut hair and blue eyes 
	of her father\; but the boy had inherited the black hair and dark eyes of 
	his mother. The critically learned in such matters\, knowing his parentage
	\, might have imagined they could detect the evidence of his mother's race
	\, by the slightly mezzo-tinto expression of his eyes\, and the rather Afr
	ican fulness of his lips\; but the casual observer would have passed him b
	y without dreaming that a drop of negro blood coursed through his veins. H
	is face was expressive of much intelligence\, and he now seemed to listen 
	with an earnest interest to the conversation that was going on between his
	 father and a dark-complexioned gentleman who sat beside him.\n\n\"And so 
	you say\, Winston\, that they never suspected you were coloured?\"\n\n\"I 
	don't think they had the remotest idea of such a thing. At least\, if they
	 did\, they must have conquered their prejudices most effectually\, for th
	ey treated me with the most distinguished consideration. Old Mr. Priestly 
	was like a father to me\; and as for his daughter Clara and her aunt\, the
	y were politeness embodied. The old gentleman was so much immersed in busi
	ness\, that he was unable to bestow much attention upon me\; so he turned 
	me over to Miss Clara to be shown the lions. We went to the opera\, the th
	eatre\, to museums\, concerts\, and I can't tell where all. The Sunday bef
	ore I left I accompanied her to church\, and after service\, as we were co
	ming out\, she introduced me to Miss Van Cote and her mamma. Mrs. Van Cote
	 was kind enough to invite me to her grand ball.\"\n\n\"And did you go?\" 
	interrupted Mr. Garie.\n\n\"Of course\, I did—and what is more\, as old 
	Mr. Priestly has given up balls\, he begged me to escort Clara and her aun
	t.\"\n\n\"Well\, Winston\, that is too rich\,\" exclaimed Mr. Garie\, slap
	ping his hand on the table\, and laughing till he was red in the face\; \"
	too good\, by Jove! Oh! I can't keep that. I must write to them\, and say 
	I forgot to mention in my note of introduction that you were a coloured ge
	ntleman. The old man will swear till everything turns blue\; and as for Cl
	ara\, what will become of her? A Fifth-avenue belle escorted to church and
	 to balls by a coloured gentleman!\" Here Mr. Garie indulged in another bu
	rst of laughter so side-shaking and merry\, that the contagion spread even
	 to the little girl in Mrs. Garie's arms\, who almost choked herself with 
	the tea her mother was giving her\, and who had to be hustled and shaken f
	or some time before she could be brought round again.\n\n\"It will be a gr
	eat triumph for me\,\" said Mr. Garie. \"The old man prides himself on bei
	ng able to detect evidences of the least drop of African blood in any one\
	; and makes long speeches about the natural antipathy of the Anglo-Saxon t
	o anything with a drop of negro blood in its veins. Oh\, I shall write him
	 a glorious letter expressing my pleasure at his great change of sentiment
	\, and my admiration of the fearless manner in which he displays his conte
	mpt for public opinion. How he will stare! I fancy I see him now\, with hi
	s hair almost on end with disgust. It will do him good: it will convince h
	im\, I hope\, that a man can be a gentleman even though he has African blo
	od in his veins. I have had a series of quarrels with him\,\" continued Mr
	. Garie\; \"I think he had his eye on me for Miss Clara\, and that makes h
	im particularly fierce about my present connection. He rather presumes on 
	his former great intimacy with my father\, and undertakes to lecture me oc
	casionally when opportunity is afforded. He was greatly scandalized at my 
	speaking of Emily as my wife\; and seemed to think me cracked because I ta
	lked of endeavouring to procure a governess for my children\, or of sendin
	g them abroad to be educated. He has a holy horror of everything approachi
	ng to amalgamation\; and of all the men I ever met\, cherishes the most un
	christian prejudice against coloured people. He says\, the existence of \"
	a gentleman\" with African blood in his veins\, is a moral and physical im
	possibility\, and that by no exertion can anything be made of that descrip
	tion of people. He is connected with a society for the deportation of free
	 coloured people\, and thinks they ought to be all sent to Africa\, unless
	 they are willing to become the property of some good master.\"\n\n\"Oh\, 
	yes\; it is quite a hobby of his\,\" here interposed Mr. Winston. \"He mak
	es lengthy speeches on the subject\, and has published two of them in pamp
	hlet form. Have you seen them?\"\n\n\"Yes\, he sent them to me. I tried to
	 get through one of them\, but it was too heavy\, I had to give it up. Bes
	ides\, I had no patience with them\; they abounded in mis-statements respe
	cting the free coloured people. Why even here in the slave states—in the
	 cities of Savanah and Charleston—they are much better situated than he 
	describes them to be in New York\; and since they can and do prosper here\
	, where they have such tremendous difficulties to encounter\, I know they 
	cannot be in the condition he paints\, in a state where they are relieved 
	from many of the oppressions they labour under here. And\, on questioning 
	him on the subject\, I found he was entirely unacquainted with coloured pe
	ople\; profoundly ignorant as to the real facts of their case. He had neve
	r been within a coloured church or school\; did not even know that they ha
	d a literary society amongst them. Positively\, I\, living down here in Ge
	orgia\, knew more about the character and condition of the coloured people
	 of the Northern States\, than he who lived right in the midst of them. Wo
	uld you believe that beyond their laundress and a drunken negro that they 
	occasionally employed to do odd jobs for them\, they were actually unacqua
	inted with any coloured people: and how unjust was it for him to form his 
	opinion respecting a class numbering over twenty thousand in his own state
	\, from the two individuals I have mentioned and the negro loafers he occa
	sionally saw in the streets.\"\n\n\"It is truly unfortunate\,\" rejoined M
	r. Winston\, \"for he covers his prejudices with such a pretended regard f
	or the coloured people\, that a person would be the more readily led to be
	lieve his statements respecting them to be correct\; and he is really so p
	ositive about it\, and apparently go deaf to all argument that I did not d
	iscuss the subject with him to any extent\; he was so very kind to me that
	 I did not want to run a tilt against his favourite opinions.\"\n\n\"You w
	rote me he gave you letters to Philadelphia\; was there one amongst them t
	o the Mortons?\"\n\n\"Yes. They were very civil and invited me to a grand 
	dinner they gave to the Belgian Charge d'Affaires. I also met there one or
	 two scions of the first families of Virginia. The Belgian minister did no
	t seem to be aware that slavery is a tabooed subject in polite circles\, a
	nd he was continually bringing it forward until slaves\, slavery\, and bla
	ck people in general became the principal topic of conversation\, relieved
	 by occasional discussion upon some new book or pictures\, and remarks in 
	praise of the viands before us. A very amusing thing occurred during dinne
	r. A bright-faced little coloured boy who was assisting at the table\, see
	med to take uncommon interest in the conversation. An animated discussion 
	had arisen as to the antiquity of the use of salad\, one party maintaining
	 that one of the oldest of the English poets had mentioned it in a poem\, 
	and the other as stoutly denying it. At last a reverend gentleman\, whose 
	remarks respecting the intelligence of the children of Ham had been partic
	ularly disparaging\, asserted that nowhere in Chaucer\, Spencer\, nor any 
	of the old English poets could anything relating to it be found. At this\,
	 the little waiter became so excited that he could no longer contain himse
	lf\, and\, despite the frowns and nods of our hostess\, exclaimed\, 'Yes i
	t can\, it's in Chaucer\; here\,' he continued\, taking out a book from th
	e book-case\, 'here is the very volume\,'[*] and turning over the leaves h
	e pointed out the passage\, to the great chagrin of the reverend gentleman
	\, and to the amusement of the guests. The Belgian minister enjoyed it imm
	ensely. 'Ah\,' said he\, 'the child of Ham know more than the child of She
	m\, dis time.' Whereupon Mrs. Morton rejoined that in this case it was not
	 so wonderful\, owing to the frequent and intimate relations into which ha
	m and salad were brought\, and with this joke the subject was dismissed. I
	 can't say I was particularly sorry when the company broke up.\"\n\n[Footn
	ote * See Chaucer\, \"Flower and the Leaf.\"]\n\n\"Oh\, George\, never min
	d the white people\,\" here interposed Mrs. Garie. \"Never mind them\; tel
	l us about the coloured folks\; they are the ones I take the most interest
	 in. We were so delighted with your letters\, and so glad that you found M
	rs. Ellis. Tell us all about that.\"\n\n\"Oh\, 'tis a long story\, Em\, an
	d can't be told in a minute\; it would take the whole evening to relate it
	 all.\"\n\n\"Look at the children\, my dear\, they are half asleep\,\" sai
	d Mr. Garie. \"Call nurse and see them safe into bed\, and when you come b
	ack we will have the whole story.\"\n\n\"Very well\;\" replied she\, risin
	g and calling the nurse. \"Now remember\, George\, you are not to begin un
	til I return\, for I should be quite vexed to lose a word.\"\n\n\"Oh\, go 
	on with the children\, my dear\, I'll guarantee he shall not say a word on
	 the subject till you come back.\"\n\nWith this assurance Mrs. Garie left 
	the room\, playfully shaking her finger at them as she went out\, exclaimi
	ng\, \"Not a word\, remember now\, not a word.\"\n\nAfter she left them Mr
	. Garie remarked\, \"I have not seen Em as happy as she is this afternoon 
	for some time. I don't know what has come over her lately\; she scarcely e
	ver smiles now\, and yet she used to be the most cheerful creature in the 
	world. I wish I knew what is the matter with her\; sometimes I am quite di
	stressed about her. She goes about the house looking so lost and gloomy\, 
	and does not seem to take the least interest in anything. You saw\,\" cont
	inued he\, \"how silent she has been all tea time\, and yet she has been m
	ore interested in what you have been saying than in anything that has tran
	spired for months. Well\, I suppose women will be so sometimes\,\" he conc
	luded\, applying himself to the warm cakes that had just been set upon the
	 table.\n\n\"Perhaps she is not well\,\" suggested Mr. Winston\, \"I think
	 she looks a little pale.\"\n\n\"Well\, possibly you may be right\, but I 
	trust it is only a temporary lowness of spirits or something of that kind.
	 Maybe she will get over it in a day or two\;\" and with this remark the c
	onversation dropped\, and the gentlemen proceeded to the demolition of the
	 sweetmeats before them. And now\, my reader\, whilst they are finishing t
	heir meal\, I will relate to you who Mr. Winston is\, and how he came to b
	e so familiarly seated at Mr. Garie's table.\n\nMr. Winston had been a sla
	ve. Yes! that fine-looking gentleman seated near Mr. Garie and losing noth
	ing by the comparison that their proximity would suggest\, had been fiftee
	n years before sold on the auction-block in the neighbouring town of Savan
	ah—had been made to jump\, show his teeth\, shout to test his lungs\, an
	d had been handled and examined by professed negro traders and amateur buy
	ers\, with less gentleness and commiseration than every humane man would f
	eel for a horse or an ox. Now do not doubt me—I mean that very gentleman
	\, whose polished manners and irreproachable appearance might have led you
	 to suppose him descended from a long line of illustrious ancestors. Yes
	—he was the offspring of a mulatto field-hand by her master. He who was 
	now clothed in fine linen\, had once rejoiced in a tow shirt that scarcely
	 covered his nakedness\, and had sustained life on a peck of corn a week\,
	 receiving the while kicks and curses from a tyrannical overseer.\n\nThe d
	eath of his master had brought him to the auction-block\, from which\, bot
	h he and his mother were sold to separate owners. There they took their la
	st embrace of each other—the mother tearless\, but heart-broken—the bo
	y with all the wildest manifestations of grief.\n\nHis purchaser was a cot
	ton broker from New Orleans\, a warm-hearted\, kind old man\, who took a f
	ancy to the boy's looks\, and pitied him for his unfortunate separation fr
	om his mother. After paying for his new purchase\, he drew him aside\, and
	 said\, in a kind tone\, \"Come\, my little man\, stop crying\; my boys ne
	ver cry. If you behave yourself you shall have fine times with me. Stop cr
	ying now\, and come with me\; I am going to buy you a new suit of clothes.
	\"\n\n\"I don't want new clothes—I want my mammy\,\" exclaimed the child
	\, with a fresh burst of grief.\n\n\"Oh dear me!\" said the fussy old gent
	leman\, \"why can't you stop—I don't want to hear you cry. Here\,\" cont
	inued he\, fumbling in his pocket—\"here's a picayune.\"\n\n\"Will that 
	buy mother back?\" said the child brightening up.\n\n\"No\, no\, my little
	 man\, not quite—I wish it would. I'd purchase the old woman\; but I can
	't—I'm not able to spare the money.\"\n\n\"Then I don't want it\,\" crie
	d the boy\, throwing the money on the ground. \"If it won't buy mammy\, I 
	don't want it. I want my mammy\, and nothing else.\"\n\nAt length\, by muc
	h kind language\, and by the prospect of many fabulous events to occur her
	eafter\, invented at the moment by the old gentleman\, the boy was coaxed 
	into a more quiescent state\, and trudged along in the rear of Mr. Moyes
	e—that was the name of his purchaser—to be fitted with the new suit of
	 clothes.\n\nThe next morning they started by the stage for Augusta. Georg
	e\, seated on the box with the driver\, found much to amuse him\; and the 
	driver's merry chat and great admiration of George's new and gaily-bedizen
	ed suit\, went a great way towards reconciling that young gentleman to his
	 new situation.\n\nIn a few days they arrived in New Orleans. There\, unde
	r the kind care of Mr. Moyese\, he began to exhibit great signs of intelli
	gence. The atmosphere into which he was now thrown\, the kindness of which
	 he was hourly the recipient\, called into vigour abilities that would hav
	e been stifled for ever beneath the blighting influences that surrounded h
	im under his former master. The old gentleman had him taught to read and w
	rite\, and his aptness was such as to highly gratify the kind old soul.\n\
	nIn course of time\, the temporary absence of an out-door clerk caused Geo
	rge's services to be required at the office for a few days\, as errand-boy
	. Here he made himself so useful as to induce Mr. Moyese to keep him there
	 permanently. After this he went through all the grades from errand-boy up
	 to chief-clerk\, which post he filled to the full satisfaction of his emp
	loyer. His manners and person improved with his circumstances\; and at the
	 time he occupied the chief-clerk's desk\, no one would have suspected him
	 to be a slave\, and few who did not know his history would have dreamed t
	hat he had a drop of African blood in his veins. He was unremitting in his
	 attention to the duties of his station\, and gained\, by his assiduity an
	d amiable deportment\, the highest regard of his employer.\n\nA week befor
	e a certain New-year's-day\, Mr. Moyese sat musing over some presents that
	 had just been sent home\, and which he was on the morrow to distribute am
	ongst his nephews and nieces. \"Why\, bless me!\" he suddenly exclaimed\, 
	turning them over\, \"why\, I've entirely forgotten George! That will neve
	r do\; I must get something for him. What shall it be? He has a fine watch
	\, and I gave him a pin and ring last year. I really don't know what will 
	be suitable\,\" and he sat for some time rubbing his chin\, apparently in 
	deep deliberation. \"Yes\, I'll do it!\" he exclaimed\, starting up\; \"I'
	ll do it! He has been a faithful fellow\, and deserves it. I'll make him a
	 present of himself! Now\, how strange it is I never thought of that befor
	e—it's just the thing\;—how surprised and delighted he will be!\" and 
	the old gentleman laughed a low\, gentle\, happy laugh\, that had in it so
	 little of selfish pleasure\, that had you only heard him you must have lo
	ved him for it.\n\nHaving made up his mind to surprise George in this agre
	eable manner\, Mr. Moyese immediately wrote a note\, which he despatched t
	o his lawyers\, Messrs. Ketchum and Lee\, desiring them to make out a set 
	of free papers for his boy George\, and to have them ready for delivery on
	 the morrow\, as it was his custom to give his presents two or three days 
	in advance of the coming year.\n\nThe note found Mr. Ketchum deep in a dis
	puted will case\, upon the decision of which depended the freedom of some 
	half-dozen slaves\, who had been emancipated by the will of their late mas
	ter\; by which piece of posthumous benevolence his heirs had been greatly 
	irritated\, and were in consequence endeavouring to prove him insane.\n\n\
	"Look at that\, Lee\,\" said he\, tossing the note to his partner\; \"if t
	hat old Moyese isn't the most curious specimen of humanity in all New Orle
	ans! He is going to give away clear fifteen hundred dollars as a New-year'
	s gift!\"\n\n\"To whom?\" asked Mr. Lee.\n\n\"He has sent me orders\,\" re
	plied Mr. Ketchum\, \"to make out a set of free papers for his boy George.
	\"\n\n\"Well\, I can't say that I see so much in that\,\" said Lee\; \"how
	 can he expect to keep him? George is almost as white as you or I\, and ha
	s the manners and appearance of a gentleman. He might walk off any day wit
	hout the least fear of detection.\"\n\n\"Very true\,\" rejoined Ketchum\, 
	\"but I don't think he would do it. He is very much attached to the old ge
	ntleman\, and no doubt would remain with him as long as the old man lives.
	 But I rather think the heirs would have to whistle for him after Moyese w
	as put under ground. However\,\" concluded Mr. Ketchum\, \"they won't have
	 much opportunity to dispute the matter\, as he will be a free man\, no do
	ubt\, before he is forty-eight hours older.\"\n\nA day or two after this\,
	 Mr. Moyese entertained all his nephews and nieces at dinner\, and each wa
	s gratified with some appropriate gift. The old man sat happily regarding 
	the group that crowded round him\, their faces beaming with delight. The c
	laim for the seat of honour on Uncle Moyese's knee was clamorously dispute
	d\, and the old gentleman was endeavouring to settle it to the satisfactio
	n of all parties\, when a servant entered\, and delivered a portentous-loo
	king document\, tied with red tape. \"Oh\, the papers—now\, my dears\, l
	et uncle go. Gustave\, let go your hold of my leg\, or I can't get up. Amy
	\, ring the bell\, dear.\" This operation Mr. Moyese was obliged to lift h
	er into the chair to effect\, where she remained tugging at the bell-rope 
	until she was lifted out again by the servant\, who came running in great 
	haste to answer a summons of such unusual vigour.\n\n\"Tell George I want 
	him\,\" said Mr. Moyese.\n\n\"He's gone down to the office\; I hearn him s
	ay suffin bout de nordern mail as he went out—but I duno what it was\"
	—and as he finished he vanished from the apartment\, and might soon afte
	r have been seen with his mouth in close contact with the drumstick of a t
	urkey.\n\nMr. Moyese being now released from the children\, took his way t
	o the office\, with the portentous red-tape document that was to so greatl
	y change the condition of George Winston in his coat pocket. The old man s
	at down at his desk\, smiling\, as he balanced the papers in his hand\, at
	 the thought of the happiness he was about to confer on his favourite. He 
	was thus engaged when the door opened\, and George entered\, bearing some 
	newly-arrived orders from European correspondents\, in reference to which 
	he sought Mr. Moyese's instructions.\n\n\"I think\, sir\,\" said he\, mode
	stly\, \"that we had better reply at once to Ditson\, and send him the adv
	ance he requires\, as he will not otherwise be able to fill these\;\" and 
	as he concluded he laid the papers on the table\, and stood waiting orders
	 respecting them.\n\nMr. Moyese laid down the packet\, and after looking o
	ver the papers George had brought in\, replied: \"I think we had. Write to
	 him to draw upon us for the amount he requires.—And\, George\,\" he con
	tinued\, looking at him benevolently\, \"what would you like for a New-yea
	r's present?\"\n\n\"Anything you please\, sir\,\" was the respectful reply
	.\n\n\"Well\, George\,\" resumed Mr. Moyese\, \"I have made up my mind to 
	make you a present of——\" here he paused and looked steadily at him fo
	r a few seconds\; and then gravely handing him the papers\, concluded\, \"
	of yourself\, George! Now mind and don't throw my present away\, my boy.\"
	 George stood for some moments looking in a bewildered manner\, first at h
	is master\, then at the papers. At last the reality of his good fortune br
	oke fully upon him\, and he sank into a chair\, and unable to say more tha
	n: \"God bless you\, Mr. Moyese!\" burst into tears.\n\n\"Now you are a pr
	etty fellow\,\" said the old man\, sobbing himself\, \"it's nothing to cry
	 about—get home as fast as you can\, you stupid cry-baby\, and mind you 
	are here early in the morning\, sir\, for I intend to pay you five hundred
	 dollars a-year\, and I mean you to earn it\,\" and thus speaking he bustl
	ed out of the room\, followed by George's repeated \"God bless you!\" That
	 \"God bless you\" played about his ears at night\, and soothed him to sle
	ep\; in dreams he saw it written in diamond letters on a golden crown\, he
	ld towards him by a hand outstretched from the azure above. He fancied the
	 birds sang it to him in his morning walk\, and that he heard it in the ri
	pple of the little stream that flowed at the foot of his garden. So he cou
	ld afford to smile when his relatives talked about his mistaken generosity
	\, and could take refuge in that fervent \"God bless you!\"\n\nSix years a
	fter this event Mr. Moyese died\, leaving George a sufficient legacy to en
	able him to commence business on his own account. As soon as he had arrang
	ed his affairs\, he started for his old home\, to endeavour to gain by per
	sonal exertions what he had been unable to learn through the agency of oth
	ers—a knowledge of the fate of his mother. He ascertained that she had b
	een sold and re-sold\, and had finally died in New Orleans\, not more than
	 three miles from where he had been living. He had not even the melancholy
	 satisfaction of finding her grave. During his search for his mother he ha
	d become acquainted with Emily\, the wife of Mr. Garie\, and discovered th
	at she was his cousin\; and to this was owing the familiar footing on whic
	h we find him in the household where we first introduced him to our reader
	s.\n\nMr. Winston had just returned from a tour through the Northern State
	s\, where he had been in search of a place in which to establish himself i
	n business.\n\nThe introductions with which Mr. Garie had kindly favoured 
	him\, had enabled him to see enough of Northern society to convince him\, 
	that\, amongst the whites\, he could not form either social or business co
	nnections\, should his identity with\, the African race be discovered\; an
	d whilst\, on the other hand\, he would have found sufficiently refined as
	sociations amongst the people of colour to satisfy his social wants\, he f
	elt that he could not bear the isolation and contumely to which they were 
	subjected. He\, therefore\, decided on leaving the United States\, and on 
	going to some country where\, if he must struggle for success in life\, he
	 might do it without the additional embarrassments that would be thrown in
	 his way in his native land\, solely because he belonged to an oppressed r
	ace.\n\nCHAPTER II.\nA Glance at the Ellis Family.\n\n\"I wish Charlie wou
	ld come with that tea\,\" exclaimed Mrs. Ellis\, who sat finishing off som
	e work\, which had to go home that evening. \"I wonder what can keep him s
	o long away. He has been gone over an hour\; it surely cannot take him tha
	t time to go to Watson's.\"\n\n\"It is a great distance\, mother\,\" said 
	Esther Ellis\, who was busily plying her needle\; \"and I don't think he h
	as been quite so long as you suppose.\"\n\n\"Yes\; he has been gone a good
	 hour\,\" repeated Mrs. Ellis. \"It is now six o'clock\, and it wanted thr
	ee minutes to five when he left. I do hope he won't forget that I told him
	 half black and half green—he is so forgetful!\" And Mrs. Ellis rubbed h
	er spectacles and looked peevishly out of the window as she concluded.—\
	"Where can he be?\" she resumed\, looking in the direction in which he mig
	ht be expected. \"Oh\, here he comes\, and Caddy with him. They have just 
	turned the corner—open the door and let them in.\"\n\nEsther arose\, and
	 on opening the door was almost knocked down by Charlie's abrupt entrance 
	into the apartment\, he being rather forcibly shoved in by his sister Caro
	line\, who appeared to be in a high state of indignation.\n\n\"Where do yo
	u think he was\, mother? Where do you think I found him?\"\n\n\"Well\, I c
	an't say—I really don't know\; in some mischief\, I'll be bound.\"\n\n\"
	He was on the lot playing marbles—and I've had such a time to get him ho
	me. Just look at his knees\; they are worn through. And only think\, mothe
	r\, the tea was lying on the ground\, and might have been carried off\, if
	 I had not happened to come that way. And then he has been fighting and st
	ruggling with me all the way home. See\,\" continued she\, baring her arm\
	, \"just look how he has scratched me\,\" and as she spoke she held out th
	e injured member for her mother's inspection.\n\n\"Mother\,\" said Charlie
	\, in his justification\, \"she began to beat me before all the boys\, bef
	ore I had said a word to her\, and I wasn't going to stand that. She is al
	ways storming at me. She don't give me any peace of my life.\"\n\n\"Oh yes
	\, mother\,\" here interposed Esther\; \"Cad is too cross to him. I must s
	ay\, that he would not be as bad as he is\, if she would only let him alon
	e.\"\n\n\"Esther\, please hush now\; you have nothing to do with their qua
	rrels. I'll settle all their differences. You always take his part whether
	 he be right or wrong. I shall send him to bed without his tea\, and to-mo
	rrow I will take his marbles from him\; and if I see his knees showing thr
	ough his pants again\, I'll put a red patch on them—that's what I'll do.
	 Now\, sir\, go to bed\, and don't let me hear of you until morning.\"\n\n
	Mr. and Mrs. Ellis were at the head of a highly respectable and industriou
	s coloured family. They had three children. Esther\, the eldest\, was a gi
	rl of considerable beauty\, and amiable temper. Caroline\, the second chil
	d\, was plain in person\, and of rather shrewish disposition\; she was a m
	ost indefatigable housewife\, and was never so happy as when in possession
	 of a dust or scrubbing brush\; she would have regarded a place where she 
	could have lived in a perpetual state of house cleaning\, as an earthly pa
	radise. Between her and Master Charlie continued warfare existed\, interru
	pted only by brief truces brought about by her necessity for his services 
	as water-carrier. When a service of this character had been duly rewarded 
	by a slice of bread and preserves\, or some other dainty\, hostilities wou
	ld most probably be recommenced by Charlie's making an inroad upon the new
	ly cleaned floor\, and leaving the prints of his muddy boots thereon.\n\nT
	he fact must here be candidly stated\, that Charlie was not a tidy boy. He
	 despised mats\, and seldom or never wiped his feet on entering the house\
	; he was happiest when he could don his most dilapidated unmentionables\, 
	as he could then sit down where he pleased without the fear of his mother 
	before his eyes\, and enter upon a game of marbles with his mind perfectly
	 free from all harassing cares growing out of any possible accident to the
	 aforesaid garments\, so that he might give that attention to the game tha
	t its importance demanded.\n\nHe was a bright-faced pretty boy\, clever at
	 his lessons\, and a favourite both with tutors and scholars. He had witha
	l a thorough boy's fondness for play\, and was also characterised by all t
	he thoughtlessness consequent thereon. He possessed a lively\, affectionat
	e disposition\, and was generally at peace with all the world\, his sister
	 Caddy excepted.\n\nCaroline had recovered her breath\, and her mind being
	 soothed by the judgment that had been pronounced on Master Charlie\, she 
	began to bustle about to prepare tea.\n\nThe shining copper tea-kettle was
	 brought from the stove where it had been seething and singing for the las
	t half-hour\; then the tea-pot of china received its customary quantity of
	 tea\, which was set upon the stove to brew\, and carefully placed behind 
	the stove pipe that no accidental touch of the elbow might bring it to des
	truction. Plates\, knives\, and teacups came rattling forth from the close
	t\; the butter was brought from the place where it had been placed to keep
	 it cool\, and a corn-cake was soon smoking on the table\, and sending up 
	its seducing odour into the room over-head to which Charlie had been recen
	tly banished\, causing to that unfortunate young gentleman great physical 
	discomfort.\n\n\"Now\, mother\,\" said the bustling Caddy\, \"it's all rea
	dy. Come now and sit down whilst the cake is hot—do put up the sewing\, 
	Esther\, and come!\"\n\nNeither Esther nor her mother needed much pressing
	\, and they were accordingly soon seated round the table on which their re
	past was spread.\n\n\"Put away a slice of this cake for father\,\" said Mr
	s. Ellis\, \"for he won't be home until late\; he is obliged to attend a v
	estry meeting to-night.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis sat for some time sipping the frag
	rant and refreshing tea. When the contents of two or three cups one after 
	another had disappeared\, and sundry slices of corn-bread had been deposit
	ed where much corn-bread had been deposited before\, she began to think ab
	out Charlie\, and to imagine that perhaps she had been rather hasty in sen
	ding him to bed without his supper.\n\n\"What had Charlie to-day in his di
	nner-basket to take to school with him?\" she inquired of Caddy.\n\n\"Why\
	, mother\, I put in enough for a wolf\; three or four slices of bread\, wi
	th as many more of corn-beef\, some cheese\, one of those little pies\, an
	d all that bread-pudding which was left at dinner yesterday—he must have
	 had enough.\"\n\n\"But\, mother\, you know he always gives away the best 
	part of his dinner\,\" interposed Esther. \"He supplies two or three boys 
	with food. There is that dirty Kinch that he is so fond of\, who never tak
	es any dinner with him\, and depends entirely upon Charlie. He must be hun
	gry\; do let him come down and get his tea\, mother?\"\n\nNotwithstanding 
	the observations of Caroline that Esther was just persuading her mother to
	 spoil the boy\, that he would be worse than ever\, and many other similar
	 predictions. Esther and the tea combined won a signal triumph\, and Charl
	ie was called down from the room above\, where he had been exchanging tele
	graphic communications with the before-mentioned Kinch\, in hopes of recei
	ving a commutation of sentence.\n\nCharlie was soon seated at the table wi
	th an ample allowance of corn-bread and tea\, and he looked so demure\, an
	d conducted himself in such an exemplary manner\, that one would have scar
	cely thought him given to marbles and dirty company. Having eaten to his s
	atisfaction he quite ingratiated himself with Caddy by picking up all the 
	crumbs he had spilled during tea\, and throwing them upon the dust-heap. T
	his last act was quite a stroke of policy\, as even Caddy began to regard 
	him as capable of reformation.\n\nThe tea-things washed up and cleared awa
	y\, the females busied themselves with their sewing\, and Charlie immersed
	 himself in his lessons for the morrow with a hearty goodwill and persever
	ance as if he had abjured marbles for ever.\n\nThe hearty supper and perse
	vering attention to study soon began to produce their customary effect upo
	n Charlie. He could not get on with his lessons. Many of the state capital
	s positively refused to be found\, and he was beginning to entertain the s
	age notion that probably some of the legislatures had come to the conclusi
	on to dispense with them altogether\, or had had them placed in such obscu
	re places that they could not be found. The variously coloured states bega
	n to form a vast kaleidoscope\, in which the lakes and rivers had been ent
	irely swallowed up. Ranges of mountains disappeared\, and gulfs and bays a
	nd islands were entirely lost. In fact\, he was sleepy\, and had already h
	ad two or three narrow escapes from butting over the candles\; finally he 
	fell from his chair\, crushing Caddy's newly-trimmed bonnet\, to the inten
	se grief and indignation of that young lady\, who inflicted summary vengea
	nce upon him before he was sufficiently awake to be aware of what had happ
	ened.\n\nThe work being finished\, Mrs. Ellis and Caddy prepared to take i
	t home to Mrs. Thomas\, leaving Esther at home to receive her father on hi
	s return and give him his tea.\n\nMrs. Ellis and Caddy wended their way to
	wards the fashionable part of the city\, looking in at the various shop-wi
	ndows as they went. Numberless were the great bargains they saw there disp
	layed\, and divers were the discussions they held respecting them. \"Oh\, 
	isn't that a pretty calico\, mother\, that with the green ground?\"\n\n\"'
	Tis pretty\, but it won't wash\, child\; those colours always run.\"\n\n\"
	Just look at that silk though—now that's cheap\, you must acknowledge—
	only eighty-seven and a half cents\; if I only had a dress of that I shoul
	d be fixed.\"\n\n\"Laws\, Caddy!\" replied Mrs. Ellis\, \"that stuff is as
	 slazy as a washed cotton handkerchief\, and coarse enough almost to sift 
	sand through. It wouldn't last you any time. The silks they make now-a-day
	s ain't worth anything\; they don't wear well at all. Why\,\" continued sh
	e\, \"when I was a girl they made silks that would stand on end—and one 
	of them would last a life-time.\"\n\nThey had now reached Chestnut-street\
	, which was filled with gaily-dressed people\, enjoying the balmy breath o
	f a soft May evening. Mrs. Ellis and Caddy walked briskly onward\, and wer
	e soon beyond the line of shops\, and entered upon the aristocratic quarte
	r into which many of its residents had retired\, that they might be out of
	 sight of the houses in which their fathers or grandfathers had made their
	 fortunes.\n\n\"Mother\,\" said Caddy\, \"this is Mr. Grant's new house—
	isn't it a splendid place? They say it's like a palace inside. They are gr
	eat people\, them Grants. I saw in the newspaper yesterday that young Mr. 
	Augustus Grant had been appointed an attache to the American legation at P
	aris\; the newspapers say he is a rising man.\"\n\n\"Well\, he ought to be
	\,\" rejoined Mrs. Ellis\, \"for his old grand-daddy made yeast enough to 
	raise the whole family. Many a pennyworth has he sold me. Laws! how the po
	or old folk do get up! I think I can see the old man now\, with his sleeve
	s rolled up\, dealing out his yeast. He wore one coat for about twenty yea
	rs\, and used to be always bragging about it.\"\n\nAs they were thus talki
	ng\, a door of one of the splendid mansions they were passing opened\, and
	 a fashionably-dressed young man came slowly down the steps\, and walked o
	n before them with a very measured step and peculiar gait.\n\n\"That's you
	ng Dr. Whiston\, mother\,\" whispered Caddy\; \"he's courting young\nMiss 
	Morton.\"\n\n\"You don't say so!\" replied the astonished Mrs. Ellis. \"Wh
	y\, I declare his grandfather laid her grandfather out! Old Whiston was an
	 undertaker\, and used to make the handsomest coffins of his time. And he 
	is going to marry Miss Morton! What next\, I'd like to know! He walks exac
	tly like the old man. I used to mock him when I was a little girl. He had 
	just that hop-and-go kind of gait\, and he was the funniest man that ever 
	lived. I've seen him at a funeral go into the parlour\, and condole with t
	he family\, and talk about the dear departed until the tears rolled down h
	is cheeks\; and then he'd be down in the kitchen\, eating and drinking\, a
	nd laughing\, and telling jokes about the corpses\, before the tears were 
	dry on his face. How he used to make money! He buried almost all the respe
	ctable people about town\, and made a large fortune. He owned a burying-gr
	ound in Coates-street\, and when the property in that vicinity became valu
	able\, he turned the dead folks out\, and built houses on the ground!\"\n\
	n\"I shouldn't say it was a very pleasant place to live in\, if there are 
	such things as ghosts\,\" said Caddy\, laughing\; \"I for one wouldn't lik
	e to live there—but here we are at Mr. Thomas's—how short the way has 
	seemed!\"\n\nCaroline gave a fierce rap at the door\, which was opened by 
	old Aunt Rachel\, the fat cook\, who had lived with the Thomases for a fab
	ulous length of time. She was an old woman when Mrs. Ellis came as a girl 
	into the family\, and had given her many a cuff in days long past\; in fac
	t\, notwithstanding Mrs. Ellis had been married many years\, and had child
	ren almost as old as she herself was when she left Mr. Thomas\, Aunt Rache
	l could never be induced to regard her otherwise than as a girl.\n\n\"Oh\,
	 it's you\, is it?\" said she gruffly\, as she opened the door\; \"don't y
	ou think better break de door down at once-rapping as if you was guine to 
	tear off de knocker—is dat de way\, gal\, you comes to quality's houses?
	 You lived here long nuff to larn better dan dat—and dis is twice I've b
	een to de door in de last half-hour—if any one else comes dere they may 
	stay outside. Shut de door after you\, and come into de kitchen\, and don'
	t keep me standin' here all night\,\" added she\, puffing and blowing as s
	he waddled back into her sanctum.\n\nWaiting until the irate old cook had 
	recovered her breath\, Mrs. Ellis modestly inquired if Mrs. Thomas was at 
	home. \"Go up and see\,\" was the surly response. \"You've been up stars o
	ften enuff to know de way—go long wid you\, gal\, and don't be botherin'
	 me\, 'case I don't feel like bein' bothered—now\, mind I tell yer.—He
	re\, you Cad\, set down on dis stool\, and let that cat alone\; I don't le
	t any one play with my cat\,\" continued she\, \"and you'll jest let him a
	lone\, if you please\, or I'll make you go sit in de entry till your mothe
	r's ready to go. I don't see what she has you brats tugging after her for 
	whenever she comes here—she might jest as well leave yer at home to darn
	 your stockings—I 'spect dey want it.\"\n\nPoor Caddy was boiling over w
	ith wrath\; but deeming prudence the better part of valour\, she did not v
	enture upon any wordy contest with Aunt Rachel\, but sat down upon the sto
	ol by the fire-place\, in which a bright fire was blazing. Up the chimney 
	an old smoke-jack was clicking\, whirling\, and making the most dismal noi
	se imaginable. This old smoke-jack was Aunt Rachel's especial protege\, an
	d she obstinately and successfully defended it against all comers. She tur
	ned up her nose at all modern inventions designed for the same use as enti
	rely beneath her notice. She had been accustomed to hearing its rattle for
	 the last forty years\, and would as soon have thought of committing suici
	de as consenting to its removal.\n\nShe and her cat were admirably matched
	\; he was as snappish and cross as she\, and resented with distended claws
	 and elevated back all attempts on the part of strangers to cultivate amic
	able relations with him. In fact\, Tom's pugnacious disposition was clearl
	y evidenced by his appearance\; one side of his face having a very battere
	d aspect\, and the fur being torn off his back in several places.\n\nCaddy
	 sat for some time surveying the old woman and her cat\, in evident awe of
	 both. She regarded also with great admiration the scrupulously clean and 
	shining kitchen tins that garnished the walls and reflected the red light 
	of the blazing fire. The wooden dresser was a miracle of whiteness\, and r
	anged thereon was a set of old-fashioned blue china\, on which was display
	ed the usual number of those unearthly figures which none but the Chinese 
	can create. Tick\, tick\, went the old Dutch clock in the corner\, and the
	 smoke-jack kept up its whirring noise. Old Tom and Aunt Rachel were both 
	napping\; and so Caddy\, having no other resource\, went to sleep also.\n\
	nMrs. Ellis found her way without any difficulty to Mrs. Thomas's room. He
	r gentle tap upon the door quite flurried that good lady\, who (we speak i
	t softly) was dressing her wig\, a task she entrusted to no other mortal h
	ands. She peeped out\, and seeing who it was\, immediately opened the door
	 without hesitation.\n\n\"Oh\, it's you\, is it? Come in\, Ellen\,\" said 
	she\; \"I don't mind you.\"\n\n\"I've brought the night-dresses home\,\" s
	aid Mrs. Ellis\, laying her bundle upon the table\,—\"I hope they'll sui
	t.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no doubt they will. Did you bring the bill?\" asked Mrs. Th
	omas.\n\nThe bill was produced\, and Mrs. Ellis sat down\, whilst Mrs. Tho
	mas counted out the money. This having been duly effected\, and the bill c
	arefully placed on the file\, Mrs. Thomas also sat down\, and commenced he
	r usual lamentation over the state of her nerves\, and the extravagance of
	 the younger members of the family. On the latter subject she spoke very f
	eelingly. \"Such goings on\, Ellen\, are enough to set me crazy—so many 
	nurses—and then we have to keep four horses—and it's company\, company
	 from Monday morning until Saturday night\; the house is kept upside-down 
	continually—money\, money for everything—all going out\, and nothing c
	oming in!\"—and the unfortunate Mrs. Thomas whined and groaned as if she
	 had not at that moment an income of clear fifteen thousand dollars a year
	\, and a sister who might die any day and leave her half as much more.\n\n
	Mrs. Thomas was the daughter of the respectable old gentleman whom Dr. Whi
	ston's grandfather had prepared for his final resting-place. Her daughter 
	had married into a once wealthy\, but now decayed\, Carolina family. In co
	nsideration of the wealth bequeathed by her grandfather (who was a maker o
	f leather breeches\, and speculator in general)\, Miss Thomas had received
	 the offer of the poverty-stricken hand of Mr. Morton\, and had accepted i
	t with evident pleasure\, as he was undoubtedly a member of one of the fir
	st families of the South\, and could prove a distant connection with one o
	f the noble families of England.\n\nThey had several children\, and their 
	incessant wants had rendered it necessary that another servant should be k
	ept. Now Mrs. Thomas had long had her eye on Charlie\, with a view of inco
	rporating him with the Thomas establishment\, and thought this would be a 
	favourable time to broach the subject to his mother: she therefore commenc
	ed by inquiring—\n\n\"How have you got through the winter\, Ellen? Every
	thing has been so dear that even we have felt the effect of the high price
	s.\"\n\n\"Oh\, tolerably well\, I thank you. Husband's business\, it is tr
	ue\, has not been as brisk as usual\, but we ought not to complain\; now t
	hat we have got the house paid for\, and the girls do so much sewing\, we 
	get on very nicely.\"\n\n\"I should think three children must be something
	 of a burthen—must be hard to provide for.\"\n\n\"Oh no\, not at all\,\"
	 rejoined Mrs. Ellis\, who seemed rather surprised at Mrs. Thomas's uncomm
	on solicitude respecting them. \"We have never found the children a burthe
	n\, thank God—they're rather a comfort and a pleasure than otherwise.\"\
	n\n\"I'm glad to hear you say so\, Ellen—very glad\, indeed\, for I have
	 been quite disturbed in mind respecting you during the winter. I really s
	everal times thought of sending to take Charlie off your hands: by-the-way
	\, what is he doing now?\"\n\n\"He goes to school regularly—he hasn't mi
	ssed a day all winter. You should just see his writing\,\" continued Mrs. 
	Ellis\, warming up with a mother's pride in her only son—\"he won't let 
	the girls make out any of the bills\, but does it all himself—he made ou
	t yours.\"\n\nMrs. Thomas took down the file and looked at the bill again.
	 \"It's very neatly written\, very neatly written\, indeed\; isn't it abou
	t time that he left school—don't you think he has education enough?\" sh
	e inquired.\n\n\"His father don't. He intends sending him to another schoo
	l\, after vacation\, where they teach Latin and Greek\, and a number of ot
	her branches.\"\n\n\"Nonsense\, nonsense\, Ellen! If I were you\, I wouldn
	't hear of it. There won't be a particle of good result to the child from 
	any such acquirements. It isn't as though he was a white child. What use c
	an Latin or Greek be to a coloured boy? None in the world—he'll have to 
	be a common mechanic\, or\, perhaps\, a servant\, or barber\, or something
	 of that kind\, and then what use would all his fine education be to him? 
	Take my advice\, Ellen\, and don't have him taught things that will make h
	im feel above the situation he\, in all probability\, will have to fill. N
	ow\,\" continued she\, \"I have a proposal to make to you: let him come an
	d live with me awhile—I'll pay you well\, and take good care of him\; be
	sides\, he will be learning something here\, good manners\, &amp\;c. Not t
	hat he is not a well-mannered child\; but\, you know\, Ellen\, there is so
	mething every one learns by coming in daily contact with refined and educa
	ted people that cannot but be beneficial—come now\, make up your mind to
	 leave him with me\, at least until the winter\, when the schools again co
	mmence\, and then\, if his father is still resolved to send him back to sc
	hool\, why he can do so. Let me have him for the summer at least.\"\n\nMrs
	. Ellis\, who had always been accustomed to regard Mrs. Thomas as a miracl
	e of wisdom\, was\, of course\, greatly impressed with what she had said. 
	She had lived many years in her family\, and had left it to marry Mr. Elli
	s\, a thrifty mechanic\, who came from Savanah\, her native city. She had 
	great reverence for any opinion Mrs. Thomas expressed\; and\, after some f
	urther conversation on the subject\, made up her mind to consent to the pr
	oposal\, and left her with the intention of converting her husband to her 
	way of thinking.\n\nOn descending to the kitchen she awoke Caddy from a de
	licious dream\, in which she had been presented with the black silk that t
	hey had seen in the shop window marked eighty-seven and a half cents a yar
	d. In the dream she had determined to make it up with tight sleeves and in
	fant waist\, that being the most approved style at that period.\n\n\"Five 
	breadths are not enough for the skirt\, and if I take six I must skimp the
	 waist and cape\,\" murmured she in her sleep.\n\n\"Wake up\, girl! What a
	re you thinking about?\" said her mother\, giving her another shake.\n\n\"
	Oh!\" said Caddy\, with a wild and disappointed look—\"I was dreaming\, 
	wasn't I? I declare I thought I had that silk frock in the window.\"\n\n\"
	The girls' heads are always running on finery—wake up\, and come along\,
	\nI'm going home.\"\n\nCaddy followed her mother out\, leaving Aunt Rachel
	 and Tom nodding at each other as they dozed before the fire.\n\nThat nigh
	t Mr. Ellis and his wife had a long conversation upon the proposal of Mrs.
	 Thomas\; and after divers objections raised by him\, and set aside by her
	\, it was decided that Charlie should be permitted to go there for the hol
	idays at least\; after which\, his father resolved he should be sent to sc
	hool again.\n\nCharlie\, the next morning\, looked very blank on being inf
	ormed of his approaching fate. Caddy undertook with great alacrity to brea
	k the dismal tidings to him\, and enlarged in a glowing manner upon what t
	imes he might expect from Aunt Rachel.\n\n\"I guess she'll keep you straig
	ht\;—you'll see sights up there! She is cross as sin—she'll make you w
	ipe your feet when you go in and out\, if no one else can.\"\n\n\"Let him 
	alone\, Caddy\,\" gently interposed Esther\; \"it is bad enough to be comp
	elled to live in a house with that frightful old woman\, without being ann
	oyed about it beforehand. If I could help it\, Charlie\, you should not go
	.\"\n\n\"I know you'd keep me home if you could—but old Cad\, here\, she
	 always rejoices if anything happens to me. I'll be hanged if I stay there
	\,\" said he. \"I won't live at service—I'd rather be a sweep\, or sell 
	apples on the dock. I'm not going to be stuck up behind their carriage\, d
	ressed up like a monkey in a tail coat—I'll cut off my own head first.\"
	 And with this sanguinary threat he left the house\, with his school-books
	 under his arm\, intending to lay the case before his friend and adviser\,
	 the redoubtable and sympathising Kinch.\n\nCHAPTER III.\nCharlie's Trials
	.\n\nCharlie started for school with a heavy heart. Had it not been for hi
	s impending doom of service in Mr. Thomas's family\, he would have been th
	e happiest boy that ever carried a school-bag.\n\nIt did not require a gre
	at deal to render this young gentleman happy. All that was necessary to ma
	ke up a day of perfect joyfulness with him\, was a dozen marbles\, permiss
	ion to wear his worst inexpressibles\, and to be thoroughly up in his less
	ons. To-day he was possessed of all these requisites\, but there was also 
	in the perspective along array of skirmishes with Aunt Rachel\, who\, he k
	new\, looked on him with an evil eye\, and who had frequently expressed he
	rself regarding him\, in his presence\, in terms by no means complimentary
	 or affectionate\; and the manner in which she had intimated her desire\, 
	on one or two occasions\, to have an opportunity of reforming his personal
	 habits\, were by no means calculated to produce a happy frame of mind\, n
	ow that the opportunity was about to be afforded her.\n\nCharlie sauntered
	 on until he came to a lumber-yard\, where he stopped and examined a corne
	r of the fence very attentively. \"Not gone by yet. I must wait for him\,\
	" said he\; and forthwith he commenced climbing the highest pile of boards
	\, the top of which he reached at the imminent risk of his neck. Here he s
	at awaiting the advent of his friend Kinch\, the absence of death's head a
	nd cross bones from the corner of the fence being a clear indication that 
	he had not yet passed on his way to school.\n\nSoon\, however\, he was esp
	ied in the distance\, and as he was quite a character in his way\, we must
	 describe him. His most prominent feature was a capacious hungry-looking m
	outh\, within which glistened a row of perfect teeth. He had the merriest 
	twinkling black eyes\, and a nose so small and flat that it would have bee
	n a prize to any editor living\, as it would have been a physical impossib
	ility to have pulled it\, no matter what outrage he had committed. His com
	plexion was of a ruddy brown\, and his hair\, entirely innocent of a comb\
	, was decorated with divers feathery tokens of his last night's rest. A ca
	p with the front torn off\, jauntily set on one side of his head\, gave hi
	m a rakish and wide-awake air\, his clothes were patched and torn in sever
	al places\, and his shoes were already in an advanced stage of decay. As h
	e approached the fence he took a piece of chalk from his pocket\, and comm
	enced to sketch the accustomed startling illustration which was to convey 
	to Charlie the intelligence that he had already passed there on his way to
	 school\, when a quantity of sawdust came down in a shower on his head. As
	 soon as the blinding storm had ceased\, Kinch looked up and intimated to 
	Charlie that it was quite late\, and that there was a probability of their
	 being after time at school.\n\nThis information caused Charlie to make ra
	ther a hasty descent\, in doing which his dinner-basket was upset\, and it
	s contents displayed at the feet of the voracious Kinch.\n\n\"Now I'll be 
	even with you for that sawdust\,\" cried he\, as he pocketed two boiled eg
	gs\, and bit an immense piece out of an apple-tart\, which he would have d
	emolished completely but for the prompt interposition of its owner.\n\n\"O
	h! my golly! Charlie\, your mother makes good pies!\" he exclaimed with ra
	pture\, as soon as he could get his mouth sufficiently clear to speak. \"G
	ive us another bite\,—only a nibble.\"\n\nBut Charlie knew by experience
	 what Kinch's \"nibbles\" were\, and he very wisely declined\, saying sadl
	y as he did so\, \"You won't get many more dinners from me\, Kinch. I'm go
	ing to leave school.\" \"No! you ain't though\, are you?\" asked the aston
	ished Kinch. \"You are not going\, are you\, really?\"\n\n\"Yes\, really\,
	\" replied Charlie\, with a doleful look\; \"mother is going to put me out
	 at service.\"\n\n\"And do you intend to go?\" asked Kinch\, looking at hi
	m incredulously.\n\n\"Why of course\,\" was the reply. \"How can I help go
	ing if father and mother say I must?\"\n\n\"I tell you what I should do\,\
	" said Kinch\, \"if it was me. I should act so bad that the people would b
	e glad to get rid of me. They hired me out to live once\, and I led the pe
	ople they put me with such a dance\, that they was glad enough to send me 
	home again.\"\n\nThis observation brought them to the school-house\, which
	 was but a trifling distance from the residence of Mrs. Ellis.\n\nThey ent
	ered the school at the last moment of grace\, and Mr. Dicker looked at the
	m severely as they took their seats. \"Just saved ourselves\,\" whispered 
	Kinch\; \"a minute later and we would have been done for\;\" and with this
	 closing remark he applied himself to his grammar\, a very judicious move 
	on his part\, for he had not looked at his lesson\, and there were but ten
	 minutes to elapse before the class would be called.\n\nThe lessons were d
	roned through as lessons usually are at school. There was the average amou
	nt of flogging performed\; cakes\, nuts\, and candy\, confiscated\; little
	 boys on the back seats punched one another as little boys on the back sea
	ts always will do\, and were flogged in consequence. Then the boy who neve
	r knew his lessons was graced with the fool's cap\, and was pointed and st
	ared at until the arrival of the play-hour relieved him from his disagreea
	ble situation.\n\n\"What kind of folks are these Thomases?\" asked Kinch\,
	 as he sat beside Charlie in the playground munching the last of the apple
	-tart\; \"what kind of folks are they? Tell me that\, and I can give you s
	ome good advice\, may-be.\"\n\n\"Old Mrs. Thomas is a little dried-up old 
	woman\, who wears spectacles and a wig. She isn't of much account—I don'
	t mind her. She's not the trouble\; it's of old Aunt Rachel\, I'm thinking
	. Why\, she has threatened to whip me when I've been there with mother\, a
	nd she even talks to her sometimes as if she was a little girl. Lord only 
	knows what she'll do to me when she has me there by myself. You should jus
	t see her and her cat. I really don't know\,\" continued Charlie\, \"which
	 is the worst looking. I hate them both like poison\,\" and as he conclude
	d\, he bit into a piece of bread as fiercely as if he were already engaged
	 in a desperate battle with aunt Rachel\, and was biting her in self-defen
	ce.\n\n\"Well\,\" said Kinch\, with the air of a person of vast experience
	 in difficult cases\, \"I should drown the cat—I'd do that at once—as 
	soon as I got there\; then\, let me ask you\, has Aunt Rachel got corns?\"
	\n\n\"Corns! I wish you could see her shoes\,\" replied Charlie. \"Why you
	 could sail down the river in 'em\, they are so large. Yes\, she has got c
	orns\, bunions\, and rheumatism\, and everything else.\"\n\n\"Ah! then\,\"
	 said Kinch\, \"your way is clear enough if she has got corns. I should co
	nfine myself to operating on them. I should give my whole attention to her
	 feet. When she attempts to take hold of you\, do you jist come down on he
	r corns\, fling your shins about kinder wild\, you know\, and let her have
	 it on both feet. You see I've tried that plan\, and know by experience th
	at it works well. Don't you see\, you can pass that off as an accident\, a
	nd it don't look well to be scratching and biting. As for the lady of the 
	house\, old Mrs. what's-her-name\, do you just manage to knock her wig off
	 before some company\, and they'll send you home at once—they'll hardly 
	give you time to get your hat.\"\n\nCharlie laid these directions aside in
	 his mind for future application\, and asked\,\n\n\"What did you do\, Kinc
	h\, to get away from the people you were with?\"\n\n\"Don't ask me\,\" sai
	d Kinch\, laughing\; \"don't\, boy\, don't ask me—my conscience troubles
	 me awful about it sometimes. I fell up stairs with dishes\, and I fell do
	wn stairs with dishes. I spilled oil on the carpet\, and broke a looking-g
	lass\; but it was all accidental—entirely accidental—they found I was 
	too ''spensive\,' and so they sent me home.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I wouldn't do anyt
	hing like that—I wouldn't destroy anything—but I've made up my mind th
	at I won't stay there at any rate. I don't mind work—I want to do someth
	ing to assist father and mother\; but I don't want to be any one's servant
	. I wish I was big enough to work at the shop.\"\n\n\"How did your mother 
	come to think of putting you there?\" asked Kinch.\n\n\"The Lord alone kno
	ws\,\" was the reply. \"I suppose old Mrs. Thomas told her it was the best
	 thing that could be done for me\, and mother thinks what she says is law 
	and gospel. I believe old Mrs. Thomas thinks a coloured person can't get t
	o Heaven\, without first living at service a little while.\"\n\nThe school
	 bell ringing put an end to this important conversation\, and the boys rec
	ommenced their lessons.\n\nWhen Charlie returned from school\, the first p
	erson he saw on entering the house was Robberts\, Mrs. Thomas's chief func
	tionary\, and the presiding genius of the wine cellar—when he was truste
	d with the key. Charlie learned\, to his horror and dismay\, that he had b
	een sent by Mrs. Thomas to inquire into the possibility of obtaining his s
	ervices immediately\, as they were going to have a series of dinner partie
	s\, and it was thought that he could be rendered quite useful.\n\n\"And mu
	st I go\, mother?\" he asked.\n\n\"Yes\, my son\; I've told Robberts that 
	you shall come up in the morning\,\" replied Mrs. Ellis. Then turning to R
	obberts\, she inquired\, \"How is Aunt Rachel?\"\n\nAt this question\, the
	 liveried gentleman from Mrs. Thomas's shook his head dismally\, and answe
	red: \"Don't ask me\, woman\; don't ask me\, if you please. That old sinne
	r gets worse and worse every day she lives. These dinners we're 'spectin t
	o have has just set her wild—she is mad as fury 'bout 'em—and she snap
	s me up just as if I was to blame. That is an awful old woman\, now mind I
	 tell you.\"\n\nAs Mr. Robberts concluded\, he took his hat and departed\,
	 giving Charlie the cheering intelligence that he should expect him early 
	next morning.\n\nCharlie quite lost his appetite for supper in consequence
	 of his approaching trials\, and\, laying aside his books with a sigh of r
	egret\, sat listlessly regarding his sisters\; enlivened now and then by s
	ome cheerful remark from Caddy\, such as:—\n\n\"You'll have to keep your
	 feet cleaner up there than you do at home\, or you'll have aunt Rach in y
	our wool half a dozen times a day. And you mustn't throw your cap and coat
	 down where you please\, on the chairs or tables—she'll bring you out of
	 all that in a short time. I expect you'll have two or three bastings befo
	re you have been there a week\, for she don't put up with any nonsense. Ah
	\, boy\,\" she concluded\, chuckling\, \"you'll have a time of it—I don'
	t envy you!\"\n\nWith these and similar enlivening anticipations\, Caddy w
	hiled away the time until it was the hour for Charlie to retire for the ni
	ght\, which he\, did with a heavy heart.\n\nEarly the following morning he
	 was awakened by the indefatigable Caddy\, and he found a small bundle of 
	necessaries prepared\, until his trunk of apparel could be sent to his new
	 home. \"Oh\, Cad\,\" he exclaimed\, rubbing his eyes\, \"how I do hate to
	 go up there! I'd rather take a good whipping than go.\"\n\n\"Well\, it is
	 too late now to talk about it\; hurry and get your clothes on—it is qui
	te late—you ought to have been off an hour ago.\"\n\nWhen he came down s
	tairs prepared to go\, his mother \"hoped that he was going to behave like
	 a man\,\" which exhortation had the effect of setting him crying at once\
	; and then he had to be caressed by the tearful Esther\, and\, finally\, s
	tarted away with very red eyes\, followed to the door by his mother and th
	e girls\, who stood looking after him for some moments.\n\nSo hurried and 
	unexpected had been his departure\, that he had been unable to communicate
	 with his friend Kinch. This weighed very heavily on his spirits\, and he 
	occupied the time on his way to Mrs. Thomas's in devising various plans to
	 effect that object.\n\nOn arriving\, he gave a faint rap\, that was respo
	nded to by Aunt Rachel\, who saluted him with—\n\n\"Oh\, yer's come\, ha
	s yer—wipe your feet\, child\, and come in quick. Shut the door after ye
	r.\"\n\n\"What shall I do with this?\" timidly asked he\, holding up his p
	ackage of clothes.\n\n\"Oh\, dem's yer rags is dey—fling 'em anywhere\, 
	but don't bring 'em in my kitchen\,\" said she. \"Dere is enuff things in 
	dere now—put 'em down here on this entry table\, or dere\, long side de 
	knife-Board—any wheres but in de kitchen.\"\n\nCharlie mechanically obey
	ed\, and then followed her into her sanctuary.\n\n\"Have you had your brea
	kfast?\" she asked\, in a surly tone. \"'Cause if you haven't\, you must e
	at quick\, or you won't get any. I can't keep the breakfast things standin
	g here all day.\"\n\nCharlie\, to whom the long walk had given a good appe
	tite\, immediately sat down and ate a prodigious quantity of bread and but
	ter\, together with several slices of cold ham\, washed down by two cups o
	f tea\; after which he rested his knife and fork\, and informed Aunt Rache
	l that he had done.\n\n\"Well\, I think it's high time\,\" responded she. 
	\"Why\, boy\, you'll breed a famine in de house if you stay here long enou
	gh. You'll have to do a heap of work to earn what you'll eat\, if yer brea
	kfast is a sample of yer dinner. Come\, get up\, child! and shell dese 'er
	e pease—time you get 'em done\, old Mrs. Thomas will be down stairs.\"\n
	\nCharlie was thus engaged when Mrs. Thomas entered the kitchen. \"Well\, 
	Charles—good morning\,\" said she\, in a bland voice. \"I'm glad to see 
	you here so soon. Has he had his breakfast\, Aunt Rachel?\"\n\n\"Yes\; and
	 he eat like a wild animal—I never see'd a child eat more in my life\,\"
	 was Aunt Rachel's abrupt answer.\n\n\"I'm glad he has a good appetite\,\"
	 said Mrs. Thomas\, \"it shows he has good health. Boys will eat\; you can
	't expect them to work if they don't. But it is time I was at those custar
	ds. Charlie\, put down those peas and go into the other room\, and bring m
	e a basket of eggs you will find on the table.\"\n\n\"And be sure to overs
	et the milk that's 'long side of it—yer hear?\" added\nAunt Rachel.\n\nC
	harlie thought to himself that he would like to accommodate her\, but he d
	enied himself that pleasure\; on the ground that it might not be safe to d
	o it.\n\nMrs. Thomas was a housekeeper of the old school\, and had a scien
	tific knowledge of the manner in which all sorts of pies and puddings were
	 compounded. She was so learned in custards and preserves that even Aunt R
	achel sometimes deferred to her superior judgment in these matters. Carefu
	lly breaking the eggs\, she skilfully separated the whites from the yolks\
	, and gave the latter to Charlie to beat. At first he thought it great fun
	\, and he hummed some of the popular melodies of the day\, and kept time w
	ith his foot and the spatula. But pretty soon he exhausted his stock of tu
	nes\, and then the performances did not go off so well. His arm commenced 
	aching\, and he came to the sage conclusion\, before he was relieved from 
	his task\, that those who eat the custards are much better off than those 
	who prepare them.\n\nThis task finished\, he was pressed into service by A
	unt Rachel\, to pick and stone some raisins which she gave him\, with the 
	injunction either to sing or whistle all the time he was \"at 'em\;\" and 
	that if he stopped for a moment she should know he was eating them\, and i
	n that case she would visit him with condign punishment on the spot\, for 
	she didn't care a fig whose child he was.\n\nThus\, in the performance of 
	first one little job and then another\, the day wore away\; and as the hou
	r approached at which the guests were invited\, Charlie\, after being take
	n into the dining-room by Robberts\, where he was greatly amazed at the di
	splay of silver\, cut glass\, and elegant china\, was posted at the door t
	o relieve the guests of their coats and hats\, which duty he performed to 
	the entire satisfaction of all parties concerned.\n\nAt dinner\, however\,
	 he was not so fortunate. He upset a plate of soup into a gentleman's lap\
	, and damaged beyond repair one of the elegant china vegetable dishes. He 
	took rather too deep an interest in the conversation for a person in his s
	tation\; and\, in fact\, the bright boy alluded to by Mr. Winston\, as hav
	ing corrected the reverend gentleman respecting the quotation from Chaucer
	\, was no other than our friend Charlie Ellis.\n\nIn the evening\, when th
	e guests were departing\, Charlie handed Mr. Winston his coat\, admiring t
	he texture and cut of it very much as he did so. Mr. Winston\, amused at t
	he boy's manner\, asked—\n\n\"What is your name\, my little man?\"\n\n\"
	Charles Ellis\,\" was the prompt reply. \"I'm named after my father.\"\n\n
	\"And where did your father come from\, Charlie?\" he asked\, looking very
	 much interested.\n\n\"From Savanah\, sir. Now tell me where you came from
	\,\" replied Charles.\n\n\"I came from New Orleans\,\" said Mr. Winston\, 
	with a smile. \"Now tell me\,\" he continued\, \"where do you live when yo
	u are with your parents? I should like to see your father.\" Charlie quick
	ly put his interrogator in possession of the desired information\, after w
	hich Mr. Winston departed\, soon followed by the other guests.\n\nCharlie 
	lay for some time that night on his little cot before he could get to slee
	p\; and amongst the many matters that so agitated his mind\, was his wonde
	r what one of Mrs. Thomas's guests could want with his father. Being unabl
	e however\, to arrive at any satisfactory conclusion respecting it\, he tu
	rned over and went to sleep.\n\nCHAPTER IV.\nIn which Mr. Winston finds an
	 old Friend.\n\nIn the early part of Mr. Winston's career\, when he worked
	 as a boy on the plantation of his father\, he had frequently received gre
	at kindness at the hands of one Charles Ellis\, who was often employed as 
	carpenter about the premises.\n\nOn one occasion\, as a great favour\, he 
	had been permitted to accompany Ellis to his home in Savanah\, which was b
	ut a few miles distant\, where he remained during the Christmas holidays. 
	This kindness he had never forgotten\; and on his return to Georgia from N
	ew Orleans he sought for his old friend\, and found he had removed to the 
	North\, but to which particular city he could not ascertain.\n\nAs he walk
	ed homewards\, the strong likeness of little Charlie to his old friend for
	ced itself upon him\, and the more he reflected upon it the more likely it
	 appeared that the boy might be his child\; and the identity of name and o
	ccupation between the father of Charlie and his old friend led to the beli
	ef that he was about to make some discovery respecting him.\n\nOn his way 
	to his hotel he passed the old State House\, the bell of which was just st
	riking ten. \"It's too late to go to-night\,\" said he\, \"it shall be the
	 first thing I attend to in the morning\;\" and after walking on a short d
	istance farther\, he found himself at the door of his domicile.\n\nAs he p
	assed through the little knot of waiters who were gathered about the doors
	\, one of them turning to another\, asked\, \"Ain't that man a Southerner\
	, and ain't he in your rooms\, Ben?\"\n\n\"I think he's a Southerner\,\" w
	as the reply of Ben. \"But why do you ask\, Allen?\" he enquired. \"Becaus
	e it's time he had subscribed something\,\" replied Mr. Allen. \"The funds
	 of the Vigilance Committee are very low indeed\; in fact\, the four that 
	we helped through last week have completely drained us. We must make a rai
	se from some quarter\, and we might as well try it on him.\"\n\nMr. Winsto
	n was waiting for a light that he might retire to his room\, and was quick
	ly served by the individual who had been so confidentially talking with Mr
	. Allen.\n\nAfter giving Mr. Winston the light\, Ben followed him into his
	 room and busied himself in doing little nothings about the stove and wash
	-stand. \"Let me unbutton your straps\, sir\,\" said he\, stooping down an
	d commencing on the buttons\, which he was rather long in unclosing. \"I k
	now\, sir\, dat you Southern gentlemen ain't used to doing dese yer things
	 for youself. I allus makes it a pint to show Southerners more 'tention da
	n I does to dese yer Northern folk\, 'cause yer see I knows dey'r used to 
	it\, and can't get on widout it.\"\n\n\"I am not one of that kind\,\" said
	 Winston\, as Ben slowly unbuttoned the last strap. \"I have been long acc
	ustomed to wait upon myself. I'll only trouble you to bring me up a glass 
	of fresh water\, and then I shall have done with you for the night.\"\n\n\
	"Better let me make you up a little fire\, the nights is werry cool\,\" co
	ntinued Ben. \"I know you must feel 'em\; I does myself\; I'm from the Sou
	th\, too.\"\n\n\"Are you?\" replied Mr. Winston\, with some interest\; \"f
	rom what part!\"\n\n\"From Tuckahoe county\, Virginia\; nice place dat.\"\
	n\n\"Never having been there I can't say\,\" rejoined Mr. Winston\, smilin
	g\; \"and how do you like the North? I suppose you are a runaway\,\" conti
	nued he.\n\n\"Oh\, no sir! no sir!\" replied Ben\, \"I was sot free—and 
	I often wish\,\" he added in a whining tone\, \"dat I was back agin on the
	 old place—hain't got no kind marster to look after me here\, and I has 
	to work drefful hard sometimes. Ah\,\" he concluded\, drawing a long sigh\
	, \"if I was only back on de old place!\" \"I heartily wish you were!\" sa
	id Mr. Winston\, indignantly\, \"and wish moreover that you were to be tie
	d up and whipped once a day for the rest of your life. Any man that prefer
	s slavery to freedom deserves to be a slave—you ought to be ashamed of y
	ourself. Go out of the room\, sir\, as quick as possible!\"\n\n\"Phew!\" s
	aid the astonished and chagrined Ben\, as he descended the stairs\; \"that
	 was certainly a great miss\,\" continued he\, talking as correct English\
	, and with as pure Northern an accent as any one could boast.\n\n\"We have
	 made a great mistake this time\; a very queer kind of Southerner that is.
	 I'm afraid we took the wrong pig by the ear\;\" and as he concluded\, he 
	betook himself to the group of white-aproned gentlemen before mentioned\, 
	to whom he related the incident that had just occurred.\n\n\"Quite a sever
	e fall that\, I should say\,\" remarked Mr. Allen. \"Perhaps we have made 
	a mistake and he is not a Southerner after all. Well he is registered from
	 New Orleans\, and I thought he was a good one to try it on.\"\n\n\"It's a
	 clear case we've missed it this time\,\" exclaimed one of the party\, \"a
	nd I hope\, Ben\, when you found he was on the other side of the fence\, y
	ou did not say too much.\"\n\n\"Laws\, no!\" rejoined Ben\, \"do you think
	 I'm a fool? As soon as I heard him say what he did\, I was glad to get of
	f—I felt cheap enough\, now mind\, I tell you any one could have bought 
	me for a shilling.\"\n\nNow it must be here related that most of the waite
	rs employed in this hotel were also connected with the Vigilance Committee
	 of the Under-ground Railroad Company—a society formed for the assistanc
	e of fugitive slaves\; by their efforts\, and by the timely information it
	 was often in their power to give\, many a poor slave was enabled to escap
	e from the clutches of his pursuers.\n\nThe house in which they were emplo
	yed was the great resort of Southerners\, who occasionally brought with th
	em their slippery property\; and it frequently happened that these disappe
	ared from the premises to parts unknown\, aided in their flight by the ver
	y waiters who would afterwards exhibit the most profound ignorance as to t
	heir whereabouts. Such of the Southerners as brought no servants with them
	 were made to contribute\, unconsciously and most amusingly\, to the escap
	e of those of their friends.\n\nWhen a gentleman presented himself at the 
	bar wearing boots entirely too small for him\, with his hat so far down up
	on his forehead as almost to obscure his eyes\, and whose mouth was filled
	 with oaths and tobacco\, he was generally looked upon as a favourable spe
	cimen to operate upon\; and if he cursed the waiters\, addressed any old m
	an amongst them as \"boy\,\" and was continually drinking cock-tails and m
	int-juleps\, they were sure of their man\; and then would tell him the mos
	t astonishing and distressing tales of their destitution\, expressing\, al
	most with tears in their eyes\, their deep desire to return to their forme
	r masters\; whilst perhaps the person from whose mouth this tale of woe pr
	oceeded had been born in a neighbouring street\, and had never been south 
	of Mason and Dixon's[*] line. This flattering testimony in favour of \"the
	 peculiar institution\" generally had the effect of extracting a dollar or
	 two from the purse of the sympathetic Southerner\; which money went immed
	iately into the coffers of the Vigilance Committee.\n\n[Footnote *: The li
	ne dividing the free from the slave states.]\n\nIt was this course of cond
	uct they were about to pursue with Mr. Winston\; not because he exhibited 
	in person or manners any of the before-mentioned peculiarities\, but from 
	his being registered from New Orleans.\n\nThe following morning\, as soon 
	as he had breakfasted\, he started in search of Mr. Ellis. The address was
	 18\, Little Green-street\; and\, by diligently inquiring\, he at length d
	iscovered the required place.\n\nAfter climbing up a long flight of stairs
	 on the outside of an old wooden building\, he found himself before a door
	 on which was written\, \"Charles Ellis\, carpenter and joiner.\" On openi
	ng it\, he ushered himself into the presence of an elderly coloured man\, 
	who was busily engaged in planing off a plank. As soon as Mr. Winston saw 
	his face fully\, he recognized him as his old friend. The hair had grown g
	rey\, and the form was also a trifle bent\, but he would have known him am
	ongst a thousand. Springing forward\, he grasped his hand\, exclaiming\, \
	"My dear old friend\, don't you know me?\" Mr. Ellis shaded his eyes with 
	his hand\, and looked at him intently for a few moments\, but seemed no wi
	ser from his scrutiny. The tears started to Mr. Winston's eyes as he said\
	, \"Many a kind word I'm indebted to you for—I am George Winston—don't
	 you remember little George that used to live on the Carter estate?\"\n\n\
	"Why\, bless me! it can't be that you are the little fellow that used to g
	o home with me sometimes to Savanah\, and that was sold to go to New Orlea
	ns?\"\n\n\"Yes\, the same boy\; I've been through a variety of changes sin
	ce then.\"\n\n\"I should think you had\,\" smilingly replied Mr. Ellis\; \
	"and\, judging from appearances\, very favourable ones! Why\, I took you f
	or a white man—and you are a white man\, as far as complexion is concern
	ed. Laws\, child!\" he continued\, laying his hand familiarly on Winston's
	 shoulders\, \"how you have changed—I should never have known you! The l
	ast time I saw you\, you were quite a shaver\, running about in a long tow
	 shirt\, and regarding a hat and shoes as articles of luxury far beyond yo
	ur reach. And now\,\" said Mr. Ellis\, gazing at him with admiring eyes\, 
	\"just to look at you! Why\, you are as fine a looking man as one would wi
	sh to see in a day's travel. I've often thought of you. It was only the ot
	her day I was talking to my wife\, and wondering what had become of you. S
	he\, although a great deal older than your cousin Emily\, used to be a sor
	t of playmate of hers. Poor Emily! we heard she was sold at public sale in
	 Savanah—did you ever learn what became of her?\" \"Oh\, yes\; I saw her
	 about two months since\, when on my way from New Orleans. You remember ol
	d Colonel Garie? Well\, his son bought her\, and is living with her. They 
	have two children—she is very happy. I really love him\; he is the most 
	kind and affectionate fellow in the world\; there is nothing he would not 
	do to make her happy. Emily will be so delighted to know that I have seen 
	your wife—but who is Mrs. Ellis?—any one that I know?\"\n\n\"I do not 
	know that you are acquainted with her\, but you should remember her mother
	\, old Nanny Tobert\, as she was called\; she kept a little confectioner
	y—almost every one in Savanah knew her.\"\n\n\"I can't say I do\,\" repl
	ied Winston\, reflectively.\n\n\"She came here\,\" continued Mr. Ellis\, \
	"some years ago\, and died soon after her arrival. Her daughter went to li
	ve with the Thomases\, an old Philadelphia family\, and it was from their 
	house I married her.\"\n\n\"Thomases?\" repeated Mr. Winston\; \"that is w
	here I saw your boy—he is the image of you.\"\n\n\"And how came you ther
	e?\" asked Ellis\, with a look of surprise.\n\n\"In the most natural manne
	r possible. I was invited there to dinner yesterday—the bright face of y
	our boy attracted my attention—so I inquired his name\, and that led to 
	the discovery of yourself.\"\n\n\"And do the Thomases know you are a colou
	red man?\" asked Mr. Ellis\, almost speechless with astonishment.\n\n\"I r
	ather think not\,\" laughingly rejoined Mr. Winston.\n\n\"It is a great ri
	sk you run to be passing for white in that way\,\" said Mr. Ellis\, with a
	 grave look. \"But how did you manage to get introduced to that set? They 
	are our very first people.\"\n\n\"It is a long story\,\" was Winston's rep
	ly\; and he then\, as briefly as he could\, related all that had occurred 
	to himself since they last met. \"And now\,\" continued he\, as he finishe
	d his recital\, \"I want to know all about you and your family\; and I als
	o want to see something of the coloured people. Since I've been in the Nor
	th I've met none but whites. I'm not going to return to New Orleans to rem
	ain. I'm here in search of a home. I wish to find some place to settle dow
	n in for life\, where I shall not labour under as many disadvantages as I 
	must struggle against in the South.\"\n\n\"One thing I must tell you\,\" r
	ejoined Mr. Ellis\; \"if you should settle down here\, you'll have to be e
	ither one thing or other—white or coloured. Either you must live exclusi
	vely amongst coloured people\, or go to the whites and remain with them. B
	ut to do the latter\, you must bear in mind that it must never be known th
	at you have a drop of African blood in your veins\, or you would be shunne
	d as if you were a pestilence\; no matter how fair in complexion or how wh
	ite you may be.\"\n\n\"I have not as yet decided on trying the experiment\
	, and I hardly think it probable I shall\,\" rejoined Winston. As he said 
	this he took out his watch\, and was astonished to find how very long his 
	visit had been. He therefore gave his hand to Mr. Ellis\, and promised to 
	return at six o'clock and accompany him home to visit his family.\n\nAs he
	 was leaving the shop\, Mr. Ellis remarked: \"George\, you have not said a
	 word respecting your mother.\" His face flushed\, and the tears started i
	n his eyes\, as he replied\, in a broken voice\, \"She's dead! Only think\
	, Ellis\, she died within a stone's throw of me\, and I searching for her 
	all the while. I never speak of it unless compelled\; it is too harrowing.
	 It was a great trial to me\; it almost broke my heart to think that she p
	erished miserably so near me\, whilst I was in the enjoyment of every luxu
	ry. Oh\, if she could only have lived to see me as I am now!\" continued h
	e\; \"but He ordered it otherwise\, and we must bow. 'Twas God's will it s
	hould be so. Good bye till evening. I shall see you again at six.\"\n\nGre
	at was the surprise of Mrs. Ellis and her daughters on learning from Mr. E
	llis\, when he came home to dinner\, of the events of the morning\; and gr
	eat was the agitation caused by the announcement of the fact\, that his fr
	iend was to be their guest in the evening.\n\nMrs. Ellis proposed inviting
	 some of their acquaintances to meet him\; but to this project her husband
	 objected\, saying he wanted to have a quiet evening with him\, and to tal
	k over old times\; and that persons who were entire strangers to him would
	 only be a restraint upon them.\n\nCaddy seemed quite put out by the annou
	ncement of the intended visit. She declared that nothing was fit to be see
	n\, that the house was in a state of disorder shocking to behold\, and tha
	t there was scarce a place in it fit to sit down in\; and she forthwith be
	gan to prepare for an afternoon's vigorous scrubbing and cleaning.\n\n\"Ju
	st let things remain as they are\, will you\, Caddy dear\,\" said her fath
	er. \"Please be quiet until I get out of the house\,\" he continued\, as s
	he began to make unmistakeable demonstrations towards raising a dust. \"In
	 a few moments you shall have the house to yourself\, only give me time to
	 finish my dinner in peace.\"\n\nEsther\, her mother\, and their sewing we
	re summarily banished to an upstairs room\, whilst Caddy took undivided po
	ssession of the little parlour\, which she soon brought into an astonishin
	g state of cleanliness. The ornaments were arranged at exact distances fro
	m the corners of the mantelpiece\, the looking-glass was polished\, until 
	it appeared to be without spot or blemish\, and its gilt frame was newly a
	dorned with cut paper to protect it from the flies. The best china was bro
	ught out\, carefully dusted\, and set upon the waiter\, and all things wit
	hin doors placed in a state of forwardness to receive their expected guest
	. The door-steps were\, however\, not as white and clean as they might be\
	, and that circumstance pressed upon Caddy's mind. She therefore determine
	d to give them a hasty wipe before retiring to dress for the evening.\n\nH
	aving done this\, and dressed herself to her satisfaction\, she came down 
	stairs to prepare the refreshments for tea. In doing this\, she continuall
	y found herself exposing her new silk dress to great risks. She therefore 
	donned an old petticoat over her skirt\, and tied an old silk handkerchief
	 over her head to protect her hair from flying particles of dust\; and thu
	s arrayed she passed the time in a state of great excitement\, frequently 
	looking out of the window to see if her father and their guest were approa
	ching.\n\nIn one of these excursions\, she\, to her intense indignation\, 
	found a beggar boy endeavouring to draw\, with a piece of charcoal\, an il
	lustration of a horse-race upon her so recently cleaned door-steps.\n\n\"Y
	ou young villain\,\" she almost screamed\, \"go away from there. How dare 
	you make those marks upon the steps? Go off at once\, or I'll give you to 
	a constable.\" To these behests the daring young gentleman only returned a
	 contemptuous laugh\, and put his thumb to his nose in the most provoking 
	manner. \"Ain't you going?\" continued the irate Caddy\, almost choked wit
	h wrath at the sight of the steps\, over which she had so recently toiled\
	, scored in every direction with black marks.\n\n\"Just wait till I come d
	own\, I'll give it to you\, you audacious villain\, you\,\" she cried\, as
	 she closed the window\; \"I'll see if I can't move you!\" Caddy hastily s
	eized a broom\, and descended the stairs with the intention of inflicting 
	summary vengeance upon the dirty delinquent who had so rashly made himself
	 liable to her wrath. Stealing softly down the alley beside the house\, sh
	e sprang suddenly forward\, and brought the broom with all her energy down
	 upon the head of Mr. Winston\, who was standing on the place just left by
	 the beggar. She struck with such force as to completely crush his hat dow
	n over his eyes\, and was about to repeat the blow\, when her father caugh
	t her arm\, and she became aware of the awful mistake she had made.\n\n\"W
	hy\, my child!\" exclaimed her father\, \"what on earth\, is the matter wi
	th you\, have you lost your senses?\" and as he spoke\, he held her at arm
	's length from him to get a better look at her. \"What are you dressed up 
	in this style for?\" he continued\, as he surveyed her from head to foot\;
	 and then bursting into a loud laugh at her comical appearance\, he releas
	ed her\, and she made the quickest possible retreat into the house by the 
	way she came out.\n\nBushing breathless upstairs\, she exclaimed\, \"Oh\, 
	mother\, mother\, I've done it now! They've come\, and I've beat him over 
	the head with a broom!\"\n\n\"Beat whom over the head with a broom?\" aske
	d Mrs. Ellis.\n\n\"Oh\, mother\, I'm so ashamed\, I don't know what to do 
	with myself. I struck Mr. Winston with a broom. Mr. Winston\, the gentlema
	n father has brought home.\"\n\n\"I really believe the child is crazy\,\" 
	said Mrs. Ellis\, surveying the chagrined girl. \"Beat Mr. Winston over th
	e head with a broom! how came you to do it?\"\n\n\"Oh\, mother\, I made a 
	great mistake\; I thought he was a beggar.\"\n\n\"He must be a very differ
	ent looking person from what we have been led to expect\,\" here interrupt
	ed Esther. \"I understood father to say that he was very gentlemanlike in 
	appearance.\"\n\n\"So he is\,\" replied Caddy.\n\n\"But you just said you 
	took him for a beggar?\" replied her mother.\n\n\"Oh\, don't bother me\, d
	on't bother me! my head is all turned upside down.\nDo\, Esther\, go down 
	and let them in—hear how furiously father is knocking!\nOh\, go—do go!
	\"\n\nEsther quickly descended and opened the door for Winston and her fat
	her\; and whilst the former was having the dust removed and his hat straig
	htened\, Mrs. Ellis came down and was introduced by her husband. She laugh
	ingly apologized for the ludicrous mistake Caddy had made\, which afforded
	 great amusement to all parties\, and divers were the jokes perpetrated at
	 her expense during the remainder of the evening. Her equanimity having be
	en restored by Winston's assurances that he rather enjoyed the joke than o
	therwise—and an opportunity having been afforded her to obliterate the o
	bnoxious marks from the door-steps—she exhibited great activity in forwa
	rding all the arrangements for tea.\n\nThey sat a long while round the tab
	le—much time that\, under ordinary circumstances\, would have been given
	 to the demolition of the food before them\, being occupied by the elders 
	of the party in inquiries after mutual friends\, and in relating the many 
	incidents that had occurred since they last met.\n\nTea being at length fi
	nished\, and the things cleared away\, Mrs. Ellis gave the girls permissio
	n to go out. \"Where are you going?\" asked their father.\n\n\"To the libr
	ary company's room—to-night is their last lecture.\"\n\n\"I thought\,\" 
	said Winston\, \"that coloured persons were excluded from such places. I c
	ertainly have been told so several times.\"\n\n\"It is quite true\,\" repl
	ied Mr. Ellis\; \"at the lectures of the white library societies a coloure
	d person would no more be permitted to enter than a donkey or a rattle-sna
	ke. This association they speak of is entirely composed of people of colou
	r. They have a fine library\, a debating club\, chemical apparatus\, colle
	ctions of minerals\, &amp\;c. They have been having a course of lectures d
	elivered before them this winter\, and to-night is the last of the course.
	\"\n\n\"Wouldn't you like to go\, Mr. Winston?\" asked Mrs. Ellis\, who ha
	d a mother's desire to secure so fine an escort for her daughters.\n\n\"No
	\, no—don't\, George\,\" quickly interposed Mr. Ellis\; \"I am selfish e
	nough to want you entirely to myself to-night. The girls will find beaux e
	nough\, I'll warrant you.\" At this request the girls did not seem greatly
	 pleased\, and Miss Caddy\, who already\, in imagination\, had excited the
	 envy of all her female friends by the grand entree she was to make at the
	 Lyceum\, leaning on the arm of Winston\, gave her father a by no means af
	fectionate look\, and tying her bonnet-strings with a hasty jerk\, started
	 out in company with her sister.\n\n\"You appear to be very comfortable he
	re\, Ellis\,\" said Mr. Winston\, looking round the apartment. \"If I am n
	ot too inquisitive—what rent do you pay for this house?\"\n\n\"It's mine
	!\" replied Ellis\, with an air of satisfaction\; \"house\, ground\, and a
	ll\, bought and paid for since I settled here.\"\n\n\"Why\, you are gettin
	g on well! I suppose\,\" remarked Winston\, \"that you are much better off
	 than the majority of your coloured friends. From all I can learn\, the fr
	ee coloured people in the Northern cities are very badly off. I've been fr
	equently told that they suffer dreadfully from want and privations of vari
	ous kinds.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I see you have been swallowing the usual dose that 
	is poured down Southern throats by those Northern negro-haters\, who seem 
	to think it a duty they owe the South to tell all manner of infamous lies 
	upon us free coloured people. I really get so indignant and provoked somet
	imes\, that I scarcely know what to do with myself. Badly off\, and in wan
	t\, indeed! Why\, my dear sir\, we not only support our own poor\, but ass
	ist the whites to support theirs\, and enemies are continually filling the
	 public ear with the most distressing tales of our destitution! Only the o
	ther day the Colonization Society had the assurance to present a petition 
	to the legislature of this State\, asking for an appropriation to assist t
	hem in sending us all to Africa\, that we might no longer remain a burthen
	 upon the State—and they came very near getting it\, too\; had it not be
	en for the timely assistance of young Denbigh\, the son of Judge Denbigh\,
	 they would have succeeded\, such was the gross ignorance that prevailed r
	especting our real condition\, amongst the members of the legislature. He 
	moved a postponement of the vote until he could have time to bring forward
	 facts to support the ground that he had assumed in opposition to the appr
	opriation being made. It was granted\; and\, in a speech that does him hon
	our\, he brought forward facts that proved us to be in a much superior con
	dition to that in which our imaginative enemies had described us. Ay! he d
	id more—he proved us to be in advance of the whites in wealth and genera
	l intelligence: for whilst it was one in fifteen amongst the whites unable
	 to read and write\, it was but one in eighteen amongst the coloured (I wo
	n't pretend to be correct about the figures\, but that was about the relat
	ive proportions)\; and also\, that we paid\, in the shape of taxes upon ou
	r real estate\, more than our proportion for the support of paupers\, insa
	ne\, convicts\, &amp\;c.\"\n\n\"Well\,\" said the astonished Winston\, \"t
	hat is turning the tables completely. You must take me to visit amongst th
	e coloured people\; I want to see as much of them as possible during my st
	ay.\"\n\n\"I'll do what I can for you\, George. I am unable to spare you m
	uch time just at present\, but I'll put you in the hands of one who has ab
	undance of it at his disposal—I will call with you and introduce you to 
	Walters.\"\n\n\"Who is Walters?\" asked Mr. Winston.\n\n\"A friend of mine
	—a dealer in real estate.\"\n\n\"Oh\, then he is a white man?\"\n\n\"Not
	 by any means\,\" laughingly replied Mr. Ellis. \"He is as black as a man 
	can conveniently be. He is very wealthy\; some say that he is worth half a
	 million of dollars. He owns\, to my certain knowledge\, one hundred brick
	 houses. I met him the other day in a towering rage: it appears\, that he 
	owns ten thousand dollars' worth of stock\, in a railroad extending from t
	his to a neighbouring city. Having occasion to travel in it for some littl
	e distance\, he got into the first-class cars\; the conductor\, seeing him
	 there\, ordered him out—he refused to go\, and stated that he was a sha
	reholder. The conductor replied\, that he did not care how much stock he o
	wned\, he was a nigger\, and that no nigger should ride in those cars\; so
	 he called help\, and after a great deal of trouble they succeeded in ejec
	ting him.\" \"And he a stockholder! It was outrageous\,\" exclaimed Winsto
	n. \"And was there no redress?\"\n\n\"No\, none\, practically. He would ha
	ve been obliged to institute a suit against the company\; and\, as public 
	opinion now is\, it would be impossible for him to obtain a verdict in his
	 favour.\"\n\nThe next day Winston was introduced to Mr. Walters\, who exp
	ressed great pleasure in making his acquaintance\, and spent a week in sho
	wing him everything of any interest connected with coloured people.\n\nWin
	ston was greatly delighted with the acquaintances he made\; and the kindne
	ss and hospitality with which he was received made a most agreeable impres
	sion upon him.\n\nIt was during this period that he wrote the glowing lett
	ers to Mr. and Mrs.\nGarie\, the effects of which will be discerned in the
	 next chapter.\n\nCHAPTER V.\nThe Garies decide on a Change.\n\nWe must no
	w return to the Garies\, whom we left listening to Mr. Winston's descripti
	on of what he saw in Philadelphia\, and we need not add anything respectin
	g it to what the reader has already gathered from the last chapter\; our o
	bject being now to describe the effect his narrative produced.\n\nOn the e
	vening succeeding the departure of Winston for New Orleans\, Mr. and Mrs. 
	Garie were seated in a little arbour at a short distance from the house\, 
	and which commanded a magnificent prospect up and down the river. It was o
	vershadowed by tall trees\, from the topmost branches of which depended la
	rge bunches of Georgian moss\, swayed to and fro by the soft spring breeze
	 that came gently sweeping down the long avenue of magnolias\, laden with 
	the sweet breath of the flowers with which the trees were covered.\n\nA cl
	imbing rose and Cape jessamine had almost covered the arbour\, and their i
	ntermingled blossoms\, contrasting with the rich brown colour of the branc
	hes of which it was constructed\, gave it an exceedingly beautiful and pic
	turesque appearance.\n\nThis arbour was their favourite resort in the afte
	rnoons of summer\, as they could see from it the sun go down behind the lo
	w hills opposite\, casting his gleams of golden light upon the tops of the
	 trees that crowned their summits. Northward\, where the chain of hills wa
	s broken\, the waters of the river would be brilliant with waves of gold l
	ong after the other parts of it were shrouded in the gloom of twilight. Mr
	. and Mrs. Garie sat looking at the children\, who were scampering about t
	he garden in pursuit of a pet rabbit which had escaped\, and seemed determ
	ined not to be caught upon any pretence whatever.\n\n\"Are they not beauti
	ful?\" said Mr. Garie\, with pride\, as they bounded past him. \"There are
	 not two prettier children in all Georgia. You don't seem half proud enoug
	h of them\,\" he continued\, looking down upon his wife affectionately.\n\
	nMrs. Garie\, who was half reclining on the seat\, and leaning her head up
	on his shoulder\, replied\, \"Oh\, yes\, I am\, Garie\; I'm sure I love th
	em dearly—oh\, so dearly!\" continued she\, fervently—\"and I only w
	ish\"—here she paused\, as if she felt she had been going to say somethi
	ng that had better remain unspoken.\n\n\"You only wish what\, dear? You we
	re going to say something\,\" rejoined her husband. \"Come\, out with it\,
	 and let me hear what it was.\"\n\n\"Oh\, Garie\, it was nothing of any co
	nsequence.\"\n\n\"Consequence or no consequence\, let me hear what it was\
	, dear.\"\n\n\"Well\, as you insist on hearing it\, I was about to say tha
	t I wish they were not little slaves.\"\n\n\"Oh\, Em! Em!\" exclaimed he\,
	 reproachfully\, \"how can you speak in that manner? I thought\, dear\, th
	at you regarded me in any other light than that of a master. What have I d
	one to revive the recollection that any such relation existed between us? 
	Am I not always kind and affectionate? Did you ever have a wish ungratifie
	d for a single day\, if it was in my power to compass it? or have I ever b
	een harsh or neglectful?\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, dear\, no—forgive me\, Garie
	—do\, pray\, forgive me—you are kindness itself—believe me\, I did n
	ot think to hurt your feelings by saying what I did. I know you do not tre
	at me or them as though we were slaves. But I cannot help feeling that we 
	are such—and it makes me very sad and unhappy sometimes. If anything sho
	uld happen that you should be taken away suddenly\, think what would be ou
	r fate. Heirs would spring up from somewhere\, and we might be sold and se
	parated for ever. Respecting myself I might be indifferent\, but regarding
	 the children I cannot feel so.\"\n\n\"Tut\, tut\, Em! don't talk so gloom
	ily. Do you know of any one\, now\, who has been hired to put me to death?
	\" said he\, smiling.\n\n\"Don't talk so\, dear\; remember\, 'In the midst
	 of life we are in death.' It was only this morning I learned that Celeste
	—you remember Celeste\, don't you?—I cannot recall her last name.\"\n\
	n\"No\, dear\, I really can't say that I do remember whom you refer to.\"\
	n\n\"I can bring her to your recollection\, I think\,\" continued she. \"O
	ne afternoon last fall we were riding together on the Augusta-road\, when 
	you stopped to admire a very neat cottage\, before the door of which two p
	retty children were playing.\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\, I remember something about 
	it—I admired the children so excessively that you became quite jealous.\
	"\n\n\"I don't remember that part of it\,\" she continued. \"But let me te
	ll you my story. Last week the father of the children started for Washingt
	on\; the cars ran off the track\, and were precipitated down a high embank
	ment\, and he and some others were killed. Since his death it has been dis
	covered that all his property was heavily mortgaged to old MacTurk\, the w
	orst man in the whole of Savannah\; and he has taken possession of the pla
	ce\, and thrown her and the children into the slave-pen\, from which they 
	will be sold to the highest bidder at a sheriff's sale. Who can say that a
	 similar fate may never be mine? These things press upon my spirit\, and m
	ake me so gloomy and melancholy at times\, that I wish it were possible to
	 shun even myself. Lately\, more than ever\, have I felt disposed to beg y
	ou to break up here\, and move off to some foreign country where there is 
	no such thing as slavery. I have often thought how delightful it would be 
	for us all to be living in that beautiful Italy you have so often describe
	d to me—or in France either. You said you liked both those places—why 
	not live in one of them?\"\n\n\"No\, no\, Emily\; I love America too much 
	to ever think of living anywhere else. I am much too thorough a democrat e
	ver to swear allegiance to a king. No\, no—that would never do—give me
	 a free country.\"\n\n\"That is just what I say\,\" rejoined Mrs. Garie\; 
	\"that is exactly what I want\; that is why I should like to get away from
	 here\, because this is not a free country—God knows it is not!\"\n\n\"O
	h\, you little traitor! How severely you talk\, abusing your native land i
	n such shocking style\, it's really painful to hear you\,\" said Mr. Garie
	 in a jocular tone.\n\n\"Oh\, love\,\" rejoined she\, \"don't joke\, it's 
	not a subject for jesting. It is heavier upon my heart than you dream of. 
	Wouldn't you like to live in the free States? There is nothing particular 
	to keep you here\, and only think how much better it would be for the chil
	dren: and Garie\,\" she continued in a lower tone\, nestling close to him 
	as she spoke\, and drawing his head towards her\, \"I think I am going t
	o—\" and she whispered some words in his ear\, and as she finished she s
	hook her head\, and her long curls fell down in clusters over her face.\n\
	nMr. Garie put the curls aside\, and kissing her fondly\, asked\, \"How lo
	ng have you known it\, dear?\"\n\n\"Not long\, not very long\,\" she repli
	ed. \"And I have such a yearning that it should be born a free child. I do
	 want that the first air it breathes should be that of freedom. It will ki
	ll me to have another child born here! its infant smiles would only be a r
	eproach to me. Oh\,\" continued she\, in a tone of deep feeling\, \"it is 
	a fearful thing to give birth to an inheritor of chains\;\" and she shudde
	red as she laid her head on her husband's bosom.\n\nMr. Garie's brow grew 
	thoughtful\, and a pause in the conversation ensued. The sun had long sinc
	e gone down\, and here and there the stars were beginning to show their tw
	inkling light. The moon\, which had meanwhile been creeping higher and hig
	her in the blue expanse above\, now began to shed her pale\, misty beams o
	n the river below\, the tiny waves of which broke in little circlets of si
	lver on the shore almost at their feet.\n\nMr. Garie was revolving in his 
	mind the conversation he had so recently held with Mr. Winston respecting 
	the free States. It had been suggested by him that the children should be 
	sent to the North to be educated\, but he had dismissed the notion\, well 
	knowing that the mother would be heart-broken at the idea of parting with 
	her darlings. Until now\, the thought of going to reside in the North had 
	never been presented for his consideration. He was a Southerner in almost 
	all his feelings\, and had never had a scruple respecting the ownership of
	 slaves. But now the fact that he was the master as well as the father of 
	his children\, and that whilst he resided where he did it was out of his p
	ower to manumit them\; that in the event of his death they might be seized
	 and sold by his heirs\, whoever they might be\, sent a thrill of horror t
	hrough him. He had known all this before\, but it had never stood out in s
	uch bold relief until now.\n\n\"What are you thinking of\, Garie?\" asked 
	his wife\, looking up into his face. \"I hope I have not vexed you by what
	 I've said.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, dear\, not at all. I was only thinking whethe
	r you would be any happier if I acceded to your wishes and removed to the 
	North. Here you live in good style—you have a luxurious home\, troops of
	 servants to wait upon you\, a carriage at your disposal. In fact\, everyt
	hing for which you express a desire.\"\n\n\"I know all that\, Garie\, and 
	what I am about to say may seem ungrateful\, but believe me\, dear\, I do 
	not mean it to be so. I had much rather live on crusts and wear the coarse
	st clothes\, and work night and day to earn them\, than live here in luxur
	y\, wearing gilded chains. Carriages and fine clothes cannot create happin
	ess. I have every physical comfort\, and yet my heart is often heavy—oh\
	, so very heavy\; I know I am envied by many for my fine establishment\; y
	et how joyfully would I give it all up and accept the meanest living for t
	he children's freedom—and your love.\"\n\n\"But\, Emily\, granted we sho
	uld remove to the North\, you would find annoyances there as well as here.
	 There is a great deal of prejudice existing there against people of colou
	r\, which\, often exposes them to great inconveniences.\"\n\n\"Yes\, dear\
	, I know all that\; I should expect that. But then on the other hand\, rem
	ember what George said respecting the coloured people themselves\; what a 
	pleasant social circle they form\, and how intelligent many of them are! O
	h\, Garie\, how I have longed for friends!—we have visitors now and then
	\, but none that I can call friends. The gentlemen who come to see you occ
	asionally are polite to me\, but\, under existing circumstances\, I feel t
	hat they cannot entertain for me the respect I think I deserve. I know the
	y look down upon and despise me because I'm a coloured woman. Then there w
	ould be another advantage\; I should have some female society—here I hav
	e none. The white ladies of the neighbourhood will not associate with me\,
	 although I am better educated\, thanks to your care\, than many of them\,
	 so it is only on rare occasions\, when I can coax some of our more cultiv
	ated coloured acquaintances from Savannah to pay us a short visit\, that I
	 have any female society\, and no woman can be happy without it. I have no
	 parents\, nor yet have you. We have nothing we greatly love to leave behi
	nd—no strong ties to break\, and in consequence would be subjected to no
	 great grief at leaving. If I only could persuade you to go!\" said she\, 
	imploringly.\n\n\"Well\, Emily\,\" replied he\, in an undecided manner\, \
	"I'll think about it. I love you so well\, that I believe I should be will
	ing to make any sacrifice for your happiness. But it is getting damp and c
	hilly\, and you know\,\" said he\, smiling\, \"you must be more than usual
	ly careful of yourself now.\"\n\nThe next evening\, and many more besides\
	, were spent in discussing the proposed change. Many objections to it were
	 stated\, weighed carefully\, and finally set aside. Winston was written t
	o and consulted\, and though he expressed some surprise at the proposal\, 
	gave it his decided approval. He advised\, at the same time\, that the est
	ate should not be sold\, but be placed in the hands of some trustworthy pe
	rson\, to be managed in Mr. Garie's absence. Under the care of a first-rat
	e overseer\, it would not only yield a handsome income\, but should they b
	e dissatisfied with their Northern home\, they would have the old place st
	ill in reserve\; and with the knowledge that they had this to fall back up
	on\, they could try their experiment of living in the North with their min
	ds less harassed than they otherwise would be respecting the result.\n\nAs
	 Mr. Garie reflected more and more on the probable beneficial results of t
	he project\, his original disinclination to it diminished\, until he final
	ly determined on running the risk\; and he felt fully rewarded for this co
	ncession to his wife's wishes when he saw her recover all her wonted seren
	ity and sprightliness.\n\nThey were soon in all the bustle and confusion c
	onsequent on preparing for a long journey. When Mr. Garie's determination 
	to remove became known\, great consternation prevailed on the plantation\,
	 and dismal forebodings were entertained by the slaves as to the result up
	on themselves.\n\nDivers were the lamentations heard on all sides\, when t
	hey were positively convinced that \"massa was gwine away for true\;\" but
	 they were somewhat pacified\, when they learned that no one was to be sol
	d\, and that the place would not change hands. For Mr. Garie was a very ki
	nd master\, and his slaves were as happy as slaves can be under any circum
	stances. Not much less was the surprise which the contemplated change exci
	ted in the neighbourhood\, and it was commented on pretty freely by his ac
	quaintances. One of them—to whom he had in conversation partially opened
	 his mind\, and explained that his intended removal grew out of anxiety re
	specting the children\, and his own desire that they might be where they c
	ould enjoy the advantages of schools\, &amp\;c.—sneered almost to his fa
	ce at what he termed his crack-brained notions\; and subsequently\, in rel
	ating to another person the conversation he had had with Mr. Garie\, spoke
	 of him as \"a soft-headed fool\, led by the nose by a yaller wench. Why c
	an't he act\,\" he said\, \"like other men who happen to have half-white c
	hildren—breed them up for the market\, and sell them?\" and he might hav
	e added\, \"as I do\,\" for he was well known to have so acted by two or t
	hree of his own tawny offspring.\n\nMr. Garie\, at the suggestion of Winst
	on\, wrote to Mr. Walters\, to procure them a small\, but neat and comfort
	able house\, in Philadelphia\; which\, when procured\, he was to commit to
	 the care of Mr. and Mrs. Ellis\, who were to have it furnished and made r
	eady to receive him and his family on their arrival\, as Mr. Garie desired
	 to save his wife as much as possible\, from the care and anxiety attendan
	t upon the arrangement of a new residence.\n\nOne most important matter\, 
	and on which depended the comfort and happiness of his people\, was the se
	lection of a proper overseer. On its becoming known that he required such 
	a functionary\, numbers of individuals who aspired to that dignified and h
	onourable office applied forthwith\; and as it was also known that the mas
	ter was to be absent\, and that\, in consequence\, the party having it und
	er his entire control\, could cut and slash without being interfered with\
	, the value of the situation was greatly enhanced. It had also another irr
	esistible attraction\, the absence of the master would enable the overseer
	 to engage in the customary picking and stealing operations\, with less ch
	ance of detection.\n\nIn consequence of all these advantages\, there was n
	o want of applicants. Great bony New England men\, traitors to the air the
	y first breathed\, came anxiously forward to secure the prize. Mean\, weas
	en-faced\, poor white Georgians\, who were able to show testimonials of th
	eir having produced large crops with a small number of hands\, and who cou
	ld tell to a fraction how long a slave could be worked on a given quantity
	 of corn\, also put in their claims for consideration. Short\, thick-set m
	en\, with fierce faces\, who gloried in the fact that they had at various 
	times killed refractory negroes\, also presented themselves to undergo the
	 necessary examination.\n\nMr. Garie sickened as he contemplated the motle
	y mass of humanity that presented itself with such eagerness for the attai
	nment of so degrading an office\; and as he listened to their vulgar boast
	ings and brutal language\, he blushed to think that such men were his coun
	trymen.\n\nNever until now had he had occasion for an overseer. He was not
	 ambitious of being known to produce the largest crop to the acre\, and hi
	s hands had never been driven to that shocking extent\, so common with his
	 neighbours. He had been his own manager\, assisted by an old negro\, call
	ed Ephraim—most generally known as Eph\, and to him had been entrusted t
	he task of immediately superintending the hands engaged in the cultivation
	 of the estate. This old man was a great favourite with the children\, and
	 Clarence\, who used to accompany him on his pony over the estate\, regard
	ed him as the most wonderful and accomplished coloured gentleman in existe
	nce.\n\nEph was in a state of great perturbation at the anticipated change
	\, and he earnestly sought to be permitted to accompany them to the North.
	 Mr. Garie was\, however\, obliged to refuse his request\, as he said\, th
	at it was impossible that the place could get on without him.\n\nAn overse
	er being at last procured\, whose appearance and manners betokened a bette
	r heart than that of any who had yet applied for the situation\, and who w
	as also highly-recommended for skill and honesty\; nothing now remained to
	 prevent Mr. Garie's early departure.\n\nCHAPTER VI.\nPleasant News.\n\nOn
	e evening Mr. Ellis was reading the newspaper\, and Mrs. Ellis and the gir
	ls were busily engaged in sewing\, when who should come in but Mr. Walters
	\, who had entered without ceremony at the front door\, which had been lef
	t open owing to the unusual heat of the weather.\n\n\"Here you all are\, h
	ard at work\,\" exclaimed he\, in his usual hearty manner\, accepting at t
	he same time the chair offered to him by Esther.\n\n\"Come\, now\,\" conti
	nued he\, \"lay aside your work and newspapers\, for I have great news to 
	communicate.\"\n\n\"Indeed\, what is it?—what can it be?\" cried the thr
	ee females\, almost in a breath\; \"do let us hear it!\"\n\n\"Oh\,\" said 
	Mr. Walters\, in a provokingly slow tone\, \"I don't think I'll tell you t
	o-night\; it may injure your rest\; it will keep till to-morrow.\"\n\n\"No
	w\, that is always the way with Mr. Walters\,\" said Caddy\, pettishly\; \
	"he always rouses one's curiosity\, and then refuses to gratify it\;—he 
	is so tantalizing sometimes!\"\n\n\"I'll tell you this much\,\" said he\, 
	looking slily at Caddy\, \"it is connected with a gentleman who had the mi
	sfortune to be taken for a beggar\, and who was beaten over the head in co
	nsequence by a young lady of my acquaintance.\"\n\n\"Now\, father has been
	 telling you that\,\" exclaimed Caddy\, looking confused\, \"and I don't t
	hank him for it either\; I hear of that everywhere I go—even the Burtons
	 know of it.\"\n\nMr. Walters now looked round the room\, as though he mis
	sed some one\, and finally exclaimed\, \"Where is Charlie? I thought I mis
	sed somebody—where is my boy?\"\n\n\"We have put him out to live at Mrs.
	 Thomas's\,\" answered Mrs. Ellis\, hesitatingly\, for she knew Mr. Walter
	s' feelings respecting the common practice of sending little coloured boys
	 to service. \"It is a very good place for him\,\" continued she—\"a mos
	t excellent place.\"\n\n\"That is too bad\,\" rejoined Mr. Walters—\"too
	 bad\; it is a shame to make a servant of a bright clever boy like that. W
	hy\, Ellis\, man\, how came you to consent to his going? The boy should be
	 at school. It really does seem to me that you people who have good and sm
	art boys take the very course to ruin them. The worst thing you can do wit
	h a boy of his age is to put him at service. Once get a boy into the habit
	 of working for a stipend\, and\, depend upon it\, when he arrives at manh
	ood\, he will think that if he can secure so much a month for the rest of 
	his life he will be perfectly happy. How would you like him to be a subser
	vient old numskull\, like that old Robberts of theirs?\"\n\nHere Esther in
	terrupted Mr. Walters by saying\, \"I am very glad to hear you express you
	rself in that manner\, Mr. Walters—very glad. Charlie is such a bright\,
	 active little fellow\; I hate to have him living there as a servant. And 
	he dislikes it\, too\, as much as any one can. I do wish mother would take
	 him away.\"\n\n\"Hush\, Esther\,\" said her mother\, sharply\; \"your mot
	her lived at service\, and no one ever thought the worse of her for it.\"\
	n\nEsther looked abashed\, and did not attempt to say anything farther.\n\
	n\"Now\, look here\, Ellen\,\" said Mr. Walters. (He called her Ellen\, fo
	r he had been long intimate with the family.) \"If you can't get on withou
	t the boy's earning something\, why don't you do as white women and men do
	? Do you ever find them sending their boys out as servants? No\; they rath
	er give them a stock of matches\, blacking\, newspapers\, or apples\, and 
	start them out to sell them. What is the result? The boy that learns to se
	ll matches soon learns to sell other things\; he learns to make bargains\;
	 he becomes a small trader\, then a merchant\, then a millionaire. Did you
	 ever hear of any one who had made a fortune at service? Where would I or 
	Ellis have been had we been hired out all our lives at so much a month? It
	 begets a feeling of dependence to place a boy in such a situation\; and\,
	 rely upon it\, if he stays there long\, it will spoil him for anything be
	tter all his days.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis was here compelled to add\, by way of j
	ustifying herself\, that it was not their intention to let him remain ther
	e permanently\; his father only having given his consent for him to serve 
	during the vacation.\n\n\"Well\, don't let him stay there longer\, I pray 
	you\,\" continued Walters. \"A great many white people think that we are o
	nly fit for servants\, and I must confess we do much to strengthen the opi
	nion by permitting our children to occupy such situations when we are not 
	in circumstances to compel us to do so. Mrs. Thomas may tell you that they
	 respect their old servant Robberts as much as they do your husband\; but 
	they don't\, nevertheless—I don't believe a word of it. It is impossible
	 to have the same respect for the man who cleans your boots\, that you hav
	e for the man who plans and builds your house.\"\n\n\"Oh\, well\, Walters\
	,\" here interposed Mr. Ellis\, \"I don't intend the boy to remain there\,
	 so don't get yourself into an unnecessary state of excitement about it. L
	et us hear what this great news is that you have brought.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I ha
	d almost forgotten it\,\" laughingly replied Walters\, at the same time fu
	mbling in his pocket for a letter\, which he at length produced. \"Here\,\
	" he continued\, opening it\, \"is a letter I have received from a Mr. Gar
	ie\, enclosing another from our friend Winston. This Mr. Garie writes me t
	hat he is coming to the North to settle\, and desires me to procure them a
	 house\; and he says also that he has so far presumed upon an early acquai
	ntance of his wife with Mrs. Ellis as to request that she will attend to t
	he furnishing of it. You are to purchase all that is necessary to make the
	m comfortable\, and I am to foot the bills.\"\n\n\"What\, you don't mean E
	mily Winston's husband?\" said the astonished Mrs.\nEllis.\n\n\"I can't sa
	y whose husband it is\, but from Winston's letter\,\" replied Mr.\nWalters
	\, \"I suppose he is the person alluded to.\"\n\n\"That is news\,\" contin
	ued Mrs. Ellis. \"Only think\, she was a little mite of a thing when I fir
	st knew her\, and now she is a woman and the mother of two children. How t
	ime does fly. I must be getting quite old\,\" concluded she\, with a sigh.
	\n\n\"Nonsense\, Ellen\,\" remarked Mr. Ellis\, \"you look surprisingly yo
	ung\, you are quite a girl yet. Why\, it was only the other day I was aske
	d if you were one of my daughters.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis and the girls laughed a
	t this sally of their father's\, who asked\nMr. Walters if he had as yet a
	ny house in view.\n\n\"There is one of my houses in Winter-street that I t
	hink will just suit them. The former tenants moved out about a week since.
	 If I can call for you to-morrow\,\" he continued\, turning to Mrs. Ellis\
	, \"will you accompany me there to take a look at the premises?\"\n\n\"It 
	is a dreadful long walk\,\" replied Mrs. Ellis. \"How provoking it is to t
	hink\, that because persons are coloured they are not permitted to ride in
	 the omnibuses or other public conveyances! I do hope I shall live to see 
	the time when we shall be treated as civilized creatures should be.\"\n\n\
	"I suppose we shall be so treated when the Millennium comes\,\" rejoined W
	alters\, \"not before\, I am afraid\; and as we have no reason to anticipa
	te that it will arrive before to-morrow\, we shall have to walk to Winter-
	street\, or take a private conveyance. At any rate\, I shall call for you 
	to-morrow at ten. Good night—remember\, at ten.\" \"Well\, this is a str
	ange piece of intelligence\,\" exclaimed Mrs. Ellis\, as the door closed u
	pon Mr. Walters. \"I wonder what on earth can induce them to move on here.
	 Their place\, I am told\, is a perfect paradise. In old Colonel Garie's t
	ime it was said to be the finest in Georgia. I wonder if he really intends
	 to live here permanently?\"\n\n\"I can't say\, my dear\,\" replied Mrs. E
	llis\; \"I am as much in the dark as you are.\"\n\n\"Perhaps they are gett
	ing poor\, Ellis\, and are coming here because they can live cheaper.\"\n\
	n\"Oh\, no\, wife\; I don't think that can be the occasion of their remova
	l. I rather imagine he purposes emancipating his children. He cannot do it
	 legally in Georgia\; and\, you know\, by bringing them here\, and letting
	 them remain six months\, they are free—so says the law of some of the S
	outhern States\, and I think of Georgia.\"\n\nThe next morning Mrs. Ellis\
	, Caddy\, and Mr. Walters\, started for Winter-street\; it was a very long
	 walk\, and when they arrived there\, they were all pretty well exhausted.
	\n\n\"Oh\, dear\,\" exclaimed Mrs. Ellis\, after walking upstairs\, \"I am
	 so tired\, and there is not a chair in the house. I must rest here\,\" sa
	id she\, seating herself upon the stairs\, and looking out upon the garden
	. \"What a large yard! if ours were only as large as this\, what a delight
	ful place I could make of it! But there is no room to plant anything at ou
	r house\, the garden is so very small.\"\n\nAfter they were all somewhat r
	ested\, they walked through the house and surveyed the rooms\, making some
	 favourable commentary upon each.\n\n\"The house don't look as if it would
	 want much cleaning\,\" said Caddy\, with a tone of regret.\n\n\"So much t
	he better\, I should say\,\" suggested Mr. Walters.\n\n\"Not as Caddy view
	s the matter\,\" rejoined Mrs. Ellis. \"She is so fond of house-cleaning\,
	 that I positively think she regards the cleanly state of the premises as 
	rather a disadvantage than otherwise.\" They were all\, however\, very wel
	l pleased with the place\; and on their way home they settled which should
	 be the best bedroom\, and where the children should sleep. They also calc
	ulated how much carpet and oilcloth would be necessary\, and what style of
	 furniture should be put in the parlour.\n\n\"I think the letter said plai
	n\, neat furniture\, and not too expensive\, did it not?\" asked Mrs. Elli
	s.\n\n\"I think those were the very words\,\" replied Caddy\; \"and\, oh\,
	 mother\, isn't it nice to have the buying of so many pretty things? I do 
	so love to shop!\"\n\n\"Particularly with some one else's money\,\" rejoin
	ed her mother\, with a smile.\n\n\"Yes\, or one's own either\, when one ha
	s it\,\" continued Caddy\; \"I like to spend money under any circumstances
	.\"\n\nThus in conversation relative to the house and its fixtures\, they 
	beguiled the time until they reached their home. On arriving there\, Mrs. 
	Ellis found Robberts awaiting her return with a very anxious countenance. 
	He informed her that Mrs. Thomas wished to see her immediately\; that Char
	lie had been giving that estimable lady a world of trouble\; and that her 
	presence was necessary to set things to rights.\n\n\"What has he been doin
	g?\" asked Mrs. Ellis.\n\n\"Oh\, lots of things! He and aunt Rachel don't 
	get on together at all\; and last night he came nigh having the house burn
	ed down over our heads.\"\n\n\"Why\, Robberts\, you don't tell me so! What
	 a trial boys are\,\" sighed Mrs.\nEllis.\n\n\"He got on first rate for a 
	week or two\; but since that he has been raising Satan. He and aunt Rachel
	 had a regular brush yesterday\, and he has actually lamed the old woman t
	o that extent she won't be able to work for a week to come.\"\n\n\"Dear\, 
	dear\, what am I to do?\" said the perplexed Mrs. Ellis\; \"I can't go up 
	there immediately\, I am too tired. Say to Mrs. Thomas I will come up this
	 evening. I wonder\,\" concluded she\, \"what has come over the boy.\" \"M
	other\, you know how cross aunt Rachel is\; I expect she has been ill-trea
	ting him. He is so good-natured\, that he never would behave improperly to
	 an old person unless goaded to it by some very harsh usage.\"\n\n\"That's
	 the way—go on\, Esther\, find some excuse for your angel\,\" said Caddy
	\, ironically. \"Of course that lamb could not do anything wrong\, and\, a
	ccording to your judgment\, he never does\; but\, I tell you\, he is as ba
	d as any other boy—boys are boys. I expect he has been tracking over the
	 floor after aunt Rachel has scrubbed it\, or has been doing something equ
	ally provoking\; he has been in mischief\, depend upon it.\"\n\nThings had
	 gone on very well with Master Charlie for the first two weeks after his i
	ntroduction into the house of the fashionable descendant of the worthy mak
	er of leathern breeches. His intelligence\, combined with the quickness an
	d good-humour with which he performed the duties assigned him\, quite won 
	the regard of the venerable lady who presided over that establishment. It 
	is true she had detected him in several attempts upon the peace and well-b
	eing of aunt Rachel's Tom\; but with Tom she had little sympathy\, he havi
	ng recently made several felonious descents upon her stores of cream and c
	ustards. In fact\, it was not highly probable\, if any of his schemes had 
	resulted seriously to the spiteful protege of aunt Rachel\, that Mrs. Thom
	as would have been overwhelmed with grief\, or disposed to inflict any sev
	ere punishment on the author of the catastrophe.\n\nUnfortunately for Mrs.
	 Thomas\, Charlie\, whilst going on an errand\, had fallen in with his anc
	ient friend and adviser—in short\, he had met no less a person than the 
	formerly all-sufficient Kinch. Great was the delight of both parties at th
	is unexpected meeting\, and warm\, indeed\, was the exchange of mutual con
	gratulations on this auspicious event.\n\nKinch\, in the excess of his del
	ight\, threw his hat several feet in the air\; nor did his feelings of ple
	asure undergo the least abatement when that dilapidated portion of his cos
	tume fell into a bed of newly-mixed lime\, from which he rescued it with g
	reat difficulty and at no little personal risk.\n\n\"Hallo! Kinch\, old fe
	llow\, how are you?\" cried Charlie\; \"I've been dying to see you—why h
	aven't you been up?\"\n\n\"Why\, I did come up often\, but that old witch 
	in the kitchen wouldn't let me see you—she abused me scandalous. I wante
	d to pull her turban off and throw it in the gutter. Why\, she called me a
	 dirty beggar\, and threatened to throw cold water on me if I didn't go aw
	ay. Phew! ain't she an old buster!\"\n\n\"Why\, I never knew you were ther
	e.\"\n\n\"Yes\,\" continued Kinch\; \"and I saw you another time hung up b
	ehind the carriage. I declare\, Charlie\, you looked so like a little monk
	ey\, dressed up in that sky-blue coat and silver buttons\, that I liked to
	 have died a-laughing at you\;\" and Kinch was so overcome by the recollec
	tion of the event in question\, that he was obliged to sit down upon a doo
	r-step to recover himself.\n\n\"Oh\, I do hate to wear this confounded liv
	ery!' said Charlie\, dolefully—\" the boys scream 'Johnny Coat-tail' aft
	er me in the streets\, and call me 'blue jay\,' and 'blue nigger\,' and lo
	ts of other names. I feel that all that's wanting to make a complete monke
	y of me\, is for some one to carry me about on an organ.\"\n\n\"What do yo
	u wear it for\, then?\" asked Kinch.\n\n\"Because I can't help myself\, th
	at's the reason. The boys plague me to that extent sometimes\, that I feel
	 like tearing the things into bits—but mother says I must wear it. Kinch
	\,\" concluded he\, significantly\, \"something will have to be done\, I c
	an't stand it.\"\n\n\"You remember what I told you about the wig\, don't y
	ou?\" asked Kinch\; and\, on receiving an affirmative reply\, he continued
	\, \"Just try that on\, and see how it goes—you'll find it'll work like 
	a charm\; it's a regular footman-expatriator—just try it now\; you'll se
	e if it isn't the thing to do the business for you.\" \"I'm determined to 
	be as bad as I can\,\" rejoined Charlie\; \"I'm tired enough of staying th
	ere: that old aunt Rach is a devil—I don't believe a saint from heaven c
	ould get on with her\; I'm expecting we'll have a pitched battle every day
	.\"\n\nBeguiling the time with this and similar conversation\, they reache
	d the house to which Charlie had been despatched with a note\; after which
	\, he turned his steps homeward\, still accompanied by the redoubtable Kin
	ch.\n\nAs ill luck would have it\, they passed some boys who were engaged 
	in a game of marbles\, Charlie's favourite pastime\, and\, on Kinch's offe
	ring him the necessary stock to commence play\, he launched into the game\
	, regardless of the fact that the carriage was ordered for a drive within 
	an hour\, and that he was expected to fill his accustomed place in the rea
	r of that splendid vehicle.\n\nOnce immersed in the game\, time flew rapid
	ly on. Mrs. Thomas awaited his return until her patience was exhausted\, w
	hen she started on her drive without him. As they were going through a qui
	et street\, to her horror and surprise\, prominent amidst a crowd of dirty
	 boys\, she discovered her little footman\, with his elegant blue livery c
	overed with dirt and sketches in white chalk\; for\, in the excitement of 
	the game\, Charlie had not observed that Kinch was engaged in drawing on t
	he back of his coat his favourite illustration\, to wit\, a skull and cros
	s-bones.\n\n\"Isn't that our Charlie?\" said she to her daughter\, surveyi
	ng the crowd of noisy boys through her eye-glass. \"I really believe it is
	—that is certainly our livery\; pull the check-string\, and stop the car
	riage.\"\n\nNow Robberts had been pressed into service in consequence of C
	harlie's absence\, and was in no very good humour at being compelled to ai
	r his rheumatic old shins behind the family-carriage. It can therefore be 
	readily imagined with what delight he recognized the delinquent footman am
	idst the crowd\, and with what alacrity he descended and pounced upon him 
	just at the most critical moment of the game. Clutching fast hold of him b
	y the collar of his coat\, he dragged him to the carriage-window\, and hel
	d him before the astonished eyes of his indignant mistress\, who lifted up
	 her hands in horror at the picture he presented. \"Oh! you wretched boy\,
	\" said she\, \"just look at your clothes\, all covered with chalk-marks a
	nd bespattered with lime! Your livery is totally ruined—and your knees\,
	 too—only look at them—the dirt is completely ground into them.\"\n\n\
	"But you haven't seed his back\, marm\,\" said Robberts\; \"he's got the p
	irate's flag drawn on it. That boy'll go straight to the devil—I know he
	 will.\"\n\nAll this time Charlie\, to his great discomfiture\, was being 
	shaken and turned about by Robberts in the most unceremonious manner. Kinc
	h\, with his usual audacity\, was meanwhile industriously engaged in traci
	ng on Robbert's coat a similar picture to that he had so skilfully drawn o
	n Charlie's\, to the great delight of a crowd of boys who stood admiring s
	pectators of his artistic performances. The coachman\, however\, observing
	 this operation\, brought it to a rather hasty conclusion by a well direct
	ed cut of the whip across the fingers of the daring young artist. This so 
	enraged Kinch\, that in default of any other missile\, he threw his lime-c
	overed cap at the head of the coachman\; but\, unfortunately for himself\,
	 the only result of his exertions was the lodgment of his cap in the topmo
	st bough of a neighbouring tree\, from whence it was rescued with great di
	fficulty.\n\n\"What shall we do with him?\" asked Mrs. Thomas\, in a despa
	iring tone\, as she looked at Charlie.\n\n\"Put him with the coachman\,\" 
	suggested Mrs. Morton.\n\n\"He can't sit there\, the horses are so restive
	\, and the seat is only constructed for one\, and he would be in the coach
	man's way. I suppose he must find room on behind with Robberts.\"\n\n\"I w
	on't ride on the old carriage\,\" cried Charlie\, nerved by despair\; \"I 
	won't stay here nohow. I'm going home to my mother\;\" and as he spoke he 
	endeavoured to wrest himself from Robberts' grasp. \"Put him in here\,\" s
	aid Mrs. Thomas\; \"it would never do to let him go\, for he will run home
	 with some distressing tale of ill-treatment\; no\, we must keep him until
	 I can send for his mother—put him in here.\"\n\nMuch to Mrs. Morton's d
	isgust\, Charlie was bundled by Robberts into the bottom of the carriage\,
	 where he sat listening to the scolding of Mrs. Thomas and her daughter un
	til they arrived at home. He remained in disgrace for several days after t
	his adventure\; but as Mrs. Thomas well knew that she could not readily fi
	ll his place with another\, she made a virtue of necessity\, and kindly lo
	oked over this first offence.\n\nThe situation was\, however\, growing mor
	e and more intolerable. Aunt Rachel and he had daily skirmishes\, in which
	 he was very frequently worsted. He had held several hurried consultations
	 with Kinch through the grating of the cellar window\, and was greatly che
	ered and stimulated in the plans he intended to pursue by the advice and s
	ympathy of his devoted friend. Master Kinch's efforts to console Charlie w
	ere not without great risk to himself\, as he had on two or three occasion
	s narrowly escaped falling into the clutches of Robberts\, who well rememb
	ered Kinch's unprecedented attempt upon the sacredness of his livery\; and
	 what the result might have been had the latter fallen into his hands\, we
	 cannot contemplate without a shudder.\n\nThese conferences between Kinch 
	and Charlie produced their natural effect\, and latterly it had been sever
	al times affirmed by aunt Rachel that\, \"Dat air boy was gittin' 'tirely 
	too high—gittin' bove hissef 'pletely—dat he was gittin' more and more
	 aggriwatin' every day—dat she itched to git at him—dat she 'spected n
	othin' else but what she'd be 'bliged to take hold o' him\;\" and she comp
	orted herself generally as if she was crazy for the conflict which she saw
	 must sooner or later occur.\n\nCharlie\, unable on these occasions to rep
	ly to her remarks without precipitating a conflict for which he did not fe
	el prepared\, sought to revenge himself upon the veteran Tom\; and such wa
	s the state of his feelings\, that he bribed Kinch\, with a large lump of 
	sugar and the leg of a turkey\, to bring up his mother's Jerry\, a fierce 
	young cat\, and they had the satisfaction of shutting him up in the wood-h
	ouse with the belligerent Tom\, who suffered a signal defeat at Jerry's cl
	aws\, and was obliged to beat a hasty retreat through the window\, with a 
	seriously damaged eye\, and with the fur torn off his back in numberless p
	laces. After this Charlie had the pleasure of hearing aunt Rachel frequent
	ly bewail the condition of her favourite\, whose deplorable state she was 
	inclined to ascribe to his influence\, though she was unable to bring it h
	ome to him in such a manner as to insure his conviction.\n\nCHAPTER VII.\n
	Mrs. Thomas has her Troubles.\n\nMrs. Thomas was affected\, as silly women
	 sometimes are\, with an intense desire to be at the head of the ton. For 
	this object she gave grand dinners and large evening parties\, to which we
	re invited all who\, being two or three removes from the class whose membe
	rs occupy the cobbler's bench or the huckster's stall\, felt themselves at
	 liberty to look down upon the rest of the world from the pinnacle on whic
	h they imagined themselves placed. At these social gatherings the conversa
	tion never turned upon pedigree\, and if any of the guests chanced by acci
	dent to allude to their ancestors\, they spoke of them as members of the f
	amily\, who\, at an early period of their lives\, were engaged in mercanti
	le pursuits.\n\nAt such dinners Mrs. Thomas would sit for hours\, mumbling
	 dishes that disagreed with her\; smiling at conversations carried on in v
	illanous French\, of which language she did not understand a word\; and ad
	miring the manners of addle-headed young men (who got tipsy at her evening
	 parties)\, because they had been to Europe\, and were therefore considere
	d quite men of the world. These parties and dinners she could not be induc
	ed to forego\, although the late hours and fatigue consequent thereon woul
	d place her on the sick-list for several days afterwards. As soon\, howeve
	r\, as she recovered sufficiently to resume her place at the table\, she w
	ould console herself with a dinner of boiled mutton and roasted turnips\, 
	as a slight compensation for the unwholesome French dishes she had compell
	ed herself to swallow on the occasions before mentioned. Amongst the other
	 modern fashions she had adopted\, was that of setting apart one morning o
	f the week for the reception of visitors\; and she had mortally offended s
	everal of her oldest friends by obstinately refusing to admit them at any 
	other time. Two or three difficulties had occurred with Robberts\, in cons
	equence of this new arrangement\, as he could not be brought to see the pr
	opriety of saying to visitors that Mrs. Thomas was \"not at home\,\" when 
	he knew she was at that very moment upstairs peeping over the banisters. H
	is obstinacy on this point had induced her to try whether she could not tr
	ain Charlie so as to fit him for the important office of uttering the fash
	ionable and truthless \"not at home\" with unhesitating gravity and decoru
	m\; and\, after a series of mishaps\, she at last believed her object was 
	effected\, until an unlucky occurrence convinced her to the contrary.\n\nM
	rs. Thomas\, during the days on which she did not receive company\, would 
	have presented\, to any one who might have had the honour to see that vene
	rable lady\, an entirely different appearance to that which she assumed on
	 gala days. A white handkerchief supplied the place of the curling wig\, a
	nd the tasty French cap was replaced by a muslin one\, decorated with an i
	mmense border of ruffling\, that flapped up and down over her silver spect
	acles in the most comical manner possible. A short flannel gown and a dimi
	ty petticoat of very antique pattern and scanty dimensions\, completed her
	 costume. Thus attired\, and provided with a duster\, she would make unexp
	ected sallies into the various domestic departments\, to see that everythi
	ng was being properly conducted\, and that no mal-practices were perpetrat
	ed at times when it was supposed she was elsewhere. She showed an intuitiv
	e knowledge of all traps set to give intimation of her approach\, and woul
	d come upon aunt Rachel so stealthily as to induce her to declare\, \"Dat 
	old Mrs. Thomas put her more in mind of a ghost dan of any other libin ani
	mal.\"\n\nOne morning\, whilst attired in the manner described\, Mrs. Thom
	as had been particularly active in her excursions through the house\, and 
	had driven the servants to their wits' ends by her frequent descents upon 
	them at the most unexpected times\, thereby effectually depriving them of 
	the short breathing intervals they were anxious to enjoy. Charlie in parti
	cular had been greatly harassed by her\, and was sent flying from place to
	 place until his legs were nearly run off\, as he expressed it. And so\, w
	hen Lord Cutanrun\, who was travelling in America to give his estates in E
	ngland an opportunity to recuperate\, presented his card\, Charlie\, in re
	venge\, showed him into the drawing-room\, where he knew that Mrs. Thomas 
	was busily engaged trimming an oil-lamp. Belying on the explicit order she
	 had given to say that she was not at home\, she did not even look up when
	 his lordship entered\, and as he advanced towards her\, she extended to h
	im a basin of dirty water\, saying\, \"Here\, take this.\" Receiving no re
	sponse she looked up\, and to her astonishment and horror beheld\, not Cha
	rlie\, but Lord Cutanrun. In the agitation consequent upon his unexpected 
	appearance\, she dropped the basin\, the contents of which\, splashing in 
	all directions\, sadly discoloured his lordship's light pants\, and greatl
	y damaged the elegant carpet.\n\n\"Oh! my lord\,\" she exclaimed\, \"I did
	n't—couldn't—wouldn't—\" and\, unable to ejaculate further\, she fai
	rly ran out of the apartment into the entry\, where she nearly fell over C
	harlie\, who was enjoying the confusion his conduct had created. \"Oh! you
	 limb!—you little wretch!\" said she. \"You knew I was not at home!\"\n\
	n\"Why\, where are you now?\" he asked\, with the most provoking air of in
	nocence. \"If you ain't in the house now\, you never was.\"\n\n\"Never min
	d\, sir\,\" said she\, \"never mind. I'll settle with you for this. Don't 
	stand there grinning at me\; go upstairs and tell Mrs. Morton to come down
	 immediately\, and then get something to wipe up that water. O dear! my be
	autiful carpet! And for a lord to see me in such a plight! Oh! it's abomin
	able! I'll give it to you\, you scamp! You did it on purpose\,\" continued
	 the indignant Mrs. Thomas. \"Don't deny it—I know you did. What are you
	 standing there for? Why don't you call Mrs. Morton?\" she concluded\, as 
	Charlie\, chuckling over the result of his trick\, walked leisurely upstai
	rs. \"That boy will be the death of me\,\" she afterwards said\, on relati
	ng the occurrence to her daughter. \"Just to think\, after all the trouble
	 I've had teaching him when to admit people and when not\, that he should 
	serve me such a trick. I'm confident he did it purposely.\" Alas! for poor
	 Mrs. Thomas\; this was only the first of a series of annoyances that Char
	lie had in store\, with which to test her patience and effect his own deli
	verance.\n\nA few days after\, one of their grand dinners was to take plac
	e\, and Charlie had been revolving in his mind the possibility of his find
	ing some opportunity\, on that occasion\, to remove the old lady's wig\; f
	eeling confident that\, could he accomplish that feat\, he would be permit
	ted to turn his back for ever on the mansion of Mrs. Thomas.\n\nNever had 
	Mrs. Thomas appeared more radiant than at this dinner. All the guests whos
	e attendance she had most desired were present\, a new set of china had la
	tely arrived from Paris\, and she was in full anticipation of a grand triu
	mph. Now\, to Charlie had been assigned the important duty of removing the
	 cover from the soup-tureen which was placed before his mistress\, and the
	 little rogue had settled upon that moment as the most favourable for the 
	execution of his purpose. He therefore secretly affixed a nicely crooked p
	in to the elbow of his sleeve\, and\, as he lifted the cover\, adroitly ho
	oked it into her cap\, to which he knew the wig was fastened\, and in a tw
	inkling had it off her head\, and before she could recover from her astoni
	shment and lay down the soup-ladle he had left the room. The guests stared
	 and tittered at the grotesque figure she presented\,—her head being cov
	ered with short white hair\, and her face as red as a peony at the mortify
	ing situation in which she was placed. As she rose from her chair Charlie 
	presented himself\, and handed her the wig\, with an apology for the accid
	ent. In her haste to put it on\, she turned it wrong side foremost\; the l
	aughter of the guests could now no longer be restrained\, and in the midst
	 of it Mrs. Thomas left the room. Encountering Charlie as she went\, she a
	lmost demolished him in her wrath\; not ceasing to belabour him till his o
	utcries became so loud as to render her fearful that he would alarm the gu
	ests\; and she then retired to her room\, where she remained until the par
	ty broke up.\n\nIt was her custom\, after these grand entertainments\, to 
	make nocturnal surveys of the kitchen\, to assure herself that none of the
	 delicacies had been secreted by the servants for their personal use and r
	efreshment. Charlie\, aware of this\, took his measures for an ample reven
	ge for the beating he had received at her hands. At night\, when all the r
	est of the family had retired\, he hastily descended to the kitchen\, and\
	, by some process known only to himself\, imprisoned the cat in a stone ja
	r that always stood upon the dresser\, and into which he was confident Mrs
	. Thomas would peep. He then stationed himself upon the stairs\, to watch 
	the result. He had not long to wait\, for as soon as she thought the serva
	nts were asleep\, she came softly into the kitchen\, and\, after peering a
	bout in various places\, she at last lifted up the lid of the jar. Tom\, t
	ired of his long confinement\, sprang out\, and\, in so doing\, knocked th
	e lamp out of her hand\, the fluid from which ignited and ran over the flo
	or.\n\n\"Murder!—Fire!—Watch!\" screamed the thoroughly frightened old
	 woman. \"Oh\, help! help! fire!\" At this terrible noise nearly every one
	 in the household was aroused\, and hurried to the spot whence it proceede
	d. They found Mrs. Thomas standing in the dark\, with the lid of the jar i
	n her hand\, herself the personification of terror. The carpet was badly b
	urned in several places\, and the fragments of the lamp were scattered abo
	ut the floor.\n\n\"What has happened?\" exclaimed Mr. Morton\, who was the
	 first to enter the kitchen. \"What is all this frightful noise occasioned
	 by?\"\n\n\"Oh\, there is a man in the house!\" answered Mrs. Thomas\, her
	 teeth chattering with fright. \"There was a man in here—he has just spr
	ung out\,\" she continued\, pointing to the bread-jar.\n\n\"Pooh\, pooh—
	that's nonsense\, madam\,\" replied the son-in-law. \"Why an infant could 
	not get in there\, much less a man!\"\n\n\"I tell you it was a man then\,\
	" angrily responded Mrs. Thomas\; \"and he is in the house somewhere now.\
	"\n\n\"Such absurdity!\" muttered Mr. Morton\; adding\, in a louder tone: 
	\"Why\, my dear mamma\, you've seen a mouse or something of the kind.\"\n\
	n\"Mouse\, indeed!\" interrupted the old lady. \"Do you think I'm in my do
	tage\, and I don't know a man from a mouse?\"\n\nJust then the cat\, whose
	 back had got severely singed in the melee\, set up a most lamentable cate
	rwauling\; and\, on being brought to light from the depths of a closet int
	o which he had flown\, his appearance immediately discovered the share he 
	had had in the transaction.\n\n\"It must have been the cat\,\" said Robber
	ts. \"Only look at his back—why here the fur is singed off him! I'll bet
	 anything\,\" continued he\, \"that air boy has had something to do with t
	his—for it's a clear case that the cat couldn't git into the jar\, and t
	hen put the lid on hissef.\"\n\nTom's inability to accomplish this feat be
	ing most readily admitted on all sides\, inquiry was immediately made as t
	o the whereabouts of Charlie\; his absence from the scene being rather con
	sidered as evidence of participation\, for\, it was argued\, if he had bee
	n unaware of what was to transpire\, the noise would have drawn him to the
	 spot at once\, as he was always the first at hand in the event of any exc
	itement. Robberts was despatched to see if he was in his bed\, and returne
	d with the intelligence that the bed had not even been opened. Search was 
	immediately instituted\, and he was discovered in the closet at the foot o
	f the stairs. He was dragged forth\, shaken\, pummelled\, and sent to bed\
	, with the assurance that his mother should be sent for in the morning\, t
	o take him home\, and keep him there. This being exactly the point to whic
	h he was desirous of bringing matters\, he went to bed\, and passed a most
	 agreeable night.\n\nAunt Rachel\, being one of those sleepers that nothin
	g short of an earthquake can rouse until their customary time for awaking\
	, had slept soundly through the stirring events of the past night. She cam
	e down in the morning in quite a placid state of mind\, expecting to enjoy
	 a day of rest\, as she had the night before sat up much beyond her usual 
	time\, to set matters to rights after the confusion consequent on the dinn
	er party. What was her astonishment\, therefore\, on finding the kitchen s
	he had left in a state of perfect order and cleanliness\, in a condition t
	hat resembled the preparation for an annual house-cleaning.\n\n\"Lord\, bl
	ess us!\" she exclaimed\, looking round\; \"What on yarth has happened? I 
	raly b'lieve dere's bin a fire in dis 'ere house\, and I never knowed a wo
	rd of it. Why I might have bin burnt up in my own bed! Dere's de lamp brok
	e—carpet burnt—pots and skillets hauled out of the closet—ebery ting
	 turned upside down\; why dere's bin a reg'lar 'sturbance down here\,\" sh
	e continued\, as she surveyed the apartment.\n\nAt this juncture\, she esp
	ied Tom\, who sat licking his paws before the fire\, and presenting so alt
	ered an appearance\, from the events of the night\, as to have rendered hi
	m unrecognizable even by his best friend.\n\n\"Strange cat in de house! Ma
	king himself quite at home at dat\,\" said aunt Rachel\, indignantly. Her 
	wrath\, already much excited\, rose to the boiling point at what she deeme
	d a most daring invasion of her domain. She\, therefore\, without ceremony
	\, raised a broom\, with which she belaboured the astonished Tom\, who ran
	 frantically from under one chair to another till he ensconced himself in 
	a small closet\, from which he pertinaciously refused to be dislodged. \"W
	on't come out of dere\, won't you?\" said she. \"I'll see if I can't make 
	you den\;\" and poor Tom dodged behind pots and kettles to avoid the blows
	 which were aimed at him\; at last\, thoroughly enraged by a hard knock on
	 the back\, he sprang fiercely into the face of his tormentor\, who\, comp
	letely upset by the suddenness of his attack\, fell sprawling on the floor
	\, screaming loudly for help. She was raised up by Robberts\, who came run
	ning to her assistance\, and\, on being questioned as to the cause of her 
	outcries\, replied:—\n\n\"Dere's a strange cat in de house—wild cat to
	o\, I raly b'lieve\;\" and spying Tom at that moment beneath the table\, s
	he made another dash at him for a renewal of hostilities.\n\n\"Why that's 
	Tom\,\" exclaimed Robberts\; \"don't you know your own cat?\"\n\n\"Oh\,\" 
	she replied\, \"dat ar isn't Tom now\, is it? Why\, what's the matter wid 
	him?\"\n\nRobberts then gave her a detailed account of the transactions of
	 the previous night\, in which account the share Charlie had taken was gre
	atly enlarged and embellished\; and the wrathful old woman was listening t
	o the conclusion when Charlie entered. Hardly had he got into the room\, w
	hen\, without any preliminary discussion\, aunt Rachel—to use her own wo
	rds—pitched into him to give him particular fits. Now Charlie\, not bein
	g disposed to receive \"particular fits\,\" made some efforts to return th
	e hard compliments that were being showered upon him\, and the advice of K
	inch providentially occurring to him—respecting an attack upon the under
	standing of his venerable antagonist—he brought his hard shoes down with
	 great force upon her pet corn\, and by this coup de pied completely demol
	ished her. With a loud scream she let him go\; and sitting down upon the f
	loor\, declared herself lamed for life\, beyond the possibility of recover
	y. At this stage of the proceedings\, Robberts came to the rescue of his a
	ged coadjutor\, and seized hold of Charlie\, who forthwith commenced so br
	isk an attack upon his rheumatic shins\, as to cause him to beat a hurried
	 retreat\, leaving Charlie sole master of the field. The noise that these 
	scuffles occasioned brought Mrs. Thomas into the kitchen\, and Charlie was
	 marched off by her into an upstairs room\, where he was kept in \"durance
	 vile\" until the arrival of his mother.\n\nMrs. Thomas had a strong likin
	g for Charlie—not as a boy\, but as a footman. He was active and intelli
	gent\, and until quite recently\, extremely tractable and obedient\; more 
	than all\, he was a very good-looking boy\, and when dressed in the Thomas
	 livery\, presented a highly-respectable appearance. She therefore determi
	ned to be magnanimous—to look over past events\, and to show a Christian
	 and forgiving spirit towards his delinquencies. She sent for Mrs. Ellis\,
	 with the intention of desiring her to use her maternal influence to induc
	e him to apologize to aunt Rachel for his assault upon her corns\, which a
	pology Mrs. Thomas was willing to guarantee should be accepted\; as for th
	e indignities that had been inflicted on herself\, she thought it most pol
	itic to regard them in the light of accidents\, and to say as little about
	 that part of the affair as possible.\n\nWhen Mrs. Ellis made her appearan
	ce on the day subsequent to the events just narrated\, Mrs. Thomas enlarge
	d to her upon the serious damage that aunt Rachel had received\, and the u
	rgent necessity that something should be done to mollify that important in
	dividual. When Charlie was brought into the presence of his mother and Mrs
	. Thomas\, the latter informed him\, that\, wicked as had been his conduct
	 towards herself\, she was willing\, for his mother's sake\, to look over 
	it\; but that he must humble himself in dust and ashes before the reigning
	 sovereign of the culinary kingdom\, who\, making the most of the injury i
	nflicted on her toe\, had declared herself unfit for service\, and was at 
	that moment ensconced in a large easy-chair\, listening to the music of he
	r favourite smoke-jack\, whilst a temporary cook was getting up the dinner
	\, under her immediate supervision and direction. \"Charlie\, I'm quite as
	hamed of you\,\" said his mother\, after listening to Mrs. Thomas's length
	y statement. \"What has come over you\, child?\"—Charlie stood biting hi
	s nails\, and looking very sullen\, but vouchsafed them no answer.—\"Mrs
	. Thomas is so kind as to forgive you\, and says she will look over the wh
	ole affair\, if you will beg aunt Rachel's pardon. Come\, now\,\" continue
	d Mrs. Ellis\, coaxingly\, \"do\, that's a good boy.\"\n\n\"Yes\, do\,\" a
	dded Mrs. Thomas\, \"and I will buy you a handsome new suit of livery.\"\n
	\nThis was too much for Charlie\; the promise of another suit of the detes
	ted livery quite overcame him\, and he burst into tears.\n\n\"Why\, what a
	ils the boy? He's the most incomprehensible child I ever saw! The idea of 
	crying at the promise of a new suit of clothes!—any other child would ha
	ve been delighted\,\" concluded Mrs. Thomas.\n\n\"I don't want your old bu
	tton-covered uniform\,\" said Charlie\, \"and I won't wear it\, neither! A
	nd as for aunt Rachel\, I don't care how much she is hurt—I'm only sorry
	 I didn't smash her other toe\; and I'll see her skinned\, and be skinned 
	myself\, before I'll ask her pardon!\"\n\nBoth Mrs. Thomas and Charlie's m
	other stood aghast at this unexpected declaration\; and the result of a lo
	ng conference\, held by the two\, was that Charlie should be taken home\, 
	Mrs. Ellis being unable to withstand his tears and entreaties.\n\nAs he pa
	ssed through the kitchen on his way out\, he made a face at aunt Rachel\, 
	who\, in return\, threw at him one of the turnips she was peeling. It miss
	ed the object for which it was intended\, and came plump into the eye of R
	obberts\, giving to that respectable individual for some time thereafter t
	he appearance of a prize-fighter in livery.\n\nCharlie started for home in
	 the highest spirits\, which\, however\, became considerably lower on his 
	discovering his mother's view of his late exploits was very different from
	 his own. Mrs. Ellis's fondness and admiration of her son\, although almos
	t amounting to weakness\, were yet insufficient to prevent her from feelin
	g that his conduct\, even after making due allowance for the provocation h
	e had received\, could not be wholly excused as mere boyish impetuosity an
	d love of mischievous fun. She knew that his father would feel it his duty
	\, not only to reprimand him\, but to inflict some chastisement\; and this
	 thought was the more painful to her from the consciousness\, that but for
	 her own weak compliance with Mrs. Thomas's request\, her boy would not ha
	ve been placed in circumstances which his judgment and self-command had pr
	oved insufficient to carry him through. The day\, therefore\, passed less 
	agreeably than Charlie had anticipated\; for now that he was removed from 
	the scene of his trials\, he could not disguise from himself that his beha
	viour under them had been very different from what it ought to have been\,
	 and this had the salutary effect of bringing him into a somewhat humbler 
	frame of mind. When his father returned in the evening\, therefore\, Charl
	ie appeared so crest-fallen that even Caddy could scarcely help commiserat
	ing him\, especially as his subdued state during the day had kept him from
	 committing any of those offences against tidiness which so frequently exa
	sperated her. Mr. Ellis\, though very strict on what he thought points of 
	duty\, had much command of temper\, and was an affectionate father. He lis
	tened\, therefore\, with attention to the details of Charlie's grievances\
	, as well as of his misdemeanours\, and some credit is due to him for the 
	unshaken gravity he preserved throughout. Although he secretly acquitted h
	is son of any really bad intention\, he thought it incumbent on him to mak
	e Charlie feel in some degree the evil consequences of his unruly behaviou
	r. After giving him a serious lecture\, and pointing out the impropriety o
	f taking such measures to deliver himself from the bondage in which his pa
	rents themselves had thought fit to place him\, without even appealing to 
	them\, he insisted on his making the apologies due both to Mrs. Thomas and
	 aunt Rachel (although he was fully aware that both had only got their des
	erts)\; and\, further\, intimated that he would not be reinstated in his p
	arents' good graces until he had proved\, by his good conduct and docility
	\, that he was really sorry for his misbehaviour. It was a severe trial to
	 Charlie to make these apologies\; but he well knew that what his father h
	ad decided upon must be done—so he made a virtue of necessity\, and\, ac
	companied by his mother\, on the following day performed his penance with 
	as good a grace as he was able\; and\, in consideration of this submission
	\, his father\, when he came home in the evening\, greeted him with all hi
	s usual kindness\, and the recollection of this unlucky affair was at once
	 banished from the family circle.\n\nCHAPTER VIII.\nTrouble in the Ellis F
	amily.\n\nSince the receipt of Mr. Garie's letter\, Mrs. Ellis and Caddy h
	ad been busily engaged in putting the house in a state of preparation for 
	their reception. Caddy\, whilst superintending its decoration\, felt herse
	lf in Elysium. For the first time in her life she had the supreme satisfac
	tion of having two unfortunate house-cleaners entirely at her disposal\; c
	onsequently\, she drove them about and worried them to an extent unparalle
	led in any of their former experience. She sought for and discovered on th
	e windows (which they had fondly regarded as miracles of cleanliness) sund
	ry streaks and smears\, and detected infinite small spots of paint and whi
	tewash on the newly-scrubbed floors. She followed them upstairs and downst
	airs\, and tormented them to that extent\, that Charlie gave it as his pri
	vate opinion that he should not be in the least surprised\, on going up th
	ere\, to find that the two old women had made away with Caddy\, and hidden
	 her remains in the coal-bin. Whilst she was thus engaged\, to Charlie was
	 assigned the duty of transporting to Winter-street her diurnal portion of
	 food\, without a hearty share of which she found it impossible to maintai
	n herself in a state of efficiency\; her labours in chasing the women abou
	t the house being of a rather exhausting nature.\n\nWhen he made the visit
	s in question\, Charlie was generally reconnoitred by his sister from a wi
	ndow over the door\, and was compelled to put his shoes through a system o
	f purification\, devised by her for his especial benefit. It consisted of 
	three courses of scraper\, and two of mat\; this being considered by her a
	s strictly necessary to bring his shoes to such a state of cleanliness as 
	would entitle him to admission into the premises of which she was the temp
	orary mistress.\n\nCharlie\, on two or three occasions finding a window op
	en\, made stealthy descents upon the premises without first having duly ob
	served these quarantine regulations\; whereupon he was attacked by Caddy\,
	 who\, with the assistance of the minions under her command\, so shook and
	 pummelled him as to cause his precipitate retreat through the same openin
	g by which he had entered\, and that\, too\, in so short a space of time a
	s to make the whole manoeuvre appear to him in the light of a well-execute
	d but involuntary feat of ground and lofty tumbling. One afternoon he star
	ted with his sister's dinner\, consisting of a dish of which she was parti
	cularly fond\, and its arrival was therefore looked for with unusual anxie
	ty. Charlie\, having gorged himself to an almost alarming extent\, did not
	 make the haste that the case evidently demanded\; and as he several times
	 stopped to act as umpire in disputed games of marbles (in the rules of wh
	ich he was regarded as an authority)\, he necessarily consumed a great dea
	l of time on the way.\n\nCaddy's patience was severely tried by the long d
	elay\, and her temper\, at no time the most amiable\, gathered bitterness 
	from the unprecedented length of her fast. Therefore\, when he at length a
	ppeared\, walking leisurely up Winter-street\, swinging the kettle about i
	n the most reckless manner\, and setting it down on the pavement to play l
	eap-frog over the fire-plugs\, her wrath reached a point that boded no goo
	d to the young trifler.\n\nNow\, whilst Charlie had been giving his attent
	ion to the difficulties growing out of the games of marbles\, he did not o
	bserve that one of the disputants was possessed of a tin kettle\, in appea
	rance very similar to his own\, by the side of which\, in the excitement o
	f the moment\, he deposited his own whilst giving a practical illustration
	 of his view of the point under consideration. Having accomplished this to
	 his entire satisfaction\, he resumed what he supposed was his kettle\, an
	d went his way rejoicing.\n\nNow\, if Caddy Ellis had a fondness for one d
	ish more than any other\, it was for haricot\, with plenty of carrots\; an
	d knowing she was to have this for her dinner\, she\, to use her own point
	ed expression\, \"had laid herself out to have a good meal.\" She had even
	 abstained from her customary lunch that she might have an appetite worthy
	 of the occasion\; and accordingly\, long ere the dinner hour approached\,
	 she was hungry as a wolf. Notwithstanding this fact\, when Charlie made h
	is appearance at the door\, she insisted on his going through all the accu
	stomed forms with the mat and scraper before entering the house\; an act o
	f self-sacrifice on her part entirely uncalled for\, as the day was remark
	ably fine\, and Charlie's boots unusually clean.\n\nHe received two or thr
	ee by no means gentle shoves and pokes as he entered\, which he bore with 
	unusual indifference\, making not the slightest effort at retaliation\, as
	 was his usual practice. The fact is\, Charlie was\, as lions are supposed
	 to be\, quite disinclined for a fight after a hearty meal\, so he followe
	d Caddy upstairs to the second story. Here she had got up an extempore din
	ing-table\, by placing a pasting board across two chairs. Seating herself 
	upon a stool\, she jerked off the lid of the kettle\, and\, to her horror 
	and dismay\, found not the favourite haricot\, but a piece of cheese-rind\
	, a crust of dry bread\, and a cold potatoe. Charlie\, who was amusing him
	self by examining the flowers in the new carpet\, did not observe the look
	 of surprise and disgust that came over the countenance of his sister\, as
	 she took out\, piece by piece\, the remains of some schoolboy's repast.\n
	\n\"Look here\,\" she at last burst forth\, \"do you call this my dinner?\
	"\n\n\"Yes\,\" said Charlie\, in a deliberate tone\, \"and a very good one
	 too\, I should say\; if you can't eat that dinner\, you ought to starve\;
	 it's one of mother's best haricots.\" \"You don't call this cold potatoe 
	and cheese-rind haricot\, do you?\" asked Caddy\, angrily.\n\nAt this Char
	lie looked up\, and saw before her the refuse scraps\, which she had indig
	nantly emptied upon the table. He could scarcely believe his eyes\; he got
	 up and looked in the kettle\, but found no haricot. \"Well\,\" said he\, 
	with surprise\, \"if that don't beat me! I saw mother fill it with haricot
	 myself\; I'm clean beat about it.\"\n\n\"Tell me what you've done with it
	\, then\,\" almost screamed the angry girl.\n\n\"I really don't know what 
	has become of it\,\" he answered\, with a bewildered air. \"I saw—I 
	saw—I—I—\"\n\n\"You saw—you saw\,\" replied the indignant Caddy\, 
	imitating his tone\; and taking up the kettle\, she began to examine it mo
	re closely. \"Why\, this isn't even our kettle\; look at this lid. I'm sur
	e it's not ours. You've been stopping somewhere to play\, and exchanged it
	 with some other boy\, that's just what you've done.\"\n\nJust then it occ
	urred to Charlie that at the place where he had adjusted the dispute about
	 the marbles\, he had observed in the hands of one of the boys a kettle si
	milar to his own\; and it flashed across his mind that he had then and the
	re made the unfortunate exchange. He broke his suspicion to Caddy in the g
	entlest manner\, at the same time edging his way to the door to escape the
	 storm that he saw was brewing. The loss of her dinner—and of such a din
	ner—so enraged the hungry girl\, as to cause her to seize a brush lying 
	near and begin to belabour him without mercy. In his endeavour to escape f
	rom her his foot was caught in the carpet\, and he was violently precipita
	ted down the long flight of stairs. His screams brought the whole party to
	 his assistance\; even Kinch\, who was sitting on the step outside\, threw
	 off his usual dread of Caddy\, and rushed into the house. \"Oh\, take me 
	up\,\" piteously cried Charlie\; \"oh\, take me up\, I'm almost killed.\" 
	In raising him\, one of the old women took hold of his arm\, which caused 
	him to scream again. \"Don't touch my arm\, please don't touch my arm\; I'
	m sure it's broke.\"\n\n\"No\, no\, it's not broke\, only sprained\, or a 
	little twisted\,\" said she\; and\, seizing it as she spoke\, she gave it 
	a pull and a wrench\, for the purpose of making it all right again\; at th
	is Charlie's face turned deathly pale\, and he fainted outright.\n\n\"Run 
	for a doctor\,\" cried the now thoroughly-alarmed Caddy\; \"run for the do
	ctor! my brother's dead!\" and bursting into tears\, she exclaimed\, \"Oh\
	, I've killed my brother\, I've killed my brother!\"\n\n\"Don't make so mu
	ch fuss\, child\,\" soothingly replied one of the old women: \"he's worth 
	half a dozen dead folk yet. Lor bless you\, child\, he's only fainted.\"\n
	\nWater was procured and thrown in his face\, and before Kinch returned wi
	th the doctor\, he was quite restored to consciousness.\n\n\"Don't cry\, m
	y little man\,\" said the physician\, as he took out his knife and ripped 
	up the sleeve of Charlie's coat. \"Don't cry\; let me examine your arm.\" 
	Stripping up the shirt-sleeve\, he felt it carefully over\, and shaking hi
	s head (physicians always shake their heads) pronounced the arm broken\, a
	nd that\, too\, in an extremely bad place. At this information Charlie beg
	an again to cry\, and Caddy broke forth into such yells of despair as almo
	st to drive them distracted.\n\nThe physician kindly procured a carriage\,
	 and saw Charlie comfortably placed therein\; and held in the arms of Kinc
	h\, with the lamenting and disheartened Caddy on the opposite seat\, he wa
	s slowly driven home. The house was quite thrown into confusion by their a
	rrival under such circumstances\; Mrs. Ellis\, for a wonder\, did not fain
	t\, but proceeded at once to do what was necessary. Mr. Ellis was sent for
	\, and he immediately despatched Kinch for Dr. Burdett\, their family phys
	ician\, who came without a moment's delay. He examined Charlie's arm\, and
	 at first thought it would be necessary to amputate it. At the mere mentio
	n of the word amputate\, Caddy set up such a series of lamentable howls as
	 to cause her immediate ejectment from the apartment. Dr. Burdett called i
	n Dr. Diggs for a consultation\, and between them it was decided that an a
	ttempt should be made to save the injured member. \"Now\, Charlie\,\" said
	 Dr. Burdett\, \"I'm afraid we must hurt you\, my boy—but if you have an
	y desire to keep this arm you must try to bear it.\"\n\n\"I'll bear anythi
	ng to save my arm\, doctor\; I can't spare that\,\" said he\, manfully. \"
	I'll want it by-and-by to help take care of mother and the girls.\"\n\n\"Y
	ou're a brave little fellow\,\" said Dr. Diggs\, patting him on the head\,
	 \"so then we'll go at it at once.\"\n\n\"Stop\,\" cried Charlie\, \"let m
	other put her arm round my neck so\, and Es\, you hold the good hand. Now 
	then\, I'm all right—fire away!\" and clenching his lips hard\, he waite
	d for the doctor to commence the operation of setting his arm. Charlie's m
	other tried to look as stoical as possible\, but the corners of her mouth 
	would twitch\, and there was a nervous trembling of her under-lip\; but sh
	e commanded herself\, and only when Charlie gave a slight groan of pain\, 
	stooped and kissed his forehead\; and when she raised her head again\, the
	re was a tear resting on the face of her son that was not his own. Esther 
	was the picture of despair\, and she wept bitterly for the misfortune whic
	h had befallen her pet brother\; and when the operation was over\, refused
	 to answer poor Caddy's questions respecting Charlie's injuries\, and scol
	ded her with a warmth and volubility that was quite surprising to them all
	.\n\n\"You must not be too hard on Caddy\,\" remarked Mr. Ellis. \"She fee
	ls bad enough\, I'll warrant you. It is a lesson that will not\, I trust\,
	 be thrown away upon her\; it will teach her to command her temper in futu
	re.\"\n\nCaddy was in truth quite crushed by the misfortune she had occasi
	oned\, and fell into such a state of depression and apathy as to be scarce
	ly heard about the house\; indeed\, so subdued was she\, that Kinch went i
	n and out without wiping his feet\, and tracked the mud all over the stair
	-carpet\, and yet she uttered no word of remonstrance.\n\nPoor little Char
	lie suffered much\, and was in a high fever. The knocker was tied up\, the
	 windows darkened\, and all walked about the house with sad and anxious co
	untenances. Day after day the fever increased\, until he grew delirious\, 
	and raved in the most distressing manner. The unfortunate haricot was stil
	l on his mind\, and he was persecuted by men with strange-shaped heads and
	 carrot eyes. Sometimes he imagined himself pursued by Caddy\, and would c
	ry in the most piteous manner to have her prevented from beating him. Then
	 his mind strayed off to the marble-ground\, where he would play imaginary
	 games\, and laugh over his success in such a wild and frightful manner as
	 to draw tears from the eyes of all around him. He was greatly changed\; t
	he bright colour had fled from his cheek\; his head had been shaved\, and 
	he was thin and wan\, and at times they were obliged to watch him\, and re
	strain him from tossing about\, to the great peril of his broken arm.\n\nA
	t last his situation became so critical that Dr. Burdett began to entertai
	n but slight hopes of his recovery\; and one morning\, in the presence of 
	Caddy\, hinted as much to Mr. Ellis.\n\n\"Oh\, doctor\, doctor\,\" exclaim
	ed the distracted girl\, \"don't say that! oh\, try and save him! How coul
	d I live with the thought that I had killed my brother! oh\, I can't live 
	a day if he dies! Will God ever forgive me? Oh\, what a wretch I have been
	! Oh\, do think of something that will help him! He mustn't die\, you must
	 save him!\" and crying passionately\, she threw herself on the floor in a
	n agony of grief. They did their best to pacify her\, but all their effort
	s were in vain\, until Mr. Ellis suggested\, that since she could not cont
	rol her feelings\, she must be sent to stay with her aunt\, as her lamenta
	tions and outcries agitated her suffering brother and made his condition w
	orse. The idea of being excluded from the family circle at such a moment h
	ad more effect on Caddy than all previous remonstrances. She implored to h
	ave the sentence suspended for a time at least\, that she might try to exe
	rt more self-command\; and Mr. Ellis\, who really pitied her\, well knowin
	g that her heart was not in fault\, however reprehensible she was in point
	 of temper\, consented\; and Caddy's behaviour from that moment proved the
	 sincerity of her promises\; and though she could not quite restrain occas
	ional outbursts of senseless lamentation\, still\, when she felt such fits
	 of despair coming on\, she wisely retired to some remote corner of the ho
	use\, and did not re-appear till she had regained her composure.\n\nThe cr
	isis was at length over\, and Charlie was pronounced out of danger. No one
	 was more elated by this announcement than our friend Kinch\, who had\, in
	 fact\, grown quite ashy in his complexion from confinement and grief\, an
	d was now thrown by this intelligence into the highest possible spirits. C
	harlie\, although faint and weak\, was able to recognize his friends\, and
	 derived great satisfaction from the various devices of Kinch to entertain
	 him. That young gentleman quite distinguished himself by the variety and 
	extent of his resources. He devised butting matches between himself and a 
	large gourd\, which he suspended from the ceiling\, and almost blinded him
	self by his attempts to butt it sufficiently hard to cause it to rebound t
	o the utmost length of the string\, and might have made an idiot of himsel
	f for ever by his exertions\, but for the timely interference of Mr. Ellis
	\, who put a final stop to this diversion. Then he dressed himself in a sh
	ort gown and nightcap\, and made the pillow into a baby\, and played the n
	urse with it to such perfection\, that Charlie felt obliged to applaud by 
	knocking with the knuckles of his best hand upon the head-board of his bed
	stead. On the whole\, he was so overjoyed as to be led to commit all manne
	r of eccentricities\, and conducted himself generally in such a ridiculous
	 manner\, that Charlie laughed himself into a state of prostration\, and K
	inch was\, in consequence\, banished from the sick-room\, to be re-admitte
	d only on giving his promise to abstain from being as funny as he could an
	y more. After the lapse of a short time Charlie was permitted to sit up\, 
	and held regular levees of his schoolmates and little friends. He declared
	 it was quite a luxury to have a broken arm\, as it was a source of so muc
	h amusement. The old ladies brought him jellies and blanc-mange\, and he w
	as petted and caressed to such an unparalleled extent\, as to cause his de
	lighted mother to aver that she lived in great fear of his being spoiled b
	eyond remedy. At length he was permitted to come downstairs and sit by the
	 window for a few hours each day. Whilst thus amusing himself one morning\
	, a handsome carriage stopped before their house\, and from it descended a
	 fat and benevolent-looking old lady\, who knocked at the door and rattled
	 the latch as if she had been in the daily habit of visiting there\, and f
	elt quite sure of a hearty welcome. She was let in by Esther\, and\, on si
	tting down\, asked if Mrs. Ellis was at home. Whilst Esther was gone to su
	mmon her mother\, the lady looked round the room\, and espying Charlie\, s
	aid\, \"Oh\, there you are—I'm glad to see you\; I hope you are improvin
	g.\"\n\n\"Yes\, ma'am\,\" politely replied Charlie\, wondering all the tim
	e who their visitor could be.\n\n\"You don't seem to remember me—you oug
	ht to do so\; children seldom forget any one who makes them a pleasant pro
	mise.\"\n\nAs she spoke\, a glimmer of recollection shot across Charlie's 
	mind\, and he exclaimed\, \"You are the lady who came to visit the school.
	\"\n\n\"Yes\; and I promised you a book for your aptness\, and\,\" continu
	ed she\, taking from her reticule a splendidly-bound copy of \"Robinson Cr
	usoe\,\" \"here it is.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis\, as soon as she was informed that 
	a stranger lady was below\, left Caddy to superintend alone the whitewashi
	ng of Charlie's sick-room\, and having hastily donned another gown and a m
	ore tasty cap\, descended to see who the visitor could be.\n\n\"You must e
	xcuse my not rising\,\" said Mrs. Bird\, for that was the lady's name\; \"
	it is rather a difficulty for me to get up and down often—so\,\" continu
	ed she\, with a smile\, \"you must excuse my seeming rudeness.\"\n\nMrs. E
	llis answered\, that any apology was entirely unnecessary\, and begged she
	 would keep her seat. \"I've come\,\" said Mrs. Bird\, \"to pay your littl
	e man a visit. I was so much pleased with the manner in which he recited h
	is exercises on the day of examination\, that I promised him a book\, and 
	on going to the school to present it\, I heard of his unfortunate accident
	. He looks very much changed—he has had a very severe time\, I presume?\
	"\n\n\"Yes\, a very severe one. We had almost given him over\, but it plea
	sed God to restore him\,\" replied Mrs. Ellis\, in a thankful tone. \"He i
	s very weak yet\,\" she continued\, \"and it will be a long time before he
	 is entirely recovered.\"\n\n\"Who is your physician?\" asked Mrs. Bird.\n
	\n\"Doctor Burdett\,\" was the reply\; \"he has been our physician for yea
	rs\, and is a very kind friend of our family.\"\n\n\"And of mine\, too\,\"
	 rejoined Mrs. Bird\; \"he visits my house every summer.\nWhat does he thi
	nk of the arm?\" she asked.\n\n\"He thinks in time it will be as strong as
	 ever\, and recommends sending Charlie into the country for the summer\; b
	ut\,\" said Mrs. Ellis\, \"we are quite at a loss where to send him.\"\n\n
	\"Oh! let me take him\,\" said Mrs. Bird—\"I should be delighted to have
	 him. I've got a beautiful place—he can have a horse to ride\, and there
	 are wide fields to scamper over! Only let me have him\, and I'll guarante
	e to restore him to health in a short time.\"\n\n\"You're very kind\,\" re
	plied Mrs. Ellis—\"I'm afraid he would only be a burthen to you—be a g
	reat deal of trouble\, and be able to do but little work.\"\n\n\"Work! Why
	\, dear woman\,\" replied Mrs. Bird\, with some astonishment\, \"I don't w
	ant him to work—I've plenty of servants\; I only want him to enjoy himse
	lf\, and gather as much strength as possible. Come\, make up your mind to 
	let him go with me\, and I'll send him home as stout as I am.\"\n\nAt the 
	bare idea of Charlie's being brought to such a state of obesity\, Kinch\, 
	who\, during the interview\, had been in the back part of the room\, makin
	g all manner of faces\, was obliged to leave the apartment\, to prevent a 
	serious explosion of laughter\, and after their visitor had departed he wa
	s found rolling about the floor in a tempest of mirth.\n\nAfter considerab
	le conversation relative to the project\, Mrs. Bird took her leave\, promi
	sing to call soon again\, and advising Mrs. Ellis to accept her offer. Mrs
	. Ellis consulted Dr. Burdett\, who pronounced it a most fortunate circums
	tance\, and said the boy could not be in better hands\; and as Charlie app
	eared nothing loth\, it was decided he should go to Warmouth\, to the grea
	t grief of Kinch\, who thought it a most unheard-of proceeding\, and he re
	garded Mrs. Bird thenceforth as his personal enemy\, and a wilful disturbe
	r of his peace.\n\nCHAPTER IX.\nBreaking up.\n\nThe time for the departure
	 of the Garies having been fixed\, all in the house were soon engaged in t
	he bustle of preparation. Boxes were packed with books\, pictures\, and li
	nen\; plate and china were wrapped and swaddled\, to prevent breakage and 
	bruises\; carpets were taken up\, and packed away\; curtains taken down\, 
	and looking-glasses covered. Only a small part of the house was left in a 
	furnished state for the use of the overseer\, who was a young bachelor\, a
	nd did not require much space.\n\nIn superintending all these arrangements
	 Mrs. Garie displayed great activity\; her former cheerfulness of manner h
	ad entirely returned\, and Mr. Garie often listened with delight to the qu
	ick pattering of her feet\, as she tripped lightly through the hall\, and 
	up and down the long stairs. The birds that sang about the windows were no
	t more cheerful than herself\, and when Mr. Garie heard her merry voice si
	nging her lively songs\, as in days gone by\, he experienced a feeling of 
	satisfaction at the pleasant result of his acquiescence in her wishes. He 
	had consented to it as an act of justice due to her and the children\; the
	re was no pleasure to himself growing out of the intended change\, beyond 
	that of gratifying Emily\, and securing freedom to her and the children. H
	e knew enough of the North to feel convinced that he could not expect to l
	ive there openly with Emily\, without being exposed to ill-natured comment
	s\, and closing upon himself the doors of many friends who had formerly re
	ceived him with open arms. The virtuous dignity of the Northerner would be
	 shocked\, not so much at his having children by a woman of colour\, but b
	y his living with her in the midst of them\, and acknowledging her as his 
	wife. In the community where he now resided\, such things were more common
	\; the only point in which he differed from many other Southern gentlemen 
	in this matter was in his constancy to Emily and the children\, and the mo
	re than ordinary kindness and affection with which he treated them. Mr. Ga
	rie had for many years led a very retired life\, receiving an occasional g
	entleman visitor\; but this retirement had been entirely voluntary\, there
	fore by no means disagreeable\; but in the new home he had accepted\, he f
	elt that he might be shunned\, and the reflection was anything but agreeab
	le. Moreover\, he was about to leave a place endeared to him by a thousand
	 associations. Here he had passed the whole of his life\, except about fou
	r years spent in travelling through Europe and America.\n\nMr. Garie was s
	eated in a room where there were many things to recall days long since dep
	arted. The desk at which he was writing was once his father's\, and he wel
	l remembered the methodical manner in which every drawer was carefully kep
	t\; over it hung a full-length portrait of his mother\, and it seemed\, as
	 he gazed at it\, that it was only yesterday that she had taken his little
	 hand in her own\, and walked with him down the long avenue of magnolias t
	hat were waving their flower-spangled branches in the morning breeze\, and
	 loading it with fragrance. Near him was the table on which her work-baske
	t used to stand. He remembered how important he felt when permitted to hol
	d the skeins of silk for her to wind\, and how he would watch her stitch\,
	 stitch\, hour after hour\, at the screen that now stood beside the fire-p
	lace\; the colours were faded\, but the recollection of the pleasant smile
	s she would cast upon him from time to time\, as she looked up from her wo
	rk\, was as fresh in his memory as if it were but yesterday. Mr. Garie was
	 assorting and arranging the papers that the desk contained\, when he hear
	d the rattle of wheels along the avenue\, and looking out of the window\, 
	he saw a carriage approaching.\n\nThe coachman was guiding his horses with
	 one hand\, and with the other he was endeavouring to keep a large\, old-f
	ashioned trunk from falling from the top. This was by no means an easy mat
	ter\, as the horses appeared quite restive\, and fully required his undivi
	ded attention. The rather unsteady motion of the carriage caused its inmat
	e to put his head out of the window\, and Mr. Garie recognized his uncle J
	ohn\, who lived in the north-western part of the state\, on the borders of
	 Alabama. He immediately left his desk\, and hastened to the door to recei
	ve him.\n\n\"This is an unexpected visit\, but none the less pleasant on t
	hat account\,\" said Mr. Garie\, his face lighting up with surprise and pl
	easure as uncle John alighted. \"I had not the least expectation of being 
	honoured by a visit from you. What has brought you into this part of the c
	ountry? Business\, of course? I can't conceive it possible that you should
	 have ventured so far from home\, at this early season\, for the mere purp
	ose of paying me a visit.\"\n\n\"You may take all the honour to yourself t
	his time\,\" smilingly replied uncle John\, \"for I have come over for you
	r especial benefit\; and if I accomplish the object of my journey\, I shal
	l consider the time anything but thrown away.\"\n\n\"Let me take your coat
	\; and\, Eph\, see you to that trunk\,\" said Mr. Garie. \"You see everyth
	ing is topsy-turvy with us\, uncle John. We look like moving\, don't we?\"
	\n\n\"Like that or an annual house-cleaning\,\" he replied\, as he picked 
	his way through rolls of carpet and matting\, and between half-packed boxe
	s\; in doing which\, he had several narrow escapes from the nails that pro
	truded from them on all sides. \"It's getting very warm\; let me have some
	thing to drink\,\" said he\, wiping his face as he took his seat\; \"a jul
	ep—plenty of brandy and ice\, and but little mint.\"\n\nEph\, on receivi
	ng this order\, departed in great haste in search of Mrs. Garie\, as he kn
	ew that\, whilst concocting one julep\, she might be prevailed upon to mix
	 another\, and Eph had himself a warm liking for that peculiar Southern mi
	xture\, which liking he never lost any opportunity to gratify.\n\nEmily hu
	rried downstairs\, on hearing of the arrival of uncle John\, for he was re
	garded by her as a friend. She had always received from him marked kindnes
	s and respect\, and upon the arrival of Mr. Garie's visitors\, there was n
	one she received with as much pleasure. Quickly mixing the drink\, she car
	ried it into the room where he and her husband were sitting. She was warml
	y greeted by the kind-hearted old man\, who\, in reply to her question if 
	he had come to make them a farewell visit\, said he hoped not: he trusted 
	to make them many more in the same place.\n\n\"I'm afraid you won't have a
	n opportunity\,\" she replied. \"In less than a week we expect to be on ou
	r way to New York.—I must go\,\" continued she\, \"and have a room prepa
	red for you\, and hunt up the children. You'll scarcely know them\, they h
	ave grown so much since you were here. I'll soon send them\,\" and she hur
	ried off to make uncle John's room comfortable.\n\n\"I was never more surp
	rised in my life\,\" said the old gentleman\, depositing the glass upon th
	e table\, after draining it of its contents—\"never more surprised than 
	when I received your letter\, in which you stated your intention of going 
	to the North to live. A more ridiculous whim it is impossible to conceiv
	e—the idea is perfectly absurd! To leave a fine old place like this\, wh
	ere you have everything around you so nice and comfortable\, to go north\,
	 and settle amongst a parcel of strange Yankees! My dear boy\, you must gi
	ve it up. I'm no longer your guardian—the law don't provide one for peop
	le of thirty years and upwards—so it is out of my power to say you shall
	 not do it\; but I am here to use all my powers of persuasion to induce yo
	u to relinquish the project.\"\n\n\"Uncle John\, you don't seem to underst
	and the matter. It is not a whim\, by any means—it is a determination ar
	ising from a strict sense of duty\; I feel that it is an act of justice to
	 Emily and the children. I don't pretend to be better than most men\; but 
	my conscience will not permit me to be the owner of my own flesh and blood
	. I'm going north\, because I wish to emancipate and educate my children
	—you know I can't do it here. At first I was as disinclined to favour th
	e project as you are\; but I am now convinced it is my duty\, and\, I must
	 add\, that my inclination runs in the same direction.\"\n\n\"Look here\, 
	Clarence\, my boy\,\" here interrupted uncle John\; \"you can't expect to 
	live there as you do here\; the prejudice against persons of colour is muc
	h stronger in some of the Northern cities than it is amongst us Southerner
	s. You can't live with Emily there as you do here\; you will be in everybo
	dy's mouth. You won't be able to sustain your old connections with your No
	rthern friends—you'll find that they will cut you dead.\"\n\n\"I've look
	ed at it well\, uncle John. I've counted the cost\, and have made up my mi
	nd to meet with many disagreeable things. If my old friends choose to turn
	 their backs on me because my wife happens to belong to an oppressed race\
	, that is not my fault. I don't feel that I have committed any sin by maki
	ng the choice I have\; and so their conduct or opinions won't influence my
	 happiness much.\"\n\n\"Listen to me\, Clary\, for a moment\,\" rejoined t
	he old gentleman. \"As long as you live here in Georgia you can sustain yo
	ur present connection with impunity\, and if you should ever want to break
	 it off\, you could do so by sending her and the children away\; it would 
	be no more than other men have done\, and are doing every day. But go to t
	he North\, and it becomes a different thing. Your connection with Emily wi
	ll inevitably become a matter of notoriety\, and then you would find it di
	fficult to shake her off there\, as you could here\, in case you wanted to
	 marry another woman.\"\n\n\"Oh\, uncle\, uncle\, how can you speak so ind
	ifferently about my doing such an ungenerous act\; to characterize it in t
	he very mildest terms. I feel that Emily is as much my wife in the eyes of
	 God\, as if a thousand clergymen had united us. It is not my fault that w
	e are not legally married\; it is the fault of the laws. My father did not
	 feel that my mother was any more his wife\, than I do that Emily is mine.
	\"\n\n\"Hush\, hush\; that is all nonsense\, boy\; and\, besides\, it is p
	aying a very poor compliment to your mother to rank her with your mulatto 
	mistress. I like Emily very much\; she has been kind\, affectionate\, and 
	faithful to you. Yet I really can't see the propriety of your making a shi
	pwreck of your whole life on her account. Now\,\" continued uncle John\, w
	ith great earnestness\, \"I hoped for better things from you. You have tal
	ents and wealth\; you belong to one of the oldest and best families in the
	 State. When I am gone\, you will be the last of our name\; I had hoped th
	at you would have done something to keep it from sinking into obscurity. T
	here is no honour in the State to which you might not have aspired with a 
	fair chance of success\; but if you carry out your absurd determination\, 
	you will ruin yourself effectually.\"\n\n\"Well\; I shall be ruined then\,
	 for I am determined to go. I feel it my duty to carry out my design\,\" s
	aid Mr. Garie.\n\n\"Well\, well\, Clary\,\" rejoined his uncle\, \"I've do
	ne my duty to my brother's son. I own\, that although I cannot agree with 
	you in your project\, I can and do honour the unselfish motive that prompt
	s it. You will always find me your friend under all circumstances\, and no
	w\,\" concluded he\, \"it's off my mind.\"\n\nThe children were brought in
	 and duly admired\; a box of miniature carpenter's tools was produced\; al
	so\, a wonderful man with a string through his waist—which string\, when
	 pulled\, caused him to throw his arms and legs about in a most astonishin
	g manner. The little folks were highly delighted with these presents\, whi
	ch\, uncle John had purchased at Augusta\; they scampered off\, and soon h
	ad every small specimen of sable humanity on the place at their heels\, in
	 ecstatic admiration of the wonderful articles of which they had so recent
	ly acquired possession. As uncle John had absolutely refused all other ref
	reshment than the julep before mentioned\, dinner was ordered at a much ea
	rlier hour than usual. He ate very heartily\, as was his custom\; and\, mo
	reover\, persisted in stuffing the children (as old gentlemen will do some
	times) until their mother was compelled to interfere to prevent their havi
	ng a bilious attack in consequence. Whilst the gentlemen were sitting over
	 their desert\, Mr. Garie asked his uncle\, if he had not a sister\, with 
	whom there was some mystery connected.\n\n\"No mystery\,\" replied uncle J
	ohn. \"Your aunt made a very low marriage\, and father cut her off from th
	e family entirely. It happened when I was very young\; she was the eldest 
	of us all\; there were four of us\, as you know—your father\, Bernard\, 
	I\, and this sister of whom we are speaking. She has been dead for some ye
	ars\; she married a carpenter whom father employed on the place—a poor w
	hite man from New York. I have heard it said\, that he was handsome\, but 
	drunken and vicious. They left one child—a boy\; I believe he is alive i
	n the North somewhere\, or was\, a few years since.\"\n\n\"And did she nev
	er make any overtures for a reconciliation?\"\n\n\"She did\, some years be
	fore father's death\, but he was inexorable\; he returned her letter\, and
	 died without seeing or forgiving her\,\" replied uncle John.\n\n\"Poor th
	ing\; I suppose they were very poor?\"\n\n\"I suppose they were. I have no
	 sympathy for her. She deserved her fate\, for marrying a greasy mechanic\
	, in opposition to her father's commands\, when she might have connected h
	erself with any of the highest families in the State.\"\n\nThe gentlemen r
	emained a long while that night\, sipping their wine\, smoking cigars\, an
	d discussing the probable result of the contemplated change. Uncle John se
	emed to have the worst forebodings as to the ultimate consequences\, and g
	ave it as his decided opinion\, that they would all return to the old plac
	e in less than a year.\n\n\"You'll soon get tired of it\,\" said he\; \"ev
	erything is so different there. Here you can get on well in your present r
	elations\; but mark me\, you'll find nothing but disappointment and troubl
	e where you are going.\"\n\nThe next morning he departed for his home\; he
	 kissed the children affectionately\, and shook hands warmly with their mo
	ther. After getting into the carriage\, he held out his hand again to his 
	nephew\, saying:—\n\n\"I am afraid you are going to be disappointed\; bu
	t I hope you may not. Good bye\, good bye—God bless you!\" and his blue 
	eyes looked very watery\, as he was driven from the door.\n\nThat day\, a 
	letter arrived from Savannah\, informing them that the ship in which they 
	had engaged passage would be ready to sail in a few days\; and they\, ther
	efore\, determined that the first instalment of boxes and trunks should be
	 sent to the city forthwith\; and to Eph was assigned the melancholy duty 
	of superintending their removal.\n\n\"Let me go with him\, pa\,\" begged l
	ittle Clarence\, who heard his father giving Eph his instructions.\n\n\"Oh
	\, no\,\" replied Mr. Garie\; \"the cart will be full of goods\, there wil
	l be no room for you.\"\n\n\"But\, pa\, I can ride my pony\; and\, besides
	\, you might let me go\, for I shan't have many more chances to ride him
	—do let me go.\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\, massa\, let him go. Why dat ar chile ca
	n take care of his pony all by hissef. You should just seed dem two de ode
	r day. You see de pony felt kinder big dat day\, an' tuck a heap o' airs o
	n hissef\, an' tried to trow him—twarn't no go—Massa Clary conquered h
	im 'pletely. Mighty smart boy\, dat\,\" continued Eph\, looking at little 
	Clarence\, admiringly\, \"mighty smart. I let him shoot off my pistol tode
	r day\, and he pat de ball smack through de bull's eye—dat boy is gwine 
	to be a perfect Ramrod.\"\n\n\"Oh\, pa\,\" laughingly interrupted little C
	larence\; \"I've been telling him of what you read to me about Nimrod bein
	g a great hunter.\"\n\n\"That's quite a mistake\, Eph\,\" said Mr. Garie\,
	 joining in the laugh. \"Well\, I knowed it was suffin\,\" said Eph\, scra
	tching his head\; \"suffin with a rod to it\; I was all right on that pint
	—but you'r gwine to let him go\, ain't yer\, massa?\"\n\n\"I suppose\, I
	 must\,\" replied Mr. Garie\; \"but mind now that no accident occurs to yo
	ung Ramrod.\"\n\n\"I'll take care o' dat\,\" said Eph\, who hastened off t
	o prepare the horses\, followed by the delighted Clarence.\n\nThat evening
	\, after his return from Savannah\, Clarence kept his little sister's eyes
	 expanded to an unprecedented extent by his narration of the wonderful occ
	urrences attendant on his trip to town\, and also of what he had seen in t
	he vessel. He produced an immense orange\, also a vast store of almonds an
	d raisins\, which had been given him by the good-natured steward. \"But Em
	\,\" said he\, \"we are going to sleep in such funny little places\; even 
	pa and mamma have got to sleep on little shelves stuck up against the wall
	\; and they've got a thing that swings from the ceiling that they keep the
	 tumblers and wine-glasses in—every glass has got a little hole for itse
	lf. Oh\, it's so nice!\"\n\n\"And have they got any nice shady trees on th
	e ship?\" asked the wondering little Em.\n\n\"Oh\, no—what nonsense!\" a
	nswered Clarence\, swelling with the importance conferred by his superior 
	knowledge. \"Why\, no\, Em\; who ever heard of such a thing as trees on a 
	ship? they couldn't have trees on a ship if they wanted—there's no earth
	 for them to grow in. But I'll tell you what they've got—they've got mas
	ts a great deal higher than any tree\, and I'm going to climb clear up to 
	the top when we go to live on the ship.\"\n\n\"I wouldn't\,\" said Em\; \"
	you might fall down like Ben did from the tree\, and then you'd have to ha
	ve your head sewed up as he had.\"\n\nThe probability that an occurrence o
	f this nature might be the result of his attempt to climb the mast seemed 
	to have considerable weight with Master Clarence\, so he relieved his sist
	er's mind at once by relinquishing the project.\n\nThe morning for departu
	re at length arrived. Eph brought the carriage to the door at an early hou
	r\, and sat upon the box the picture of despair. He did not descend from h
	is eminence to assist in any of the little arrangements for the journey\, 
	being very fearful that the seat he occupied might be resumed by its right
	ful owner\, he having had a lengthy contest with the sable official who ac
	ted as coachman\, and who had striven manfully\, on this occasion\, to tak
	e possession of his usual elevated station on the family equipage. This\, 
	Eph would by no means permit\, as he declared\, \"He was gwine to let nobo
	dy drive Massa dat day but hissef.\"\n\nIt was a mournful parting. The sla
	ves crowded around the carriage kissing and embracing the children\, and f
	orcing upon them little tokens of remembrance. Blind Jacob\, the patriarch
	 of the place\, came and passed his hands over the face of little Em for t
	he last time\, as he had done almost every week since her birth\, that\, t
	o use his own language\, \"he might see how de piccaninny growed.\" His bl
	eared and sightless eyes were turned to heaven to ask a blessing on the li
	ttle ones and their parents.\n\n\"Why\, daddy Jake\, you should not take i
	t so hard\,\" said Mr. Garie\, with an attempt at cheerfulness. \"You'll s
	ee us all again some day.\"\n\n\"No\, no\, massa\, I'se feared I won't\; I
	'se gettin' mighty old\, massa\, and I'se gwine home soon. I hopes I'll me
	et you all up yonder\,\" said he\, pointing heavenward. \"I don't 'spect t
	o see any of you here agin.\"\n\nMany of the slaves were in tears\, and al
	l deeply lamented the departure of their master and his family\, for Mr. G
	arie had always been the kindest of owners\, and Mrs. Garie was\, if possi
	ble\, more beloved than himself. She was first at every sick-bed\, and had
	 been comforter-general to all the afflicted and distressed in the place.\
	n\nAt last the carriage rolled away\, and in a few hours they reached Sava
	nnah\, and immediately went on board the vessel.\n\nCHAPTER X.\nAnother Pa
	rting.\n\nMrs. Ellis had been for some time engaged in arranging and reple
	nishing Charlie's wardrobe\, preparatory to his journey to Warmouth with M
	rs. Bird. An entire new suit of grey cloth had been ordered of the tailor\
	, to whom Mrs. Ellis gave strict injunctions not to make them too small. N
	otwithstanding the unfavourable results of several experiments\, Mrs. Elli
	s adhered with wonderful tenacity to the idea that a boy's clothes could n
	ever be made too large\, and\, therefore\, when Charlie had a new suit\, i
	t always appeared as if it had been made for some portly gentleman\, and s
	ent home to Charlie by mistake.\n\nThis last suit formed no exception to t
	he others\, and Charlie surveyed with dismay its ample dimensions as it hu
	ng from the back of the chair. \"Oh\, gemini!\" said he\, \"but that jacke
	t is a rouser! I tell you what\, mother\, you'll have to get out a search-
	warrant to find me in that jacket\; now\, mind\, I tell you!\"\n\n\"Nonsen
	se!\" replied Mrs. Ellis\, \"it don't look a bit too large\; put it on.\"\
	n\nCharlie took up the coat\, and in a twinkling had it on over his other.
	 His hands were almost completely lost in the excessively long sleeves\, w
	hich hung down so far that the tips of his fingers were barely visible. \"
	Oh\, mother!\" he exclaimed\, \"just look at these sleeves—if such a thi
	ng were to happen that any one were to offer me a half dollar\, they would
	 change their mind before I could get my hand out to take it\; and it will
	 almost go twice round me\, it is so large in the waist.\"\n\n\"Oh\, you c
	an turn the sleeves up\; and as for the waist—you'll soon grow to it\; i
	t will be tight enough for you before long\, I'll warrant\,\" said Mrs. El
	lis.\n\n\"But\, mother\,\" rejoined Charlie\, \"that is just what you said
	 about the other blue suit\, and it was entirely worn out before you had l
	et down the tucks in the trowsers.\"\n\n\"Never mind the blue suit\,\" per
	sisted Mrs. Ellis\, entirely unbiassed by this statement of facts. \"You'l
	l grow faster this time—you're going into the country\, you must remem
	ber—boys always grow fast in the country\; go into the other room and tr
	y on the trowsers.\"\n\nCharlie retired into another room with the trowser
	s in question. Here he was joined by Kinch\, who went into fits of laughte
	r over Charlie's pea-jacket\, as he offensively called the new coat.\n\n\"
	Why\, Charlie\,\" said he\, \"it fits you like a shirt on a bean-pole\, or
	 rather it's like a sentry's box—it don't touch you any where. But get i
	nto these pants\,\" said he\, almost choking with the laughter that Charli
	e's vexed look caused him to suppress—\"get into the pants\;\" at the sa
	me time tying a string round Charlie's neck.\n\n\"What are you doing that 
	for?\" exclaimed Charlie\, in an irritated tone\; \"I shouldn't have thoug
	ht you would make fun of me!\"\n\n\"Oh\,\" said Kinch\, assuming a solemn 
	look\, \"don't they always tie a rope round a man's body when they are goi
	ng to lower him into a pit? and how on earth do you ever expect we shall f
	ind you in the legs of them trowsers\, unless something is fastened to you
	?\" Here Charlie was obliged to join in the laugh that Kinch could no long
	er restrain.\n\n\"Stop that playing\, boys\,\" cried Mrs. Ellis\, as their
	 noisy mirth reached her in the adjoining room\; \"you forget I am waiting
	 for you.\"\n\nCharlie hastily drew on the trousers\, and found that their
	 dimensions fully justified the precaution Kinch was desirous of taking to
	 secure him from sinking into oblivion.\n\n\"Oh\, I can't wear these thing
	s\,\" said Charlie\, tears of vexation starting from his eyes. \"Why\, the
	y are so large I can't even keep them up\; and just look at the legs\, wil
	l you—they'll have to be turned up a quarter of a yard at least.\"\n\n\"
	Here\,\" said Kinch\, seizing a large pillow\, \"I'll stuff this in. Oh\, 
	golly\, how you look! if you ain't a sight to see!\" and he shouted with l
	aughter as he surveyed Charlie\, to whom the pillow had imparted the appea
	rance of a London alderman. \"If you don't look like Squire Baker now\, I'
	ll give it up. You are as big as old Daddy Downhill. You are a regular Dan
	iel Lambert!\"\n\nThe idea of looking like Squire Baker and Daddy Downhill
	\, who were the \"fat men\" of their acquaintance\, amused Charlie as much
	 as it did his companion\, and making the house ring with their mirth\, th
	ey entered the room where Mr. Ellis and the girls had joined Mrs. Ellis.\n
	\n\"What on earth is the matter with the child?\" exclaimed Mr. Ellis\, as
	 he gazed upon the grotesque figure Charlie presented. \"What has the boy 
	been doing to himself?\" Hereupon Kinch explained how matters stood\, to t
	he infinite amusement of all parties.\n\n\"Oh\, Ellen\,\" said Mr. Ellis\,
	 \"you must have them altered\; they're a mile too big for him. I really b
	elieve they would fit me.\"\n\n\"They do look rather large\,\" said Mrs. E
	llis\, reluctantly\; \"but it seems such a waste to take them in\, as he g
	rows so fast.\"\n\n\"He would not grow enough in two years to fill that su
	it\,\" rejoined Mr. Ellis\; \"and he will have worn them out in less than 
	six months\;\" and so\, to the infinite satisfaction of Charlie\, it was c
	oncluded that they should be sent back to the tailor's for the evidently n
	ecessary alterations.\n\nThe day for Charlie's departure at last arrived.\
	n\nKinch\, who had been up since two o'clock in the morning\, was found by
	 Caddy at the early hour of five waiting upon the door-step to accompany h
	is friend to the wharf. Beside him lay a bag\, in which there appeared to 
	be some living object.\n\n\"What have you got in here?\" asked Caddy\, as 
	she gave the bag a punch with the broom she was using. \"It's a present fo
	r Charlie\,\" replied Kinch\, opening the bag\, and displaying\, to the as
	tonished gaze of Caddy\, a very young pig.\n\n\"Why\,\" said she\, laughin
	g\, \"you don't expect he can take that with him\, do you?\"\n\n\"Why not?
	\" asked Kinch\, taking up the bag and carrying it into the house. \"It's 
	just the thing to take into the country\; Charlie can fatten him and sell 
	him for a lot of money.\"\n\nIt was as much as Mrs. Ellis could do to conv
	ince Charlie and Kinch of the impracticability of their scheme of carrying
	 off to Warmouth the pig in question. She suggested\, as it was the exclus
	ive property of Kinch\, and he was so exceedingly anxious to make Charlie 
	a parting gift\, that she should purchase it\, which she did\, on the spot
	\; and Kinch invested all the money in a large cross-bow\, wherewith Charl
	ie was to shoot game sufficient to supply both Kinch and his own parents. 
	Had Charlie been on his way to the scaffold\, he could not have been follo
	wed by a more solemn face than that presented by Kinch as he trudged on wi
	th him in the rear the porter who carried the trunk.\n\n\"I wish you were 
	not going\,\" said he\, as he put his arm affectionately over Charlie's sh
	oulder\, \"I shall be so lonesome when you are gone\; and what is more\, I
	 know I shall get licked every day in school\, for who will help me with m
	y sums?\"\n\n\"Oh\, any of the boys will\, they all like you\, Kinch\; and
	 if you only study a little harder\, you can do them yourself\,\" was Char
	lie's encouraging reply.\n\nOn arriving at the boat\, they found. Mrs. Bir
	d waiting for them\; so Charlie hastily kissed his mother and sisters\, an
	d made endless promises not to be mischievous\, and\, above all\, to be as
	 tidy as possible. Then tearing himself away from them\, and turning to Ki
	nch\, he exclaimed\, \"I'll be back to see you all again soon\, so don't c
	ry old fellow\;\" and at the same time thrusting his hand into his pocket\
	, he drew out a number of marbles\, which he gave him\, his own lips quive
	ring all the while. At last his attempts to suppress his tears and look li
	ke a man grew entirely futile\, and he cried heartily as Mrs. Bird took hi
	s hand and drew him on board the steamer.\n\nAs it slowly moved from the p
	ier and glided up the river\, Charlie stood looking with tearful eyes at h
	is mother and sisters\, who\, with Kinch\, waved their handkerchiefs as lo
	ng as they could distinguish him\, and then he saw them move away with the
	 crowd.\n\nMrs. Bird\, who had been conversing with a lady who accompanied
	 her a short distance on her journey\, came and took her little protege by
	 the hand\, and led him to a seat near her in the after part of the boat\,
	 informing him\, as she did so\, that they would shortly exchange the stea
	mer for the cars\, and she thought he had better remain near her.\n\nAfter
	 some time they approached the little town where the passengers took the t
	rain for New York. Mrs. Bird\, who had taken leave of her friend\, held Ch
	arlie fast by the hand\, and they entered the cars together. He looked a l
	ittle pale and weak from the excitement of parting and the novelty of his 
	situation. Mrs. Bird\, observing his pallid look\, placed him on a seat\, 
	and propped him up with shawls and cushions\, making him as comfortable as
	 possible.\n\nThe train had not long started\, when the conductor came thr
	ough to inspect the tickets\, and quite started with surprise at seeing Ch
	arlie stretched at full length upon the velvet cushion. \"What are you doi
	ng here?\" exclaimed he\, at the same time shaking him roughly\, to arouse
	 him from the slight slumber into which he had fallen. \"Come\, get up: yo
	u must go out of this.\"\n\n\"What do you mean by such conduct?\" asked Mr
	s. Bird\, very much surprised.\n\"Don't wake him\; I've got his ticket\; t
	he child is sick.\"\n\n\"I don't care whether he's sick or well—he can't
	 ride in here. We don't allow niggers to ride in this car\, no how you can
	 fix it—so come\, youngster\,\" said he\, gruffly\, to the now aroused b
	oy\, \"you must travel out of this.\"\n\n\"He shall do no such thing\,\" r
	eplied Mrs. Bird\, in a decided tone\; \"I've paid fall price for his tick
	et\, and he shall ride here\; you have no legal right to eject him.\"\n\n\
	"I've got no time to jaw about rights\, legal or illegal—all I care to k
	now is\, that I've my orders not to let niggers ride in these cars\, and I
	 expect to obey\, so you see there is no use to make any fuss about it.\"\
	n\n\"Charlie\,\" said Mrs. Bird\, \"sit here\;\" and she moved aside\, so 
	as to seat him between herself and the window. \"Now\,\" said she\, \"move
	 him if you think best.\"\n\n\"I'll tell you what it is\, old woman\,\" do
	ggedly remarked the conductor: \"you can't play that game with me. I've ma
	de up my mind that no more niggers shall ride in this car\, and I'll have 
	him out of here\, cost what it may.\"\n\nThe passengers now began to clust
	er around the contending parties\, and to take sides in the controversy. I
	n the end\, the conductor stopped the train\, and called in one or two of 
	the Irish brake-men to assist him\, if necessary\, in enforcing his orders
	.\n\n\"You had better let the boy go into the negro car\, madam\,\" said o
	ne of the gentlemen\, respectfully\; \"it is perfectly useless to contend 
	with these ruffians. I saw a coloured man ejected from here last week\, an
	d severely injured\; and\, in the present state of public feeling\, if any
	thing happened to you or the child\, you would be entirely without redress
	. The directors of this railroad control the State\; and there is no such 
	thing as justice to be obtained in any of the State courts in a matter in 
	which they are concerned. If you will accept of my arm\, I will accompany 
	you to the other car—if you will not permit the child to go there alone\
	, you had better go quietly with him.\"\n\n\"Oh\, what is the use of so mu
	ch talk about it? Why don't you hustle the old thing out\,\" remarked a by
	stander\, the respectability of whose appearance contrasted broadly with h
	is manners\; \"she is some crack-brained abolitionist. Making so much fuss
	 about a little nigger! Let her go into the nigger car—she'll be more at
	 home there.\"\n\nMrs. Bird\, seeing the uselessness of contention\, accep
	ted the proffered escort of the gentleman before mentioned\, and was follo
	wed out of the cars by the conductor and his blackguard assistants\, all o
	f them highly elated by the victory they had won over a defenceless old wo
	man and a feeble little boy.\n\nMrs. Bird shrunk back\, as they opened the
	 door of the car that had been set apart for coloured persons\, and such o
	bjectionable whites as were not admitted to the first-class cars. \"Oh\, w
	hat a wretched place!\" she exclaimed\, as she surveyed the rough pine tim
	bers and dirty floor\; \"I would not force a dog to ride in such a filthy 
	place.\"\n\n\"Oh\, don't stay here\, ma'am\; never mind me—I shall get o
	n by myself well enough\, I dare say\,\" said Charlie\; \"it is too nasty 
	a place for you to stay in.\"\n\n\"No\, my child\,\" she replied\; \"I'll 
	remain with you. I could not think of permitting you to be alone in your p
	resent state of health. I declare\,\" she continued\, \"it's enough to mak
	e any one an abolitionist\, or anything else of the kind\, to see how inof
	fensive coloured people are treated!\"\n\nThat evening they went on board 
	the steamer that was to convey them to\nWarmouth\, where they arrived very
	 early the following morning.\n\nCharlie was charmed with the appearance o
	f the pretty little town\, as they rode through it in Mrs. Bird's carriage
	\, which awaited them at the landing. At the door of her residence they we
	re met by two cherry-faced maids\, who seemed highly delighted at the arri
	val of their mistress.\n\n\"Now\, Charlie\,\" said Mrs. Bird\, as she sat 
	down in her large arm-chair\, and looked round her snug little parlour wit
	h an air of great satisfaction—\"now we are at home\, and you must try a
	nd make yourself as happy as possible. Betsey\,\" said she\, turning to on
	e of the women\, \"here is a nice little fellow\, whom I have brought with
	 me to remain during the summer\, of whom I want you to take the best care
	\; for\,\" continued she\, looking at him compassionately\, \"the poor chi
	ld has had the misfortune to break his arm recently\, and he has not been 
	strong since. The physician thought the country would be the best place fo
	r him\, and so I've brought him here to stay with us. Tell Reuben to carry
	 his trunk into the little maple chamber\, and by-and-by\, after I have re
	sted\, I will take a walk over the place with him.\"\n\n\"Here are two let
	ters for you\,\" said Betsey\, taking them from the mantelpiece\, and hand
	ing them to her mistress.\n\nMrs. Bird opened one\, of which she read a pa
	rt\, and then laid it down\, as being apparently of no importance. The oth
	er\, however\, seemed to have a great effect upon her\, as she exclaimed\,
	 hurriedly\, \"Tell Reuben not to unharness the horses—I must go to Fran
	cisville immediately—dear Mrs. Hinton is very ill\, and not expected to 
	recover. You must take good care of Charlie until I return. If I do not co
	me back to-night\, you will know that she is worse\, and that I am compell
	ed to remain there\;\" and\, on the carriage being brought to the door\, s
	he departed in haste to visit her sick friend.\n\nCHAPTER XI\nThe New Home
	.\n\nWhen Mrs. Garie embarked\, she entertained the idea so prevalent amon
	g fresh-water sailors\, that she was to be an exception to the rule of Fat
	her Neptune\, in accordance with which all who intrude for the first time 
	upon his domain are compelled to pay tribute to his greatness\, and humbly
	 bow in acknowledgment of his power.\n\nMrs. Garie had determined not to b
	e sea-sick upon any account whatever\, being fully persuaded she could bra
	ve the ocean with impunity\, and was\, accordingly\, very brisk and blithe
	-looking\, as she walked up and down upon the deck of the vessel. In the c
	ourse of a few hours they sailed out of the harbour\, and were soon in the
	 open sea. She began to find out how mistaken she had been\, as unmistakab
	le symptoms convinced her of the vanity of all human calculations. \"Why\,
	 you are not going to be ill\, Em\, after all your valiant declarations!\"
	 exclaimed Mr. Garie\, supporting her unsteady steps\, as they paced to an
	d fro.\n\n\"Oh\, no\, no!\" said she\, in a firm tone\; \"I don't intend t
	o give up to any such nonsense. I believe that people can keep up if they 
	try. I do feel a little fatigued and nervous\; it's caused\, no doubt\, by
	 the long drive of this morning—although I think it singular that a driv
	e should affect me in this manner.\" Thus speaking\, she sat down by the b
	ulwarks of the vessel\, and a despairing look gradually crept over her fac
	e. At last she suddenly rose\, to look at the water\, as we may imagine. T
	he effect of her scrutiny\, however\, was\, that she asked feebly to be as
	sisted to her state-room\, where she remained until their arrival in the h
	arbour of New York. The children suffered only for a short time\, and as t
	heir father escaped entirely\, he was able to watch that they got into no 
	mischief. They were both great favourites with the captain and steward\, a
	nd\, between the two\, were so stuffed and crammed with sweets as to place
	 their health in considerable jeopardy.\n\nIt was a delightful morning whe
	n they sailed into the harbour of New York. The waters were dancing and ri
	ppling in the morning sun\, and the gaily-painted ferry-boats were skimmin
	g swiftly across its surface in their trips to and from the city\, which w
	as just awaking to its daily life of bustling toil.\n\n\"What an immense c
	ity it is!\" said Mrs. Garie—\"how full of life and bustle! Why there ar
	e more ships at one pier here than there are in the whole port of Savanah!
	\"\n\n\"Yes\, dear\,\" rejoined her husband\; \"and what is more\, there a
	lways will be. Our folks in Georgia are not waked up yet\; and when they d
	o arouse themselves from their slumber\, it will be too late. But we don't
	 see half the shipping from here—this is only one side of the city—the
	re is much more on the other. Look over there\,\" continued he\, pointing 
	to Jersey city\,—\"that is where we take the cars for Philadelphia\; and
	 if we get up to dock in three or four hours\, we shall be in time for the
	 mid-day train.\"\n\nIn less time than they anticipated they were alongsid
	e the wharf\; the trunks were brought up\, and all things for present use 
	were safely packed together and despatched\, under the steward's care\, to
	 the office of the railroad.\n\nMr. and Mrs. Garie\, after bidding good-by
	e to the captain\, followed with the children\, who were thrown into a gre
	at state of excitement by the noise and bustle of the crowded thoroughfare
	.\n\n\"How this whirl and confusion distracts me\,\" said Mrs. Garie\, loo
	king out of the carriage-window. \"I hope Philadelphia is not as noisy a p
	lace as this.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\,\" replied Mr. Garie\; \"it is one of the mo
	st quiet and clean cities in the world\, whilst this is the noisiest and d
	irtiest. I always hurry out of New York\; it is to me such a disagreeable 
	place\, with its extortionate hackmen and filthy streets.\"\n\nOn arriving
	 at the little steamer in which they crossed the ferry\, they found it abo
	ut to start\, and therefore had to hurry on board with all possible speed.
	\n\nUnder the circumstances\, the hackman felt that it would be flying in 
	the face of Providence if he did not extort a large fare\, and he therefor
	e charged an extravagant price. Mr. Garie paid him\, as he had no time to 
	parley\, and barely succeeded in slipping a douceur into the steward's han
	d\, when the boat pushed off from the pier.\n\nIn a few moments they had c
	rossed the river\, and were soon comfortably seated in the cars whirling o
	ver the track to Philadelphia.\n\nAs the conductor came through to examine
	 the tickets\, he paused for a moment before Mrs. Garie and the children. 
	As he passed on\, his assistant inquired\, \"Isn't that a nigger?\"\n\n\"Y
	es\, a half-white one\,\" was the reply.\n\n\"Why don't you order her out\
	, then?—she has no business to ride in here\,\" continued the first spea
	ker.\n\n\"I guess we had better let her alone\,\" suggested the conductor\
	, \"particularly as no one has complained\; and there might be a row if sh
	e turned out to be the nurse to those children. The whole party are Southe
	rners\, that's clear\; and these Southerners are mighty touchy about their
	 niggers sometimes\, and kick and cut like the devil about them. I guess w
	e had better let her alone\, unless some one complains about her being the
	re.\"\n\nAs they drove through the streets of Philadelphia on the way to t
	heir new home\, Mrs. Garie gave rent to many expressions of delight at the
	 appearance of the city. \"Oh\, what a sweet place! everything is so brigh
	t and fresh-looking\; why the pavement and doorsteps look as if they were 
	cleaned twice a day. Just look at that house\, how spotless it is\; I hope
	 ours resembles that. Ours is a new house\, is it not?\" she inquired. \"N
	ot entirely\; it has been occupied before\, but only for a short time\, I 
	believe\,\" was her husband's reply.\n\nIt had grown quite dark by the tim
	e they arrived at Winter-street\, where Caddy had been anxiously holding w
	atch and ward in company with the servants who had been procured for them.
	 A bright light was burning in the entry as the coachman stopped at the do
	or.\n\n\"This is No. 27\,\" said he\, opening the door of the carriage\, \
	"shall I ring?\"\n\n\"Yes\, do\,\" replied Mr. Garie\; but whilst he was e
	ndeavouring to open the gate of the little garden in front\, Caddy\, who h
	ad heard the carriage stop\, bounded out to welcome them. \"This is Mr. Ga
	rie\, I suppose\,\" said she\, as he alighted.\n\n\"Yes\, I am\; and you\,
	 I suppose\, are the daughter of Mr. Ellis?\"\n\n\"Yes\, sir\; I'm sorry m
	other is not here to welcome you\; she was here until very late last night
	 expecting your arrival\, and was here again this morning\,\" said Caddy\,
	 taking at the same time one of the little carpet bags. \"Give me the litt
	le girl\, I can take care of her too\,\" she continued\; and with little E
	m on one arm and the carpet bag on the other\, she led the way into the ho
	use.\n\n\"We did not make up any fire\,\" said she\, \"the weather is very
	 warm to us. I don't know how it may feel to you\, though.\"\n\n\"It is a 
	little chilly\,\" replied Mrs. Garie\, as she sat down upon the sofa\, and
	 looked round the room with a smile of pleasure\, and added\, \"All this p
	lace wants\, to make it the most bewitching of rooms\, is a little fire.\"
	\n\nCaddy hurried the new servants from place to place remorselessly\, and
	 set them to prepare the table and get the things ready for tea. She wayla
	id a party of labourers\, who chanced to be coming that way\, and hired th
	em to carry all the luggage upstairs—had the desired fire made—mixed u
	p some corn-bread\, and had tea on the table in a twinkling. They all ate 
	very heartily\, and Caddy was greatly praised for her activity.\n\n\"You a
	re quite a housekeeper\,\" said Mrs. Garie to Caddy. \"Do you like it?\"\n
	\n\"Oh\, yes\,\" she replied. \"I see to the house at home almost entirely
	\; mother and Esther are so much engaged in sewing\, that they are glad en
	ough to leave it in my hands\, and I'd much rather do that than sew.\"\n\n
	\"I hope\,\" said Mrs. Garie\, \"that your mother will permit you to remai
	n with us until we get entirely settled.\"\n\n\"I know she will\,\" confid
	ently replied Caddy. \"She will be up here in the morning. She will know y
	ou have arrived by my not having gone home this evening.\"\n\nThe children
	 had now fallen asleep with their heads in close proximity to their plates
	\, and Mrs. Garie declared that she felt very much fatigued and slightly i
	ndisposed\, and thought the sooner she retired the better it would be for 
	her. She accordingly went up to the room\, which she had already seen and 
	greatly admired\, and was soon in the land of dreams.\n\nAs is always the 
	case on such occasions\, the children's night-dresses could not be found. 
	Clarence was put to bed in one of his father's shirts\, in which he was al
	most lost\, and little Em was temporarily accommodated with a calico short
	 gown of Caddy's\, and\, in default of a nightcap\, had her head tied up i
	n a Madras handkerchief\, which gave her\, when her back was turned\, very
	 much the air of an old Creole who had been by some mysterious means depri
	ved of her due growth.\n\nThe next morning Mrs. Garie was so much indispos
	ed at to be unable to rise\, and took her breakfast in bed. Her husband ha
	d finished his meal\, and was sitting in the parlour\, when he observed a 
	middle-aged coloured lady coming into the garden.\n\n\"Look\, Caddy\,\" cr
	ied he\, \"isn't this your mother?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\, that is she\,\" repli
	ed Caddy\, and ran and opened the door\, exclaiming\, \"Oh\, mother\, they
	're come\;\" and as she spoke\, Mr. Garie came into the entry and shook ha
	nds heartily with her. \"I'm so much indebted to you\,\" said he\, \"for a
	rranging everything so nicely for us—there is not a thing we would wish 
	to alter.\"\n\n\"I am very glad you are pleased\; we did our best to make 
	it comfortable\,\" was her reply.\n\n\"And you succeeded beyond our expect
	ation\; but do come up\,\" continued he\, \"Emily will be delighted to see
	 you. She is quite unwell this morning\; has not even got up yet\;\" and l
	eading the way upstairs\, he ushered Mrs. Ellis into the bedroom.\n\n\"Why
	\, can this be you?\" said she\, surveying Emily with surprise and pleasur
	e. \"If I had met you anywhere\, I should never have known you. How you ha
	ve altered! You were not so tall as my Caddy when I saw you last\; and her
	e you are with two children—and pretty little things they are too!\" sai
	d she\, kissing little Em\, who was seated on the bed with her brother\, a
	nd sharing with him the remains of her mother's chocolate.\n\n\"And you lo
	ok much younger that I expected to see you\,\" replied Mrs. Garie. \"Draw 
	a chair up to the bed\, and let us have a talk about old times. You must e
	xcuse my lying down\; I don't intend to get up to-day\; I feel quite indis
	posed.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis took off her bonnet\, and prepared for a long chat\
	; whilst Mr. Garie\, looking at his watch\, declared it was getting late\,
	 and started for down town\, where he had to transact some business.\n\n\"
	You can scarcely think\, Ellen\, how much I feel indebted to you for all y
	ou have done for us\; and we are so distressed to hear about Charlie's acc
	ident. You must have had a great deal of trouble.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, none to
	 speak of—and had it been ever so much\, I should have been just as plea
	sed to have done it\; I was so glad you were coming. What did put it in yo
	ur heads to come here to live?\" continued Mrs. Ellis.\n\n\"Oh\, cousin Ge
	orge Winston praised the place so highly\, and you know how disagreeable G
	eorgia is to live in. My mind was never at rest there respecting these\,\"
	 said she\, pointing to the children\; \"so that I fairly teased Garie int
	o it. Did you recognize George?\"\n\n\"No\, I didn't remember much about h
	im. I should never have taken him for a coloured man\; had I met him in th
	e street\, I should have supposed him to be a wealthy white Southerner. Wh
	at a gentleman he is in his appearance and manners\,\" said Mrs. Ellis.\n\
	n\"Yes\, he is all that—my husband thinks there is no one like him. But 
	we won't talk about him now\; I want you to tell me all about yourself and
	 family\, and then I'll tell you everything respecting my own fortunes.\" 
	Hereupon ensued long narratives from both parties\, which occupied the gre
	ater part of the morning.\n\nMr. Garie\, on leaving the house\, slowly wen
	ded his way to the residence of Mr. Walters. As he passed into the lower p
	art of the city\, his attention was arrested by the number of coloured chi
	ldren he saw skipping merrily along with their bags of books on their arms
	.\n\n\"This\,\" said he to himself\, \"don't much resemble Georgia.\"[*]\n
	\n[Footnote *: It is a penal offence in Georgia to teach coloured children
	 to read.]\n\nAfter walking some distance he took out a card\, and read\, 
	257\, Easton-street\; and on inquiry found himself in the very street. He 
	proceeded to inspect the numbers\, and was quite perplexed by their confus
	ion and irregularity.\n\nA coloured boy happening to pass at the time\, he
	 asked him: \"Which way do the numbers run\, my little man?\"\n\nThe boy l
	ooked up waggishly\, and replied: \"They don't run at all\; they are perma
	nently affixed to each door.\"\n\n\"But\,\" said Mr. Garie\, half-provoked
	\, yet compelled to smile at the boy's pompous wit\, \"you know what I mea
	n\; I cannot find the number I wish\; the street is not correctly numbered
	.\"\n\n\"The street is not numbered at all\,\" rejoined the boy\, \"but th
	e houses are\,\" and he skipped lightly away.\n\nMr. Garie was finally set
	 right about the numbers\, and found himself at length before the door of 
	Mr. Walters's house. \"Quite a handsome residence\,\" said he\, as he surv
	eyed the stately house\, with its spotless marble steps and shining silver
	 door-plate.\n\nOn ringing\, his summons was quickly answered by a well-dr
	essed servant\, who informed him that Mr. Walters was at home\, and ushere
	d him into the parlour. The elegance of the room took Mr. Garie completely
	 by surprise\, as its furniture indicated not only great wealth\, but cult
	ivated taste and refined habits. The richly-papered walls were adorned by 
	paintings from the hands of well-known foreign and native artists. Rich va
	ses and well-executed bronzes were placed in the most favourable situation
	s in the apartment\; the elegantly-carved walnut table was covered with th
	ose charming little bijoux which the French only are capable of conceiving
	\, and which are only at the command of such purchasers as are possessed o
	f more money than they otherwise can conveniently spend.\n\nMr. Garie thre
	w himself into a luxuriously-cushioned chair\, and was soon so absorbed in
	 contemplating the likeness of a negro officer which hung opposite\, that 
	he did not hear the soft tread of Mr. Walters as he entered the room. The 
	latter\, stepping slowly forward\, caught the eye of Mr. Garie\, who start
	ed up\, astonished at the commanding figure before him.\n\n\"Mr. Garie\, I
	 presume?\" said Mr. Walters.\n\n\"Yes\,\" he replied\, and added\, as he 
	extended his hand\; \"I have the pleasure of addressing Mr. Walters\, I su
	ppose?\"\n\nMr. Walters bowed low as he accepted the proffered hand\, and 
	courteously requested his visitor to be seated.\n\nAs Mr. Garie resumed hi
	s seat\, he could not repress a look of surprise\, which Mr. Walters appar
	ently perceived\, for a smile slightly curled his lip as he also took a se
	at opposite his visitor.\n\nMr. Walters was above six feet in height\, and
	 exceedingly well-proportioned\; of jet-black complexion\, and smooth glos
	sy skin. His head was covered with a quantity of woolly hair\, which was c
	ombed back from a broad but not very high forehead. His eyes were small\, 
	black\, and piercing\, and set deep in his head. His aquiline nose\, thin 
	lips\, and broad chin\, were the very reverse of African in their shape\, 
	and gave his face a very singular appearance. In repose\, his countenance 
	was severe in its expression\; but when engaged in agreeable conversation\
	, the thin sarcastic-looking lips would part\, displaying a set of dazzlin
	gly white teeth\, and the small black eyes would sparkle with animation. T
	he neatness and care with which he was dressed added to the attractiveness
	 of his appearance. His linen was the perfection of whiteness\, and his sn
	owy vest lost nothing by its contact therewith. A long black frock coat\, 
	black pants\, and highly-polished boots\, completed his attire.\n\n\"I hop
	e\,\" said he\, \"your house suits you\; it is one of my own\, and has nev
	er been rented except for a short time to a careful tenant\, who was waiti
	ng for his own house to be finished. I think you will find it comfortable.
	\"\n\n\"Oh\, perfectly so\, I am quite sure. I must thank you for the prom
	pt manner in which you have arranged everything for us. It seems more like
	 coming to an old home than to a new residence\,\" replied Mr. Garie.\n\n\
	"I am delighted to hear you say so\,\" said Mr. Walters. \"I shall be most
	 happy to call and pay my respects to Mrs. Garie when agreeable to her. De
	pend upon it\, we will do all in our power to make our quiet city pleasant
	 to you both.\"\n\nMr. Garie thanked him\, and after some further conversa
	tion\, rose to depart.\n\nAs he was leaving the room\, he stopped before t
	he picture which had so engaged his attention\, when Mr. Walters entered.\
	n\n\"So you\, too\, are attracted by that picture\,\" said Mr. Walters\, w
	ith a smile. \"All white men look at it with interest. A black man in the 
	uniform of a general officer is something so unusual that they cannot pass
	 it with a glance.\" \"It is\, indeed\, rather a novelty\,\" replied Mr. G
	arie\, \"particularly to a person from my part of the country. Who is it?\
	"\n\n\"That is Toussaint l'Ouverture\,\" replied Mr. Walters\; \"and I hav
	e every reason to believe it to be a correct likeness. It was presented to
	 an American merchant by Toussaint himself—a present in return for some 
	kindness shown him. This merchant's son\, not having the regard for the pi
	cture that his father entertained for it\, sold it to me. That\,\" continu
	ed Mr. Walters\, \"looks like a man of intelligence. It is entirely differ
	ent from any likeness I ever saw of him. The portraits generally represent
	 him as a monkey-faced person\, with a handkerchief about his head.\"\n\n\
	"This\,\" said Mr. Garie\, \"gives me an idea of the man that accords with
	 his actions.\"\n\nThus speaking\, he continued looking at the picture for
	 a short time\, and then took his departure\, after requesting Mr. Walters
	 to call upon him at an early opportunity.\n\nCHAPTER XII.\nMr. Garie's Ne
	ighbour.\n\nWe must now introduce our readers into the back parlour of the
	 house belonging to Mr. Garie's next-door neighbour\, Mr. Thomas Stevens.\
	n\nWe find this gentleman standing at a window that overlooked his garden\
	, enjoying a fragrant Havannah. His appearance was not by any means prepos
	sessing\; he was rather above than below the middle height\, with round sh
	oulders\, and long\, thin arms\, finished off by disagreeable-looking hand
	s. His head was bald on the top\, and the thin greyish-red hair\, that gre
	w more thickly about his ears\, was coaxed up to that quarter\, where an a
	ttempt had been made to effect such a union between the cords of the hair 
	from each side as should cover the place in question.\n\nThe object\, howe
	ver\, remained unaccomplished\; as the hair was either very obstinate and 
	would not be induced to lie as desired\, or from extreme modesty objected 
	to such an elevated position\, and\, in consequence\, stopped half-way\, a
	s if undecided whether to lie flat or remain erect\, producing the effect 
	that would have been presented had he been decorated with a pair of horns.
	 His baldness might have given an air of benevolence to his face\, but for
	 the shaggy eyebrows that over-shadowed his cunning-looking grey eyes. His
	 cheekbones were high\, and the cadaverous skin was so tightly drawn acros
	s them\, as to give it a very parchment-like appearance. Around his thin c
	ompressed lips there was a continual nervous twitching\, that added greatl
	y to the sinister aspect of his face.\n\nOn the whole\, he was a person fr
	om whom you would instinctively shrink\; and had he been president or dire
	ctor of a bank in which you had money deposited\, his general aspect would
	 not have given you additional confidence in the stable character or just 
	administration of its affairs.\n\nMr. George Stevens was a pettifogging at
	torney\, who derived a tolerable income from a rather disreputable legal p
	ractice picked up among the courts that held their sessions in the various
	 halls of the State-house. He was known in the profession as Slippery Geor
	ge\, from the easy manner in which he glided out of scrapes that would hav
	e been fatal to the reputation of any other lawyer. Did a man break into a
	 house\, and escape without being actually caught on the spot with the goo
	ds in his possession\, Stevens was always able to prove an alibi by a long
	 array of witnesses. In fact\, he was considered by the swell gentry of th
	e city as their especial friend and protector\, and by the members of the 
	bar generally as anything but an ornament to the profession.\n\nHe had had
	 rather a fatiguing day's labour\, and on the evening of which we write\, 
	was indulging in his usual cigar\, and amusing himself at the same time by
	 observing the gambols of Clarence and little Em\, who were enjoying a rom
	p in their father's garden.\n\n\"Come here\, Jule\,\" said he\, \"and look
	 at our new neighbour's children—rather pretty\, ain't they?\"\n\nHe was
	 joined by a diminutive red-faced woman\, with hair and eyes very much lik
	e his own\, and a face that wore a peevish\, pinched expression.\n\n\"Rath
	er good-looking\,\" she replied\, after observing them for a few minutes\,
	 and then added\, \"Have you seen their parents?\"\n\n\"No\, not yet\,\" w
	as the reply. \"I met Walters in the street this morning\, who informed me
	 they are from the South\, and very rich\; we must try and cultivate the
	m—ask the children in to play with ours\, and strike up an intimacy in t
	hat way\, the rest will follow naturally\, you know. By the way\, Jule\,\"
	 continued he\, \"how I hate that nigger Walters\, with his grand airs. I 
	wanted some money of him the other day on rather ticklish securities for a
	 client of mine\, and the black wretch kept me standing in his hall for at
	 least five minutes\, and then refused me\, with some not very complimenta
	ry remarks upon my assurance in offering him such securities. It made me s
	o mad I could have choked him—it is bad enough to be treated with hauteu
	r by a white man\, but contempt from a nigger is almost unendurable.\"\n\n
	\"Why didn't you resent it in some way? I never would have submitted to an
	ything of the kind from him\,\" interrupted Mrs. Stevens.\n\n\"Oh\, I don'
	t dare to just now\; I have to be as mild as milk with him. You forget abo
	ut the mortgage\; don't you know he has me in a tight place there\, and I 
	don't see how to get out of it either. If I am called Slippery George\, I 
	tell you what\, Jule\, there's not a better man of business in the whole o
	f Philadelphia than that same Walters\, nigger as he is\; and no one offen
	ds him without paying dear for it in some way or other. I'll tell you some
	thing he did last week. He went up to Trenton on business\, and at the hot
	el they refused to give him dinner because of his colour\, and told him th
	ey did not permit niggers to eat at their tables. What does he do but buy 
	the house over the landlord's head. The lease had just expired\, and the l
	andlord was anxious to negotiate another\; he was also making some arrange
	ments with his creditors\, which could not be effected unless he was enabl
	ed to renew the lease of the premises he occupied. On learning that the ho
	use had been sold\, he came down to the city to negotiate with the new own
	er\, and to his astonishment found him to be the very man he had refused a
	 meal to the week before. Blunt happened to be in Walters's office at the 
	time the fellow called. Walters\, he says\, drew himself up to his full he
	ight\, and looked like an ebony statue.\n\n\"Sir\,\" said he\, \"I came to
	 your house and asked for a meal\, for which I was able to pay\; you not o
	nly refused it to me\, but heaped upon me words such as fall only from the
	 lips of blackguards. You refuse to have me in your house—I object to ha
	ve you in mine: you will\, therefore\, quit the premises immediately.\" Th
	e fellow sneaked out quite crestfallen\, and his creditors have broken him
	 up completely.\n\n\"I tell you what\, Jule\, if I was a black\,\" continu
	ed he\, \"living in a country like this\, I'd sacrifice conscience and eve
	rything else to the acquisition of wealth.\"\n\nAs he concluded\, he turne
	d from the window and sat down by a small table\, upon which a lighted lam
	p had been placed\, and where a few law papers were awaiting a perusal.\n\
	nA little boy and girl were sitting opposite to him. The boy was playing w
	ith a small fly-trap\, wherein he had already imprisoned a vast number of 
	buzzing sufferers. In appearance he bore a close resemblance to his father
	\; he had the same red hair and sallow complexion\, but his grey eyes had 
	a dull leaden hue.\n\n\"Do let them go\, George\, do!\" said the little gi
	rl\, in a pleading tone.\n\"You'll kill them\, shut up there.\"\n\n\"I don
	't care if I do\,\" replied he\, doggedly\; \"I can catch more—look here
	\;\" and as he spoke he permitted a few of the imprisoned insects to creep
	 partly out\, and then brought the lid down upon them with a force that co
	mpletely demolished them.\n\nThe little girl shuddered at this wanton exhi
	bition of cruelty\, and offered him a paper of candy if he would liberate 
	his prisoners\, which he did rather reluctantly\, but promising himself to
	 replenish the box at the first opportunity.\n\n\"Ah!\" said he\, in a ton
	e of exultation\, \"father took me with him to the jail to-day\, and I saw
	 all the people locked up. I mean to be a jailer some of these days. Would
	n't you like to keep a jail\, Liz?\" continued he\, his leaden eyes receiv
	ing a slight accession of brightness at the idea.\n\n\"Oh\, no!\" replied 
	she\; \"I would let all the people go\, if I kept the jail.\"\n\nA more co
	mplete contrast than this little girl presented to her parents and brother
	\, cannot be imagined. She had very dark chestnut hair\, and mild blue eye
	s\, and a round\, full face\, which\, in expression\, was sweetness itself
	. She was about six years old\, and her brother's junior by an equal numbe
	r of years.\n\nHer mother loved her\, but thought her tame and spiritless 
	in her disposition\; and her father cherished as much affection for her as
	 he was capable of feeling for any one but himself.\n\nMrs. Stevens\, howe
	ver\, doted on their eldest hope\, who was as disagreeable as a thoroughly
	 spoiled and naturally evil-disposed boy could be.\n\nAs the evenings had 
	now become quite warm\, Mr. Garie frequently took a chair and enjoyed his 
	evening cigar upon the door-step of his house\; and as Mr. Stevens thought
	 his steps equally suited to this purpose\, it was very natural he should 
	resort there with the same object.\n\nMr. Stevens found no difficulty in f
	requently bringing about short neighbourly conversations with Mr. Garie. T
	he little folk\, taking their cue from their parents\, soon became intimat
	e\, and ran in and out of each other's houses in the most familiar manner 
	possible. Lizzy Stevens and little Em joined hearts immediately\, and thei
	r intimacy had already been cemented by frequent consultations on the vari
	ous ailments wherewith they supposed their dolls afflicted.\n\nClarence go
	t on only tolerably with George Stevens\; he entertained for him that defe
	rence that one boy always has for another who is his superior in any boyis
	h pastime\; but there was little affection lost between them—they cared 
	very little for each other's society.\n\nMrs. Garie\, since her arrival\, 
	had been much confined to her room\, in consequence of her protracted indi
	sposition. Mrs. Stevens had several times intimated to Mr. Garie her inten
	tion of paying his wife a visit\; but never having received any very decid
	ed encouragement\, she had not pressed the matter\, though her curiosity w
	as aroused\, and she was desirous of seeing what kind of person Mrs. Garie
	 could be.\n\nHer son George in his visits had never been permitted farthe
	r than the front parlour\; and all the information that could be drawn fro
	m little Lizzy\, who was frequently in Mrs. Garie's bedroom\, was that \"s
	he was a pretty lady\, with great large eyes.\" One evening\, when Mr. Gar
	ie was occupying his accustomed seat\, he was accosted from the other side
	 by Mrs. Stevens\, who\, as usual\, was very particular in her inquiries a
	fter the state of his wife's health\; and on learning that she was so much
	 improved as to be down-stairs\, suggested that\, perhaps\, she would be w
	illing to receive her.\n\n\"No doubt she will\,\" rejoined Mr. Garie\; and
	 he immediately entered the house to announce the intended visit. The lamp
	s were not lighted when Mrs. Stevens was introduced\, and faces could not\
	, therefore\, be clearly distinguished.\n\n\"My dear\,\" said Mr. Garie\, 
	\"this is our neighbour\, Mrs. Stevens.\"\n\n\"Will you excuse me for not 
	rising?\" said Mrs. Garie\, extending her hand to her visitor. \"I have be
	en quite ill\, or I should have been most happy to have received you befor
	e. My little folks are in your house a great deal—I hope you do not find
	 them troublesome.\"\n\n\"Oh\, by no means! I quite dote on your little Em
	ily\, she is such a sweet child—so very affectionate. It is a great comf
	ort to have such a child near for my own to associate with—they have got
	 quite intimate\, as I hope we soon shall be.\"\n\nMrs. Garie thanked her 
	for the kindness implied in the wish\, and said she trusted they should be
	 so.\n\n\"And how do you like your house?\" asked Mrs. Stevens\; \"it is o
	n the same plan as ours\, and we find ours very convenient. They both form
	erly belonged to Walters\; my husband purchased of him. Do you intend to b
	uy?\"\n\n\"It is very probable we shall\, if we continue to like Philadelp
	hia\,\" answered Mr. Garie.\n\n\"I'm delighted to hear that\,\" rejoined s
	he—\"very glad\, indeed. It quite relieves my mind about one thing: ever
	 since Mr. Stevens purchased our house we have been tormented with the sus
	picion that Walters would put a family of niggers in this\; and if there i
	s one thing in this world I detest more than another\, it is coloured peop
	le\, I think.\"\n\nMr. Garie here interrupted her by making some remark qu
	ite foreign to the subject\, with the intention\, no doubt\, of drawing he
	r off this topic. The attempt was\, however\, an utter failure\, for she c
	ontinued—\"I think all those that are not slaves ought to be sent out of
	 the country back to Africa\, where they belong: they are\, without except
	ion\, the most ignorant\, idle\, miserable set I ever saw.\"\n\n\"I think\
	,\" said Mr. Garie\, \"I can show you at least one exception\, and that to
	o without much trouble. Sarah\,\" he cried\, \"bring me a light.\"\n\n\"Oh
	\,\" said Mrs. Stevens\, \"I suppose you refer to Walters—it is true he 
	is an exception\; but he is the only coloured person I ever saw that could
	 make the least pretension to anything like refinement or respectability.\
	n\n\"Let me show you another\,\" said Mr. Garie\, as he took the lamp from
	 the servant and placed it upon the table near his wife.\n\nAs the light f
	ell on her face\, their visitor saw that she belonged to the very class th
	at she had been abusing in such unmeasured terms and so petrified was she 
	with confusion at the faux pas she had committed\, that she was entirely u
	nable to improvise the slightest apology.\n\nMrs. Garie\, who had been rec
	lining on the lounge\, partially raised herself and gave Mrs. Stevens a wi
	thering look. \"I presume\, madam\,\" said she\, in a hurried and agitated
	 tone\, \"that you are very ignorant of the people upon whom you have just
	 been heaping such unmerited abuse\, and therefore I shall not think so ha
	rdly of you as I should\, did I deem your language dictated by pure hatred
	\; but\, be its origin what it may\, it is quite evident that our farther 
	acquaintance could be productive of no pleasure to either of us—you will
	\, therefore\, permit me\,\" continued she\, rising with great dignity\, \
	"to wish you good evening\;\" and thus speaking\, she left the room.\n\nMr
	s. Stevens was completely demolished by this unexpected denouement of her 
	long-meditated visit\, and could only feebly remark to Mr. Garie that it w
	as getting late\, and she would go\; and rising\, she suffered herself to 
	be politely bowed out of the house. In her intense anxiety to relate to he
	r husband the scene which had just occurred\, she could not take time to g
	o round and through the gate\, but leaped lightly over the low fence that 
	divided the gardens\, and rushed precipitately into the presence of her hu
	sband.\n\n\"Good heavens! George\, what do you think?\" she exclaimed\; \"
	I've had such a surprise!\"\n\n\"I should think that you had\, judging fro
	m appearances\,\" replied he. \"Why\, your eyes are almost starting out of
	 your head! What on earth has happened?\" he asked\, as he took the shade 
	off the lamp to get a better view of his amiable partner.\n\n\"You would n
	ot guess in a year\,\" she rejoined\; \"I never would have dreamed it—I 
	never was so struck in my life!\"\n\n\"Struck with what? Do talk sensibly\
	, Jule\, and say what all this is about\,\" interrupted her husband\, in a
	n impatient manner. \"Come\, out with it—what has happened?\"\n\n\"Why\,
	 would you have thought it\,\" said she\; \"Mrs. Garie is a nigger woman
	—a real nigger—she would be known as such anywhere?\"\n\nIt was now Mr
	. Stevens's turn to be surprised. \"Why\, Jule\,\" he exclaimed\, \"you as
	tonish me! Come\, now\, you're joking—you don't mean a real black nigger
	?\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, not jet black—but she's dark enough. She is as dark a
	s that Sarah we employed as cook some time ago.\"\n\n\"You don't say so! W
	onders will never cease—and he such a gentleman\, too!\" resumed her hus
	band.\n\n\"Yes\; and it's completely sickening\,\" continued Mrs. Stevens\
	, \"to see them together\; he calls her my dear\, and is as tender and aff
	ectionate to her as if she was a Circassian—and she nothing but a nigg
	er—faugh! it's disgusting.\"\n\nLittle Clarence had been standing near\,
	 unnoticed by either of them during this conversation\, and they were ther
	efore greatly surprised when he exclaimed\, with a burst of tears\, \"My m
	other is not a nigger any more than you are! How dare you call her such a 
	bad name? I'll tell my father!\"\n\nMr. Stevens gave a low whistle\, and l
	ooking at his wife\, pointed to the door. Mrs. Stevens laid her hand on th
	e shoulder of Clarence\, and led him to the door\, saying\, as she did so\
	, \"Don't come in here any more—I don't wish you to come into my house\;
	\" and then closing it\, returned to her husband.\n\n\"You know\, George\,
	\" said she\, \"that I went in to pay her a short visit. I hadn't the remo
	test idea that she was a coloured woman\, and I commenced giving my opinio
	n respecting niggers very freely\, when suddenly her husband called for a 
	light\, and I then saw to whom I had been talking. You may imagine my asto
	nishment—I was completely dumb—and it would have done you good to have
	 seen the air with which she left the room\, after as good as telling me t
	o leave the house.\"\n\n\"Well\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, \"this is what may b
	e safely termed an unexpected event. But\, Jule\,\" he continued\, \"you h
	ad better pack these young folks off to bed\, and then you can tell me the
	 rest of it.\"\n\nClarence stood for some time on the steps of the house f
	rom which he had been so unkindly ejected\, with his little heart swelling
	 with indignation. He had often heard the term nigger used in its reproach
	ful sense\, but never before had it been applied to him or his\, at least 
	in his presence. It was the first blow the child received from the prejudi
	ce whose relentless hand was destined to crush him in after-years.\n\nIt w
	as his custom\, when any little grief pressed upon his childish heart\, to
	 go and pour out his troubles on the breast of his mother\; but he instinc
	tively shrunk from confiding this to her\; for\, child as he was\, he knew
	 it would make her very unhappy. He therefore gently stole into the house\
	, crept quietly up to his room\, lay down\, and sobbed himself to sleep.\n
	\nCHAPTER XIII.\nHopes consummated.\n\nTo Emily Winston we have always acc
	orded the title of Mrs. Garie\; whilst\, in reality\, she had no legal cla
	im to it whatever.\n\nPrevious to their emigration from Georgia\, Mr. Gari
	e had\, on one or two occasions\, attempted\, but without success\, to mak
	e her legally his wife.\n\nHe ascertained that\, even if he could have fou
	nd a clergyman willing to expose himself to persecution by marrying them\,
	 the ceremony itself would have no legal weight\, as a marriage between a 
	white and a mulatto was not recognized as valid by the laws of the state\;
	 and he had\, therefore\, been compelled to dismiss the matter from his mi
	nd\, until an opportunity should offer for the accomplishment of their wis
	hes.\n\nNow\, however\, that they had removed to the north\, where they wo
	uld have no legal difficulties to encounter\, he determined to put his for
	mer intention into execution. Although Emily had always maintained a studi
	ed silence on the subject\, he knew that it was the darling wish of her he
	art to be legally united to him\; so he unhesitatingly proceeded to arrang
	e matters for the consummation of what he felt assured would promote the h
	appiness of both. He therefore wrote to Dr. Blackly\, a distinguished cler
	gyman of the city\, requesting him to perform the ceremony\, and received 
	from him an assurance that he would be present at the appointed time.\n\nM
	atters having progressed thus far\, he thought it time to inform Emily of 
	what he had done. On the evening succeeding the receipt of an answer from 
	the Rev. Dr. Blackly—after the children had been sent to bed—he called
	 her to him\, and\, taking her hand\, sat down beside her on the sofa.\n\n
	\"Emily\,\" said he\, as he drew her closer to him\, \"my dear\, faithful 
	Emily! I am about to do you an act of justice—one\, too\, that I feel wi
	ll increase the happiness of us both. I am going to marry you\, my darling
	! I am about to give you a lawful claim to what you have already won by yo
	ur faithfulness and devotion. You know I tried\, more than once\, whilst i
	n the south\, to accomplish this\, but\, owing to the cruel and unjust law
	s existing there\, I was unsuccessful. But now\, love\, no such difficulty
	 exists\; and here\,\" continued he\, \"is an answer to the note I have wr
	itten to Dr. Blackly\, asking him to come next Wednesday night\, and perfo
	rm the ceremony.—You are willing\, are you not\, Emily?\" he asked.\n\n\
	"Willing!\" she exclaimed\, in a voice tremulous with emotion—\"willing!
	 Oh\, God! if you only knew how I have longed for it! It has been my earne
	st desire for years!\" and\, bursting into tears\, she leaned\, sobbing\, 
	on his shoulder.\n\nAfter a few moments she raised her head\, and\, lookin
	g searchingly in his face\, she asked: \"But do you do this after full ref
	lection on the consequences to ensue? Are you willing to sustain all the o
	dium\, to endure all the contumely\, to which your acknowledged union with
	 one of my unfortunate race will subject you? Clarence! it will be a sever
	e trial—a greater one than any you have yet endured for me—and one for
	 which I fear my love will prove but a poor recompense! I have thought mor
	e of these things lately\; I am older now in years and experience. There w
	as a time when I was vain enough to think that my affection was all that w
	as necessary for your happiness\; but men\, I know\, require more to fill 
	their cup of content than the undivided affection of a woman\, no matter h
	ow fervently beloved. You have talents\, and\, I have sometimes thought\, 
	ambition. Oh\, Clarence! how it would grieve me\, in after-years\, to know
	 that you regretted that for me you had sacrificed all those views and hop
	es that are cherished by the generality of your sex! Have you weighed it w
	ell?\"\n\n\"Yes\, Emily—well\,\" replied Mr. Garie\; \"and you know the 
	conclusion. My past should be a guarantee for the future. I had the world 
	before me\, and chose you—and with\, you I am contented to share my lot\
	; and feel that I receive\, in your affection\, a full reward for any of t
	he so-called sacrifices I may make. So\, dry your tears\, my dear\,\" conc
	luded he\, \"and let us hope for nothing but an increase of happiness as t
	he result.\"\n\nAfter a few moments of silence\, he resumed: \"It will be 
	necessary\, Emily\, to have a couple of witnesses. Now\, whom would you pr
	efer? I would suggest Mrs. Ellis and her husband. They are old friends\, a
	nd persons on whose prudence we can rely. It would not do to have the matt
	er talked about\, as it would expose us to disagreeable comments.\"\n\nMrs
	. Garie agreed perfectly with him as to the selection of Mr. and Mrs. Elli
	s\; and immediately despatched a note to Mrs. Ellis\, asking her to call a
	t their house on the morrow.\n\nWhen she came\, Emily informed her\, with 
	some confusion of manner\, of the intended marriage\, and asked her attend
	ance as witness\, at the same time informing her of the high opinion her h
	usband entertained of their prudence in any future discussion of the matte
	r.\n\n\"I am really glad he is going to marry you\, Emily\,\" replied Mrs.
	 Ellis\, \"and depend upon it we will do all in our power to aid it. Only 
	yesterday\, that inquisitive Mrs. Tiddy was at our house\, and\, in conver
	sation respecting you\, asked if I knew you to be married to Mr. Garie. I 
	turned the conversation somehow\, without giving her a direct answer. Mr. 
	Garie\, I must say\, does act nobly towards you. He must love you\, Emily\
	, for not one white man in a thousand would make such a sacrifice for a co
	loured woman. You can't tell how we all like him—he is so amiable\, so k
	ind in his manner\, and makes everyone so much at ease in his company. It'
	s real good in him\, I declare\, and I shall begin to have some faith in w
	hite folks\, after all.—Wednesday night\,\" continued she\; \"very wel
	l—we shall be here\, if the Lord spare us\;\" and\, kissing Emily\, she 
	hurried off\, to impart the joyful intelligence to her husband.\n\nThe anx
	iously looked for Wednesday evening at last arrived\, and Emily arrayed he
	rself in a plain white dress for the occasion. Her long black hair had bee
	n arranged in ringlets by Mrs. Ellis\, who stood by\, gazing admiringly at
	 her.\n\n\"How sweet you look\, Emily—you only want a wreath of orange b
	lossoms to complete your appearance. Don't you feel a little nervous?\" as
	ked her friend.\n\n\"A little excited\,\" she answered\, and her hand shoo
	k as she put back one of the curls that had fallen across her face. Just t
	hen a loud ringing at the door announced the arrival of Dr. Blackly\, who 
	was shown into the front parlour.\n\nEmily and Mrs. Ellis came down into t
	he room where Mr. Garie was waiting for them\, whilst Mr. Ellis brought in
	 Dr. Blackly. The reverend gentleman gazed with some surprise at the party
	 assembled. Mr. Garie was so thoroughly Saxon in appearance\, that no one 
	could doubt to what race he belonged\, and it was equally evident that Emi
	ly\, Mrs. Ellis\, and her husband\, were coloured persons.\n\nDr. Blackly 
	looked from one to the other with evident embarrassment\, and then said to
	 Mr. Garie\, in a low\, hesitating tone:—\n\n\"I think there has been so
	me mistake here—will you do me the favour to step into another room?\"\n
	\nMr. Garie mechanically complied\, and stood waiting to learn the cause o
	f\nDr. Blackly's strange conduct.\n\n\"You are a white man\, I believe?\" 
	at last stammered forth the doctor.\n\n\"Yes\, sir\; I presume my appearan
	ce is a sufficient guarantee of that\,\" answered Mr. Garie.\n\n\"Oh yes\,
	 I do not doubt it\, and for that reason you must not be surprised if I de
	cline to proceed with the ceremony.\"\n\n\"I do not see how my being a whi
	te man can act as a barrier to its performance\,\" remarked Mr. Garie in r
	eply. \"It would not\, sir\, if all the parties were of one complexion\; b
	ut I do not believe in the propriety of amalgamation\, and on no considera
	tion could I be induced to assist in the union of a white man or woman wit
	h a person who has the slightest infusion of African blood in their veins.
	 I believe the negro race\,\" he continued\, \"to be marked out by the han
	d of God for servitude\; and you must pardon me if I express my surprise t
	hat a gentleman of your evident intelligence should seek such a connection
	—you must be labouring under some horrible infatuation.\"\n\n\"Enough\, 
	sir\,\" replied Mr. Garie\, proudly\; \"I only regret that I did not know 
	it was necessary to relate every circumstance of appearance\, complexion\,
	 &amp\;c. I wished to obtain a marriage certificate\, not a passport. I mi
	stook you for a Christian minister\, which mistake you will please to cons
	ider as my apology for having troubled you\;\" and thus speaking\, he bowe
	d Dr. Blackly out of the house. Mr. Garie stepped back to the door of the 
	parlour and called out Mr. Ellis.\n\n\"We are placed in a very difficult d
	ilemma\,\" said he\, as he was joined by the latter. \"Would you believe i
	t? that prejudiced old sinner has actually refused to marry us.\"\n\n\"It 
	is no more than you might have expected of him—he's a thorough nigger-ha
	ter—keeps a pew behind the organ of his church for coloured people\, and
	 will not permit them to receive the sacrament until all the white members
	 of his congregation are served. Why\, I don't see what on earth induced y
	ou to send for him.\"\n\n\"I knew nothing of his sentiments respecting col
	oured people. I did not for a moment have an idea that he would hesitate t
	o marry us. There is no law here that forbids it. What can we do?\" said M
	r. Garie\, despairingly.\n\n\"I know a minister who will marry you with pl
	easure\, if I can only catch him at home\; he is so much engaged in visiti
	ng the sick and other pastoral duties.\"\n\n\"Do go—hunt him up\, Ellis.
	 It will be a great favour to me\, if you can induce him to come. Poor Emi
	ly—what a disappointment this will be to her\,\" said he\, as he entered
	 the room where she was sitting.\n\n\"What is the matter\, dear?\" she ask
	ed\, as she observed Garie's anxious face. \"I hope there is no new diffic
	ulty.\"\n\nMr. Garie briefly explained what had just occurred\, and inform
	ed her\, in addition\, of Mr. Ellis having gone to see if he could get Fat
	her Banks\, as the venerable old minister was called.\n\n\"It seems\, dear
	\,\" said she\, despondingly\, \"as if Providence looked unfavourably on o
	ur design\; for every time you have attempted it\, we have been in some wa
	y thwarted\;\" and the tears chased one another down her face\, which had 
	grown pale in the excitement of the moment.\n\n\"Oh\, don't grieve about i
	t\, dear\; it is only a temporary disappointment. I can't think all the cl
	ergymen in the city are like Dr. Blackly. Some one amongst them will certa
	inly oblige us. We won't despair\; at least not until Ellis comes back.\"\
	n\nThey had not very long to wait\; for soon after this conversation foots
	teps were heard in the garden\, and Mr. Ellis entered\, followed by the cl
	ergyman.\n\nIn a very short space of time they were united by Father Banks
	\, who seemed much affected as he pronounced his blessing upon them.\n\n\"
	My children\,\" he said\, tremulously\, \"you are entering upon a path whi
	ch\, to the most favoured\, is full of disappointment\, care\, and anxieti
	es\; but to you who have come together under such peculiar circumstances\,
	 in the face of so many difficulties\, and in direct opposition to the pre
	judices of society\, it will be fraught with more danger\, and open to mor
	e annoyances\, than if you were both of one race. But if men revile you\, 
	revile not again\; bear it patiently for the sake of Him who has borne so 
	much for you. God bless you\, my children\,\" said he\, and after shaking 
	hands with them all\, he departed.\n\nMr. and Mrs. Ellis took their leave 
	soon after\, and then Mrs. Garie stole upstairs alone into the room where 
	the children were sleeping. It seemed to her that night that they were mor
	e beautiful than ever\, as they lay in their little beds quietly slumberin
	g. She knelt beside them\, and earnestly prayed their heavenly Father that
	 the union which had just been consummated in the face of so many difficul
	ties might prove a boon to them all.\n\n\"Where have you been\, you runawa
	y?\" exclaimed her husband as she re-entered the parlour. \"You stayed awa
	y so long\, I began to have all sorts of frightful ideas—I thought of th
	e 'mistletoe hung in the castle hall\,' and of old oak chests\, and all ki
	nd of terrible things. I've been sitting here alone ever since the Ellises
	 went: where have you been?\"\n\n\"Oh\, I've been upstairs looking at the 
	children. Bless their young hearts! they looked so sweet and happy—and h
	ow they grow! Clarence is getting to be quite a little man\; don't you thi
	nk it time\, dear\, that he was sent to school? I have so much more to occ
	upy my mind here than I had in Georgia\, so many household duties to atten
	d to\, that I am unable to give that attention to his lessons which I feel
	 is requisite. Besides\, being so much at home\, he has associated with th
	at wretched boy of the Stevens's\, and is growing rude and noisy\; don't y
	ou think he had better be sent to school?\"\n\n\"Oh yes\, Emily\, if you w
	ish it\,\" was Mr. Garie's reply. \"I will search out a school to-morrow\,
	 or next day\;\" and taking out his watch\, he continued\, \"it is near tw
	elve o'clock—how the night has flown away—we must be off to bed. After
	 the excitement of the evening\, and your exertions of to-day\, I fear tha
	t you will be indisposed to-morrow.\"\n\nClarence\, although over nine yea
	rs old\, was so backward in learning\, that they were obliged to send him 
	to a small primary school which had recently been opened in the neighbourh
	ood\; and as it was one for children of both sexes\, it was deemed advisab
	le to send little Em with him.\n\n\"I do so dislike to have her go\,\" sai
	d her mother\, as her husband proposed that she should accompany Clarence\
	; \"she seems so small to be sent to school. I'm afraid she won't be happy
	.\"\n\n\"Oh! don't give yourself the least uneasiness about her not being 
	happy there\, for a more cheerful set of little folks I never beheld. You 
	would be astonished to see how exceedingly young some of them are.\"\n\n\"
	What kind of a person is the teacher?\" asked Mrs. Garie.\n\n\"Oh! she's a
	 charming little creature\; the very embodiment of cheerfulness and good h
	umour. She has sparkling black eyes\, a round rosy face\, and can't be mor
	e than sixteen\, if she is that old. Had I had such a teacher when a boy\,
	 I should have got on charmingly\; but mine was a cross old widow\, who wo
	re spectacles and took an amazing quantity of snuff\, and used to flog upo
	n the slightest pretence. I went into her presence with fear and trembling
	. I could never learn anything from her\, and that must be my excuse for m
	y present literary short-comings. But you need have no fear respecting Em 
	getting on with Miss Jordan: I don't believe she could be unkind to any on
	e\, least of all to our little darling.\"\n\n\"Then you will take them dow
	n in the morning\,\" suggested Mrs. Garie\; \"but on no account leave Emil
	y unless she wishes to stay.\"\n\nCHAPTER XIV.\nCharlie at Warmouth.\n\nAf
	ter the departure of Mrs. Bird to visit her sick friend\, Betsey turned to
	 Charlie and bid him follow her into the kitchen. \"I suppose you haven't 
	been to breakfast\,\" said she\, in a patronizing manner\; \"if you haven'
	t\, you are just in time\, as we will be done ours in a little while\, and
	 then you can have yours.\"\n\nCharlie silently followed her down into the
	 kitchen\, where a man-servant and the younger maid were already at breakf
	ast\; the latter arose\, and was placing another plate upon the table\, wh
	en Betsey frowned and nodded disapprovingly to her. \"Let him wait\,\" whi
	spered she\; \"I'm not going to eat with niggers.\"\n\n\"Oh! he's such a n
	ice little fellow\,\" replied Eliza\, in an undertone\; \"let him eat with
	 us.\"\n\nBetsey here suggested to Charlie that he had better go up to the
	 maple chamber\, wash his face\, and take his things out of his trunk\, an
	d that when his breakfast was ready she would call him.\n\n\"What on earth
	 can induce you to want to eat with a nigger?\" asked Betsey\, as soon as 
	Charlie was out of hearing. \"I couldn't do it\; my victuals would turn on
	 my stomach. I never ate at the same table with a nigger in my life.\"\n\n
	\"Nor I neither\,\" rejoined Eliza\; \"but I see no reason why I should no
	t. The child appears to have good manners\, he is neat and good-looking\, 
	and because God has curled his hair more than he has ours\, and made his s
	kin a little darker than yours or mine\, that is no reason we should treat
	 him as if he was not a human being.\" Alfred\, the gardener\, had set dow
	n his saucer and appeared very much astonished at this declaration of sent
	iment on the part of Eliza\, and sneeringly remarked\, \"You're an Aboliti
	onist\, I suppose.\"\n\n\"No\, I am not\,\" replied she\, reddening\; \"bu
	t I've been taught that God made all alike\; one no better than the other.
	 You know the Bible says God is no respecter of persons.\"\n\n\"Well\, if 
	it does\,\" rejoined Alfred\, with a stolid-look\, \"it don't say that man
	 isn't to be either\, does it? When I see anything in my Bible that tells 
	me I'm to eat and drink with niggers\, I'll do it\, and not before. I supp
	ose you think that all the slaves ought to be free\, and all the rest of t
	he darned stuff these Abolitionists are preaching. Now if you want to eat 
	with the nigger\, you can\; nobody wants to hinder you. Perhaps he may mar
	ry you when he grows up—don't you think you had better set your cap at h
	im?\"\n\nEliza made no reply to this low taunt\, but ate her breakfast in 
	silence.\n\n\"I don't see what Mrs. Bird brought him here for\; she says h
	e is sick\,—had a broken arm or something\; I can't imagine what use she
	 intends to make of him\,\" remarked Betsey.\n\n\"I don't think she intend
	s him to be a servant here\, at any rate\,\" said Eliza\; \"or why should 
	she have him put in the maple chamber\, when there are empty rooms enough 
	in the garret?\"\n\n\"Well\, I guess I know what she brought him for\,\" i
	nterposed Alfred. \"I asked her before she went away to get a little boy t
	o help me do odd jobs\, now that Reuben is about to leave\; we shall want 
	a boy to clean the boots\, run on errands\, drive up the cows\, and do oth
	er little chores.[*] I'm glad he's a black boy\; I can order him round mor
	e\, you know\, than if he was white\, and he won't get his back up half as
	 often either. You may depend upon it\, that's what Mrs. Bird has brought 
	him here for.\" The gardener\, having convinced himself that his view of t
	he matter was the correct one\, went into the garden for his day's labour\
	, and two or three things that he had intended doing he left unfinished\, 
	with the benevolent intention of setting Charlie at them the next morning.
	\n\n[Footnote *: A Yankeeism\, meaning little jobs about a farm.]\n\nCharl
	ie\, after bathing his face and arranging his hair\, looked from the windo
	w at the wide expanse of country spread out before him\, all bright and gl
	owing in the warm summer sunlight. Broad well-cultivated fields stretched 
	away from the foot of the garden to the river beyond\, and the noise of th
	e waterfall\, which was but a short distance off\, was distinctly heard\, 
	and the sparkling spray was clearly visible through the openings of the tr
	ees. \"What a beautiful place\,—what grand fields to run in\; an orchard
	\, too\, full of blossoming fruit-trees! Well\, this is nice\,\" exclaimed
	 Charlie\, as his eye ran over the prospect\; but in the midst of his rapt
	ure came rushing back upon him the remembrance of the cavalier treatment h
	e had met with below-stairs\, and he said with a sigh\, as the tears spran
	g to his eyes\, \"But it is not home\, after all.\" Just at this moment he
	 heard his name called by Betsey\, and he hastily descended into the kitch
	en. At one end of the partially-cleared table a clean plate and knife and 
	fork had been placed\, and he was speedily helped to the remains of what t
	he servants had been eating.\n\n\"You mustn't be long\,\" said Betsey\, \"
	for to-day is ironing day\, and we want the table as soon as possible.\"\n
	\nThe food was plentiful and good\, but Charlie could not eat\; his heart 
	was full and heavy\,—the child felt his degradation. \"Even the servants
	 refuse to eat with me because I am coloured\,\" thought he. \"Oh! I wish 
	I was at home!\"\n\n\"Why don't you eat?\" asked Betsey.\n\n\"I don't thin
	k I want any breakfast\; I'm not hungry\,\" was the reply.\n\n\"I hope you
	 are not sulky\,\" she rejoined\; \"we don't like sulky boys here\; why do
	n't you eat?\" she repeated.\n\nThe sharp\, cold tones of her voice struck
	 a chill into the child's heart\, and his lip quivered as he stammered som
	ething farther about not being hungry\; and he hurried away into the garde
	n\, where he calmed his feelings and allayed his home-sickness by a hearty
	 burst of tears. After this was over\, he wandered through the garden and 
	fields until dinner\; then\, by reading his book and by another walk\, he 
	managed to get through the day.\n\nThe following morning\, as he was comin
	g down stairs\, he was met by Alfred\, who accosted him with\, \"Oh! you'r
	e up\, are you\; I was just going to call you.\" And looking at Charlie fr
	om head to foot\, he inquired\, \"Is that your best suit?\"\n\n\"No\, it's
	 my worst\,\" replied Charlie. \"I have two suits better than this\;\" and
	 thinking that Mrs. Bird had arrived\, he continued\, \"I'll put on my bes
	t if Mrs. Bird wants me.\"\n\n\"No\, she ain't home\,\" was the reply\; \"
	it's me that wants you\; come down here\; I've got a little job for you. T
	ake this\,\" said he\, handing him a dirty tow apron\, \"and tie it around
	 your neck\; it will keep the blacking off your clothes\, you know. Now\,\
	" continued he\, \"I want you to clean these boots\; these two pairs are M
	r. Tyndall's—them you need not be particular with\; but this pair is min
	e\, and I want 'em polished up high\,—now mind\, I tell you. I'm going t
	o wear a new pair of pants to meetin' to-morrow\, and I expect to cut a da
	sh\, so you'll do 'em up slick\, now won't you?\"\n\n\"I'll do my best\,\"
	 said Charlie\, who\, although he did not dislike work\, could not relish 
	the idea of cleaning the servants' boots. \"I'm afraid I shall find this a
	 queer place\,\" thought he. \"I shall not like living here\, I know—wai
	t for my meals until the servants have finished\, and clean their boots in
	to the bargain. This is worse than being with Mrs. Thomas.\"\n\nCharlie\, 
	however\, went at it with a will\, and was busily engaged in putting the f
	inishing touches on Alfred's boots\, when he heard his name called\, and o
	n looking up\, saw Mrs. Bird upon the piazza above. \"Why\, bless me! chil
	d\, what are you about?—whose boots are those\, and why are you cleaning
	 them?\"\n\n\"Oh!\" he replied\, his face brightening up at the sight of M
	rs. Bird\, \"I'm so glad you're come\; those are Mr. Tyndall's boots\, and
	 these\,\" he continued\, holding up the boots on which he was engaged\, \
	"are the gardener's.\"\n\n\"And who\, pray\, instructed you to clean them?
	\"\n\n\"The gardener\,\" replied Charlie.\n\n\"He did\, did he?\" said Mrs
	. Bird\, indignantly. \"Very well\; now do you take off that apron and com
	e to me immediately\; before you do\, however\, tell Alfred I want him.\"\
	n\nCharlie quickly divested himself of the tow apron\, and after having in
	formed the gardener that Mrs. Bird desired his presence in the parlour\, h
	e ran up there himself. Alfred came lumbering up stairs\, after giving his
	 boots an unusual scraping and cleansing preparatory to entering upon that
	 part of the premises which to him was generally forbidden ground.\n\n\"By
	 whose direction did you set the child at that dirty work?\" asked Mrs.\nB
	ird\, after he had entered the room.\n\n\"I hadn't anybody's direction to 
	set him to work\, but I thought you brought him here to do odd jobs. You k
	now\, ma'am\, I asked you some time ago to get a boy\, and I thought this 
	was the one.\"\n\n\"And if he had been\, you would have taken a great libe
	rty in assigning him any duties without first consulting me. But he is not
	 a servant here\, nor do I intend him to be such\; and let me inform you\,
	 that instead of his cleaning your boots\, it will be your duty henceforth
	 to clean his. Now\,\" continued she\, \"you know his position here\, let 
	me see that you remember yours. You can go.\" This was said in so perempto
	ry a manner\, as to leave no room for discussion or rejoinder\, and Alfred
	\, with a chagrined look\, went muttering down stairs.\n\n\"Things have co
	me to a pretty pass\,\" grumbled he. \"I'm to wait on niggers\, black thei
	r boots\, and drive them out\, too\, I suppose. I'd leave at once if it wa
	sn't such a good situation. Drat the old picture—what has come over her 
	I wonder—she'll be asking old Aunt Charity\, the black washerwoman to di
	ne with her next. She has either gone crazy or turned abolitionist\, I don
	't know which\; something has happened to her\, that's certain.\"\n\n\"Now
	\, Charlie\,\" said Mrs. Bird\, as the door closed upon the crest-fallen g
	ardener\, \"go to your room and dress yourself nicely. After I've eaten my
	 breakfast\, I am going to visit a friend\, and I want you to accompany me
	\; don't be long.\"\n\n\"Can't I eat mine first\, Mrs. Bird?\" he asked\, 
	in reply.\n\n\"I thought you had had yours\, long ago\,\" rejoined she.\n\
	n\"The others hadn't finished theirs when you called me\, and I don't get 
	mine until they have done\,\" said Charlie.\n\n\"Until they have done\; ho
	w happens that?\" asked Mrs. Bird.\n\n\"I think they don't like to eat wit
	h me\, because I'm coloured\,\" was\nCharlie's hesitating reply.\n\n\"That
	 is too much\,\" exclaimed Mrs. Bird\; \"if it were not so very ridiculous
	\, I should be angry. It remains for me\, then\,\" continued she\, \"to se
	t them an example. I've not eaten my breakfast yet—come\, sit down with 
	me\, and we'll have it together.\"\n\nCharlie followed Mrs. Bird into the 
	breakfast-room\, and took the seat pointed out by her. Eliza\, when she en
	tered with the tea-urn\, opened her eyes wide with astonishment at the sin
	gular spectacle she beheld. Her mistress sitting down to breakfast vis-a-v
	is to a little coloured boy! Depositing the urn upon the table\, she haste
	ned back to the kitchen to report upon the startling events that were occu
	rring in the breakfast-room.\n\n\"Well\, I never\,\" said she\; \"that bea
	ts anything I ever did see\; why\, Mrs. Bird must have turned abolitionist
	. Charlie is actually sitting at the same table with her\, eating his brea
	kfast as natural and unconcerned as if he was as white as snow! Wonders ne
	ver will cease. You see I'm right though. I said that child wasn't brought
	 here for a servant—we've done it for ourselves now—only think how mad
	 she'll be when she finds he was made to wait for his meals until we have 
	done. I'm glad I wasn't the one who refused to eat with him.\"\n\n\"I gues
	s she has been giving Alfred a blowing up\,\" said Betsy\, \"for setting h
	im at boot cleaning\; for he looked like a thunder-cloud when he came down
	 stairs\, and was muttering something about a consarned pet-nigger—he lo
	oked anything but pleased.\"\n\nWhilst the lower powers were discussing wh
	at they were pleased to regard as an evidence of some mental derangement o
	n the part of Mrs. Bird\, that lady was questioning Charlie respecting his
	 studies\, and inquired if he would like to go to school in Warmouth.\n\n\
	"After a while\, I think I should\,\" he replied\; \"but for a week I'd li
	ke to be free to run about the fields and go fishing\, and do lots of thin
	gs. This is such a pretty place\; and now that you have come I shall have 
	nice times—I know I shall.\"\n\n\"You seem to have great confidence in m
	y ability to make you happy. How do you know that I am as kind as you seem
	 to suppose?\" asked Mrs. Bird\, with a smile.\n\n\"I know you are\,\" ans
	wered Charlie\, confidently\; \"you speak so pleasantly to me. And do you 
	know\, Mrs. Bird\,\" continued he\, \"that I liked you from the first day\
	, when you praised me so kindly when I recited my lessons before you. Did 
	you ever have any little boys of your own?\"\n\nA change immediately came 
	over the countenance of Mrs. Bird\, as she replied: \"Oh\, yes\, Charlie\;
	 a sweet\, good boy about your own age:\" and the tears stood in her eyes 
	as she continued. \"He accompanied his father to England years ago—the s
	hip in which they sailed was never heard of—his name was Charlie too.\"\
	n\n\"I didn't know that\, or I should not have asked\,\" said Charlie\, wi
	th some embarrassment of manner caused by the pain he saw he had inflicted
	. \"I am very sorry\,\" he continued.\n\nMrs. Bird motioned him to finish 
	his breakfast\, and left the table without drinking the tea she had poured
	 out for herself.\n\nThere were but one or two families of coloured people
	 living in the small town of Warmouth\, and they of a very humble descript
	ion\; their faces were familiar to all the inhabitants\, and their appeara
	nce was in accordance with their humble condition. Therefore\, when Charli
	e made his debut\, in company with Mrs. Bird\, his dress and manners diffe
	red so greatly from what they were accustomed to associate with persons of
	 his complexion\, that he created quite a sensation in the streets of the 
	usually quiet and obscure little town.\n\nHe was attired with great neatne
	ss\; and not having an opportunity of playing marbles in his new suit\, it
	 still maintained its spotless appearance. The fine grey broadcloth coat a
	nd pants fitted him to a nicety\, the jaunty cap was set slightly on one s
	ide of his head giving him\, a somewhat saucy look\, and the fresh colour 
	now returning to his cheeks imparted to his face a much healthier appearan
	ce than it had worn for months.\n\nHe and his kind friend walked on togeth
	er for some time\, chatting about the various things that attracted their 
	attention on the way\, until they reached a cottage in the garden of which
	 a gentleman was busily engaged in training a rosebush upon a new trellis.
	\n\nSo completely was he occupied with his pursuit that he did not observe
	 the entrance of visitors\, and quite started when he was gently tapped up
	on the shoulder by Mrs. Bird.\n\n\"How busy we are\,\" said she\, gaily\, 
	at the same time extending her hand—\"so deeply engaged\, that we can sc
	arcely notice old friends that we have not seen for months.\"\n\n\"Indeed\
	, this is a pleasant surprise\,\" he remarked\, when he saw by whom he had
	 been interrupted. \"When did you arrive?\"\n\n\"Only this morning\; and\,
	 as usual\, I have already found something with which to bore you—you kn
	ow\, Mr. Whately\, I always have something to trouble you about.\"\n\n\"Do
	n't say trouble\, my dear Mrs. Bird\; if you will say 'give me something t
	o occupy my time usefully and agreeably\,' you will come much nearer the m
	ark. But who is this you have with you?\"\n\n\"Oh\, a little protege of mi
	ne\, poor little fellow—he met with a sad accident recently—he broke h
	is arm\; and I have brought him down here to recruit. Charlie\, walk aroun
	d and look at the garden—I have a little matter of business to discuss w
	ith Mr. Whately\, and when we shall have finished I will call you.\"\n\nMr
	. Whately led the way into his library\, and placing a seat for Mrs. Bird\
	, awaited her communication.\n\n\"You have great influence with the teache
	r of the academy\, I believe\,\" said she.\n\n\"A little\,\" replied Mr. W
	hately\, smiling.\n\n\"Not a little\,\" rejoined Mrs. Bird\, \"but a great
	 deal\; and\, my dear Mr. Whately\, I want you to exercise it in my behalf
	. I wish to enter as a scholar that little boy I brought with me this morn
	ing.\"\n\n\"Impossible!\" said Mr. Whately. \"My good friend\, the boy is 
	coloured!\"\n\n\"I am well aware of that\,\" continued Mrs. Bird\; \"if he
	 were not there would not be the least trouble about his admission\; nor a
	m I sure there will be as it is\, if you espouse his cause. One who has be
	en such a benefactor to the academy as yourself\, could\, I suppose\, acco
	mplish anything.\"\n\n\"Yes\; but that is stretching my influence unduly. 
	I would be willing to oblige you in almost anything else\, but I hesitate 
	to attempt this. Why not send him to the public school?—they have a sepa
	rate bench for black children\; he can be taught there all that is necessa
	ry for him to know.\"\n\n\"He is far in advance of any of the scholars the
	re. I attended the examination of the school to which he was attached\,\" 
	said Mrs. Bird\, \"and I was very much surprised at the acquirements of th
	e pupils\; this lad was distinguished above all the rest—he answered que
	stions that would have puzzled older heads\, with the greatest facility. I
	 am exceedingly anxious to get him admitted to the academy\, as I am confi
	dent he will do honour to the interest I take in him.\"\n\n\"And a very wa
	rm interest it must be\, my dear Mrs. Bird\, to induce you to attempt plac
	ing him in such an expensive and exclusive school. I am very much afraid y
	ou will have to give it up: many of the scholars' parents\, I am sure\, wi
	ll object strenuously to the admission of a coloured boy as a scholar.\"\n
	\n\"Only tell me that you will propose him\, and I will risk the refusal\,
	\" replied Mrs. Bird—\"it can be tried at all events\; and if you will m
	ake the effort I shall be under deep obligations to you.\"\n\n\"Well\, Mrs
	. Bird\, let us grant him admitted—what benefit can accrue to the lad fr
	om an education beyond his station? He cannot enter into any of the learne
	d professions: both whilst he is there\, and after his education is finish
	ed\, he will be like a fish out of water. You must pardon me if I say I th
	ink\, in this case\, your benevolence misdirected. The boy's parents are p
	oor\, I presume?\"\n\n\"They certainly are not rich\,\" rejoined Mrs. Bird
	\; \"and it is for that reason I wish to do all that I can for him. If I c
	an keep him with me\, and give him a good education\, it may be greatly fo
	r his advantage\; there may be a great change in public sentiment before h
	e is a man—we cannot say what opening there may be for him in the future
	.\"\n\n\"Not unless it changes very much. I never knew prejudice more ramp
	ant than it is at this hour. To get the boy admitted as a right is totally
	 out of the question: if he is received at all\, it will be as a special f
	avour\, and a favour which—I am sure it will require all my influence to
	 obtain. I will set about it immediately\, and\, rely upon it\, I will do 
	my best for your protege.\"\n\nSatisfied with the promise\, which was as m
	uch as Mrs. Bird had dared to hope for\, she called Charlie\, then shook h
	ands with Mr. Whately and departed.\n\nCHAPTER XV.\nMrs. Stevens gains a T
	riumph.\n\nThe Garies had now become thoroughly settled in Philadelphia\, 
	and\, amongst the people of colour\, had obtained a very extensive and agr
	eeable acquaintance.\n\nAt the South Mr. Garie had never borne the reputat
	ion of an active person. Having an ample fortune and a thoroughly Southern
	 distaste for labour\, he found it by no means inconvenient or unpleasant 
	to have so much time at his disposal. His newspaper in the morning\, a goo
	d book\, a stroll upon the fashionable promenade\, and a ride at dusk\, en
	abled him to dispose of his time without being oppressed with ennui.\n\nIt
	 was far happier for him that such was his disposition\, as his domestic r
	elations would have been the means of subjecting him to many unpleasant ci
	rcumstances\, from which his comparative retirement in a great measure scr
	eened him.\n\nOnce or twice since his settlement in the North his feelings
	 had been ruffled\, by the sneering remarks of some of his former friends 
	upon the singularity of his domestic position\; but his irritation had all
	 fled before the smiles of content and happiness that beamed from the face
	s of his wife and children.\n\nMrs. Garie had nothing left to wish for\; s
	he was surrounded by every physical comfort and in the enjoyment of freque
	nt intercourse with intelligent and refined people\, and had been greatly 
	attracted toward Esther Ellis with whom she had become very intimate.\n\nO
	ne morning in November\, these two were in the elegant little bed-room of 
	Mrs. Garie\, where a fire had been kindled\, as the weather was growing ve
	ry chilly and disagreeable. \"It begins to look quite like autumn\,\" said
	 Mrs. Garie\, rising and looking out of the window. \"The chrysanthemums a
	re drooping and withered\, and the dry leaves are whirling and skimming th
	rough the air. I wonder\,\" she continued\, \"if the children were well wr
	apped up this morning?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\; I met them at the corner\, on the
	ir way to school\, looking as warm and rosy as possible. What beautiful ch
	ildren they are! Little Em has completely won my heart\; it really seems a
	 pity for her to be put on the shelf\, as she must be soon.\"\n\n\"How—w
	hat do you mean?\" asked Mrs. Garie.\n\n\"Oh\, this will explain\,\" archl
	y rejoined Esther\, as she held up to view one of the tiny lace trimmed fr
	ocks that she was making in anticipation of the event that has been previo
	usly hinted.\n\nMrs. Garie laughed\, and turned to look out of the window 
	again.\n\n\"Do you know I found little Lizzy Stevens\, your neighbour's da
	ughter\, shivering upon the steps in a neighbouring street\, fairly blue w
	ith cold? She was waiting there for Clarence and Em. I endeavoured to pers
	uade her to go on without them\, but she would not. From what I could unde
	rstand\, she waits for them there every day.\"\n\n\"Her mother cannot be a
	ware of it\, then\; for she has forbidden her children to associate with m
	ine\,\" rejoined Mrs. Garie. \"I wonder she permits her little girl to go 
	to the same school. I don't think she knows it\, or it is very likely she 
	would take her away.\"\n\n\"Has she ever spoken to you since the night of 
	her visit?\" asked Esther.\n\n\"Never! I have seen her a great many times 
	since\; she never speaks\, nor do I. There she goes now. That\,\" continue
	d Mrs. Garie\, with a smile\, \"is another illustration of the truthfulnes
	s of the old adage\, 'Talk of—well\, I won't say who\,—'and he is sure
	 to appear.'\" And\, thus speaking\, she turned from the window\, and was 
	soon deeply occupied in the important work of preparing for the expected l
	ittle stranger. Mrs. Garie was mistaken in her supposition that Mrs. Steve
	ns was unaware that Clarence and little Em attended the same school to whi
	ch her own little girl had been sent\; for the evening before the conversa
	tion we have just narrated\, she had been discussing the matter with her h
	usband.\n\n\"Here\,\" said she to him\, \"is Miss Jordan's bill for the la
	st quarter. I shall never pay her another\; I am going to remove Lizzy fro
	m that school.\"\n\n\"Remove her! what for? I thought I heard you say\, Ju
	le\, that the child got on excellently well there\,—that she improved ve
	ry fast?\"\n\n\"So she does\, as far as learning is concerned\; but she is
	 sitting right next to one of those Garie children\, and that is an arrang
	ement I don't at all fancy. I don't relish the idea of my child attending 
	the same school that niggers do\; so I've come to the determination to tak
	e her away.\"\n\n\"I should do no such thing\,\" coolly remarked Mr. Steve
	ns. \"I should compel the teacher to dismiss the Garies\, or I should brea
	k up her school. Those children have no right to be there whatever. I don'
	t care a straw how light their complexions are\, they are niggers neverthe
	less\, and ought to go to a nigger school\; they are no better than any ot
	her coloured children. I'll tell you what you can do\, Jule\,\" continued 
	he: \"call on Mrs. Kinney\, the Roths\, and one or two others\, and induce
	 them to say that if Miss Jordan won't dismiss the Garies that they will w
	ithdraw their children\; and you know if they do\, it will break up the sc
	hool entirely. If it was any other person's children but his\, I would win
	k at it\; but I want to give him a fall for his confounded haughtiness. Ju
	st try that plan\, Jule\, and you will be sure to succeed.\"\n\n\"I am not
	 so certain about it\, Stevens. Miss Jordan\, I learn\, is very fond of th
	eir little Em. I must say I cannot wonder at it. She is the most loveable 
	little creature I ever saw. I will say that\, if her mother is a nigger.\"
	\n\n\"Yes\, Jule\, all that may be\; but I know the world well enough to j
	udge that\, when she becomes fully assured that it will conflict with her 
	interests to keep them\, she will give them up. She is too poor to be phil
	anthropic\, and\, I believe\, has sufficient good sense to know it.\"\n\n\
	"Well\, I'll try your plan\,\" said Mrs. Stevens\; \"I will put matters in
	 train to-morrow morning.\"\n\nEarly the next morning\, Mrs. Stevens might
	 have been seen directing her steps to the house of Mrs. Kinney\, with who
	m she was very intimate. She reached it just as that lady was departing to
	 preside at a meeting of a female missionary society for evangelizing the 
	Patagonians.\n\n\"I suppose you have come to accompany me to the meeting\,
	\" said she to Mrs.\nStevens\, as soon as they had exchanged the usual cou
	rtesies.\n\n\"Oh\, dear\, no\; I wish I was\,\" she replied. \"I've got a 
	troublesome little matter on my hands\; and last night my husband suggeste
	d my coming to ask your advice respecting it. George has such a high opini
	on of your judgment\, that he would insist on my troubling you.\"\n\nMrs. 
	Kinney smiled\, and looked gratified at this tribute to her importance.\n\
	n\"And moreover\,\" continued Mrs. Stevens\, \"it's a matter in which your
	 interest\, as well as our own\, is concerned.\"\n\nMrs. Kinney now began 
	to look quite interested\, and\, untying the strings of her bonnet\, excla
	imed\, \"Dear me\, what can it be?\"\n\n\"Knowing\,\" said Mrs. Stevens\, 
	\"that you entertain just the same sentiments that we do relative to assoc
	iating with coloured people\, I thought I would call and ask if you were a
	ware that Miss Jordan receives coloured as well as white children in her s
	chool.\"\n\n\"Why\, no! My dear Mrs. Stevens\, you astound me. I hadn't th
	e remotest idea of such a thing. It is very strange my children never ment
	ioned it.\"\n\n\"Oh\, children are so taken up with their play\, they forg
	et such things\,\" rejoined Mrs. Stevens. \"Now\,\" continued she\, \"husb
	and said he was quite confident you would not permit your children to cont
	inue their attendance after this knowledge came to your ears. We both thou
	ght it would be a pity to break up the poor girl's school by withdrawing o
	ur children without first ascertaining if she would expel the little darki
	es. I knew\, if I could persuade you to let me use your name as well as ou
	rs\, and say that you will not permit your children to continue at her sch
	ool unless she consents to our wishes\, she\, knowing the influence you po
	ssess\, would\, I am sure\, accede to our demands immediately.\"\n\n\"Oh\,
	 you are perfectly at liberty to use my name\, Mrs. Stevens\, and say all 
	that you think necessary to effect your object. But do excuse me for hurry
	ing off\,\" she continued\, looking at her watch: \"I was to have been at 
	the meeting at ten o'clock\, and it is now half-past. I hope you won't fai
	l to call\, and let me know how you succeed\;\" and\, with her heart overf
	lowing with tender care for the poor Patagonian\, Mrs. Kinney hastily depa
	rted.\n\n\"That's settled\,\" soliloquized Mrs. Stevens\, with an air of i
	ntense satisfaction\, as she descended the steps—\"her four children wou
	ld make a serious gap in the little school\; and now\, then\,\" continued 
	she\, \"for the Roths.\"\n\nMrs. Stevens found not the slightest difficult
	y in persuading Mrs. Roth to allow her name to be used\, in connection wit
	h Mrs. Kinney's\, in the threat to withdraw their children if the little G
	aries were not immediately expelled. Mrs. Roth swore by Mrs. Kinney\, and 
	the mere mention of that lady's name was sufficient to enlist her aid.\n\n
	Thus armed\, Mrs. Stevens lost no time in paying a visit to Miss Jordan's 
	school. As she entered\, the busy hum of childish voices was somewhat stil
	led\; and Lizzy Stevens touched little Em\, who sat next her\, and whisper
	ed\, \"There is my mother.\"\n\nMrs. Stevens was welcomed very cordially b
	y Miss Jordan\, who offered her the seat of honour beside her.\n\n\"Your s
	chool seems quite flourishing\,\" she remarked\, after looking around the 
	room\, \"and I really regret being obliged to make a gap in your interesti
	ng circle.\"\n\n\"I hope you don't intend to deprive me of your little gir
	l\,\" inquired Miss Jordan\; \"I should regret to part with her—not only
	 because I am very fond of her\, but in consideration of her own interes
	t—she is coming on so rapidly.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I haven't the slightest fault
	 to find with her progress. That\,\" said she\, \"is not the reason. I hav
	e another\, of much more weight. Of course\, every one is at liberty to do
	 as they choose\; and we have no right to dictate to you what description 
	of scholars you should receive\; but\, if they are not such\, as we think 
	proper companions for our children\, you can't complain if we withdraw the
	m.\"\n\n\"I really do not understand you\, Mrs. Stevens\,\" said the teach
	er\, with an astonished look: \"I have none here but the children of the m
	ost respectable persons—they are all as well behaved as school children 
	generally are.\"\n\n\"I did not allude to behaviour\; that\, for all that 
	I know to the contrary\, is irreproachable\; it is not character that is i
	n question\, but colour. I don't like my daughter to associate with colour
	ed children.\"\n\n\"Coloured children!\" repeated the now thoroughly bewil
	dered teacher—\"coloured children! My dear madam\,\" continued she\, smi
	ling\, \"some one has been hoaxing you—I have no coloured pupils—I cou
	ld not be induced to receive one on any account.\"\n\n\"I am very glad to 
	hear you say so\,\" rejoined Mrs. Stevens\, \"for that convinces me that m
	y fears were groundless. I was under the impression you had imbibed some o
	f those pestilent abolition sentiments coming into vogue. I see you are no
	t aware of it\, but you certainly have two coloured scholars\; and there\,
	\" said she\, pointing to Clarence\, \"is one of them.\"\n\nClarence\, who
	\, with his head bent over his book\, was sitting so near as to overhear a
	 part of this conversation\, now looked up\, and found the cold\, malignan
	t\, grey eyes of Mrs. Stevens fastened on him. He looked at her for a mome
	nt—then apparently resumed his studies.\n\nThe poor boy had\, when she e
	ntered the room\, an instinctive knowledge that her visit boded no good to
	 them. He was beginning to learn the anomalous situation he was to fill in
	 society. He had detested Mrs. Stevens ever since the night she had ejecte
	d him so rudely from her house\, and since then had learned to some extent
	 what was meant by the term nigger woman.\n\n\"You must certainly be misin
	formed\,\" responded Miss Jordan. \"I know their father—he has frequentl
	y been here. He is a Southerner\, a thorough gentleman in his manners\; an
	d\, if ever a man was white\, I am sure he is.\"\n\n\"Have you seen their 
	mother?\" asked Mrs. Stevens\, significantly.\n\n\"No\, I never have\,\" r
	eplied Miss Jordan\; \"she is in poor health\; but she must unquestionably
	 be a white woman—a glance at the children ought to convince you of that
	.\"\n\n\"It might\, if I had not seen her\, and did not know her to be a c
	oloured woman. You see\, my dear Miss Jordan\,\" continued she\, in her bl
	andest tone\, \"I am their next-door neighbour and have seen their mother 
	twenty times and more\; she is a coloured woman beyond all doubt.\"\n\n\"I
	 never could have dreamed of such a thing!\" exclaimed Miss Jordan\, as an
	 anxious look overspread her face\; then\, after a pause\, she continued: 
	\"I do not see what I am to do—it is really too unfortunate—I don't kn
	ow how to act. It seems unjust and unchristian to eject two such children 
	from my school\, because their mother has the misfortune to have a few dro
	ps of African blood in her veins. I cannot make up my mind to do it. Why\,
	 you yourself must admit that they are as white as any children in the roo
	m.\"\n\n\"I am willing to acknowledge they are\; but they have nigger bloo
	d in them\, notwithstanding\; and they are\, therefore\, as much niggers a
	s the blackest\, and have no more right to associate with white children t
	han if they were black as ink. I have no more liking for white niggers tha
	n for black ones.\"\n\nThe teacher was perplexed\, and\, turning to Mrs. S
	tevens\, said\, imploringly: \"This matter seems only known to you\; let m
	e appeal to your generosity—say nothing more about it. I will try to kee
	p your daughter away from them\, if you wish—but pray do not urge me to 
	the performance of an act that I am conscious would be unjust.\"\n\nMrs. S
	tevens's face assumed a severe and disagreeable expression. \"I hoped you 
	would look at this matter in a reasonable light\, and not compel those who
	 would be your friends to appear in the light of enemies. If this matter w
	as known to me alone\, I should remove my daughter and say nothing more ab
	out it\; but\, unfortunately for you\, I find that\, by some means or othe
	r\, both Mrs. Kinney and Mrs. Roth have become informed of the circumstanc
	e\, and are determined to take their children away. I thought I would act 
	a friend's part by you\, and try to prevail on you to dismiss these two co
	loured children at once. I so far relied upon your right judgment as to as
	sure them that you would not hesitate for a moment to comply with their wi
	shes\; and I candidly tell you\, that it was only by my so doing that they
	 were prevented from keeping their children at home to-day.\"\n\nMiss Jord
	an looked aghast at this startling intelligence\; if Mrs. Roth and Mrs. Ki
	nney withdrew their patronage and influence\, her little school (the sole 
	support of her mother and herself) would be well-nigh broken up.\n\nShe bu
	ried her face in her hands\, and sat in silence for a few seconds\; then l
	ooking at Mrs. Stevens\, with tearful eyes\, exclaimed\, \"God forgive me 
	if it must be so\; nothing but the utter ruin that stares me in the face i
	f I refuse induces me to accede to your request.\"\n\n\"I am sorry that yo
	u distress yourself so much about it. You know you are your own mistress\,
	 and can do as you choose\,\" said Mrs. Stevens\; \"but if you will be adv
	ised by me\, you will send them away at once.\"\n\n\"After school I will\,
	\" hesitatingly replied Miss Jordan.\n\n\"I hate to appear so pressing\,\"
	 resumed Mrs. Stevens\; \"but I feel it my duty to suggest that you had be
	tter do it at once\, and before the rest of the scholars. I did not wish\,
	 to inform you to what extent this thing had gone\; but it really has been
	 talked of in many quarters\, and it is generally supposed that you are co
	gnisant of the fact that the Garies are coloured\; therefore you see the n
	ecessity of doing something at once to vindicate yourself from the reproac
	h of abolitionism.\"\n\nAt the pronunciation of this then terrible word in
	 such connection with herself\, Miss Jordan turned quite pale\, and for a 
	moment struggled to acquire sufficient control of her feelings to enable h
	er to do as Mrs. Stevens suggested\; at last\, bursting into tears\, she s
	aid\, \"Oh\, I cannot—will not—do it. I'll dismiss them\, but not in t
	hat unfeeling manner\; that I cannot do.\"\n\nThe children were now entire
	ly neglecting their lessons\, and seemed much affected by Miss Jordan's te
	ars\, of which they could not understand the cause. She observing this\, r
	ang the bell\, the usual signal for intermission.\n\nMrs. Stevens\, satisf
	ied with the triumph she had effected\, took leave of Miss Jordan\, after 
	commending her for the sensible conclusion at which she had arrived\, and 
	promising to procure her two more pupils in the room of those she was abou
	t to dismiss.\n\nMiss Jordan was a long time writing the note that she int
	ended sending to Mr. Garie\; and one of the elder girls returned to the sc
	hool-room\, wondering at the unusually long time that had been given for r
	ecreation.\n\n\"Tell Clarence and his sister to come here\,\" said she to 
	the girl who had just entered\; and whilst they were on their way upstairs
	\, she folded the note\, and was directing it when Clarence entered.\n\n\"
	Clarence\,\" said she\, in a soft voice\, \"put on your hat\; I have a not
	e of some importance for you to take to your father—your father rememb
	er—don't give it to any one else.\" Taking out her watch\, she continued
	\, \"It is now so late that you would scarcely get back before the time fo
	r dismissal\, so you had better take little Emily home with you.\"\n\n\"I 
	hope\, ma'am\, I haven't done anything wrong?\" asked Clarence.\n\n\"Oh\, 
	no!\" quickly replied she\; \"you're a dear\, good boy\, and have never gi
	ven me a moment's pain since you came to the school.\" And she hurried out
	 into the hall to avoid farther questioning.\n\nShe could not restrain the
	 tears as she dressed little Em\, whose eyes were large with astonishment 
	at being sent home from school at so early an hour.\n\n\"Teacher\, is scho
	ol out?\" asked she.\n\n\"No\, dear\, not quite\; I wanted to send a note 
	to your pa\, and so I have let Clary go home sooner than usual\,\" replied
	 Miss Jordan\, kissing her repeatedly\, whilst the tears were trickling do
	wn her cheek.\n\n\"Don't cry\, teacher\, I love you\,\" said the little bl
	ue-eyed angel\, whose lip began to quiver in sympathy\; \"don't cry\, I'll
	 come back again to-morrow.\"\n\nThis was too much for the poor teacher\, 
	who clasped the child in her arms\, and gave way to a burst of uncontrolla
	ble sorrow. At last\, conquering herself with an effort\, she led the chil
	dren down stairs\, kissed them both again\, and then opening the door she 
	turned them forth into the street—turned away from her school these two 
	little children\, such as God received into his arms and blessed\, because
	 they were the children of a \"nigger woman.\"\n\nCHAPTER XVI.\nMr. Steven
	s makes a Discovery.\n\n\"Well\, Jule\, old Aunt Tabitha is gone at last\,
	 and I am not at all sorry for it\, I assure you\; she's been a complete t
	ax upon me for the last eight years. I suppose you won't lament much\, nor
	 yet go into mourning for her\,\" continued Mr. Stevens\, looking at her j
	ocularly.\n\n\"I'm not sorry\, that I admit\,\" rejoined Mrs. Stevens\; \"
	the poor old soul is better off\, no doubt\; but then there's no necessity
	 to speak of the matter in such an off-hand manner.\"\n\n\"Now\, Jule\, I 
	beg you won't attempt to put on the sanctified\; that's too much from you\
	, who have been wishing her dead almost every day for the last eight years
	. Why\, don't you remember you wished her gone when she had a little money
	 to leave\; and when she lost that\, you wished her off our hands because 
	she had none. Don't pretend to be in the least depressed\; that won't do w
	ith me.\"\n\n\"Well\, never mind that\,\" said Mrs. Stevens\, a little con
	fused\; \"what has become of her things—her clothing\, and furniture?\"\
	n\n\"I've ordered the furniture to be sold\; and all there is of it will n
	ot realize sufficient to pay her funeral expenses. Brixton wrote me that s
	he has left a bundle of letters directed to me\, and I desired him to send
	 them on.\"\n\n\"I wonder what they can be\,\" said Mrs. Stevens.\n\n\"Som
	e trash\, I suppose\; an early love correspondence\, of but little value t
	o any one but herself. I do not expect that they will prove of any consequ
	ence whatever.\"\n\n\"Don't you think one or the other of us should go to 
	the funeral?\" asked Mrs. Stevens. \"Nonsense. No! I have no money to expe
	nd in that way—it is as much as I can do to provide comfortably for the 
	living\, without spending money to follow the dead\,\" replied he\; \"and 
	besides\, I have a case coming on in the Criminal Court next week that wil
	l absorb all my attention.\"\n\n\"What kind of a case is it?\" she inquire
	d.\n\n\"A murder case. Some Irishmen were engaged in a row\, when one of t
	he party received a knock on his head that proved too much for him\, and d
	ied in consequence. My client was one of the contending parties\; and has 
	been suspected\, from some imprudent expressions of his\, to have been the
	 man who struck the fatal blow. His preliminary examination comes off to-m
	orrow or next day\, and I must be present as a matter of course.\"\n\nAt a
	n early hour of the morning succeeding this conversation\, Mr. Stevens mig
	ht have been seen in his dingy office\, seated at a rickety desk which was
	 covered with various little bundles\, carefully tied with red tape. The r
	oom was gloomy and cheerless\, and had a mouldy disagreeable atmosphere. A
	 fire burned in the coal stove\, which\, however\, seemed only to warm\, b
	ut did not dry the apartment\; and the windows were covered with a thin co
	ating of vapour.\n\nMr. Stevens was busily engaged in writing\, when heari
	ng footsteps behind him\, he turned and saw Mr. Egan\, a friend of his cli
	ent\, entering the room.\n\n\"Good morning\, Mr. Egan\,\" said he\, extend
	ing his hand\; \"how is our friend\nMcCloskey this morning?\"\n\n\"Oh\, it
	's far down in the mouth he is\, be jabers—the life a'most scared out of
	 him!\"\n\n\"Tell him to keep up a good heart and not to be frightened at 
	trifles\,\" laughingly remarked Mr. Stevens.\n\n\"Can't your honour come a
	nd see him?\" asked Egan.\n\n\"I can't do that\; but I'll give you a note 
	to Constable Berry\, and he will bring McCloskey in here as he takes him t
	o court\;\" and Mr. Stevens immediately wrote the note\, which Egan receiv
	ed and departed.\n\nAfter the lapse of a few hours\, McCloskey was brought
	 by the accommodating constable to the office of Mr. Stevens. \"He'll be s
	afe with you\, I suppose\, Stevens\;\" said the constable\, \"but then the
	re is no harm in seeing for one's self that all's secure\;\" and thus spea
	king\, he raised the window and looked into the yard below. The height was
	 too great for his prisoner to escape in that direction\; then satisfying 
	himself that the other door only opened into a closet\, he retired\, locki
	ng Mr. Stevens and his client in the room.\n\nMr. Stevens arose as soon as
	 the door closed behind the constable\, and stuffed a piece of damp sponge
	 into the keyhole\; he then returned and took a seat by his client.\n\n\"N
	ow\, McCloskey\,\" said he\, in a low tone\, as he drew his chair closely 
	in front of the prisoner\, and fixed his keen grey eyes on him—\"I've se
	en Whitticar. And I tell you what it is—you're in a very tight place. He
	's prepared to swear that he saw you with a slung shot in your hand—that
	 he saw you drop it after the man fell\; he picked it up\, and whilst the 
	man was lying dead at his tavern\, awaiting the coroner's inquest\, he exa
	mined the wound\, and saw in the skull two little dents or holes\, which w
	ere undoubtedly made by the little prongs that are on the leaden ball of t
	he weapon\, as they correspond in depth and distance apart\; and\, moreove
	r\, the ball is attached to a twisted brace which proves to be the fellow 
	to the one found upon a pair of your trousers. What can you say to all thi
	s?\"\n\nMcCloskey here gave a smothered groan\, and his usually red face g
	rew deadly pale in contemplation of his danger.\n\n\"Now\,\" said Mr. Stev
	ens\, after waiting long enough for his revelation to have its due effect 
	upon him\, \"there is but one thing to be done. We must buy Whitticar off.
	 Have you got any money? I don't mean fifty or a hundred dollars—that wo
	uld be of no more use than as many pennies. We must have something of a lu
	mp—three or four hundred at the very least.\"\n\nThe prisoner drew his b
	reath very hard at this\, and remained silent.\n\n\"Come\, speak out\,\" c
	ontinued Mr. Stevens\, \"circumstances won't admit of our delaying—this 
	man's friends will raise Heaven and earth to secure your conviction\; so y
	ou see\, my good fellow\, it's your money or your life. You can decide bet
	ween the two—you know which is of the most importance to you.\"\n\n\"God
	 save us\, squire! how am I to raise that much money? I haven't more nor a
	 hunther dollars in the world.\"\n\n\"You've got a house\, and a good hors
	e and dray\,\" replied Mr. Stevens\, who was well posted in the man's pecu
	niary resources. \"If you expect me to get you out of this scrape\, you mu
	st sell or mortgage your house\, and dispose of your horse and dray. Someh
	ow or other four hundred dollars must be raised\, or you will be dangling 
	at a rope's end in less than six months.\"\n\n\"I suppose it will have to 
	go then\,\" said McCloskey\, reluctantly.\n\n\"Then give me authority\,\" 
	continued Mr. Stevens\, \"to arrange for the disposal of the property\, an
	d I will have your affairs all set straight in less than no time.\"\n\nThe
	 constable here cut short any further colloquy by rapping impatiently on t
	he door\, then opening it\, and exclaiming\, \"Come\, now it is ten o'cloc
	k—time that you were in court\;\" and the two started out\, followed by 
	Mr. Stevens.\n\nAfter having\, by some of those mysterious plans with whic
	h lawyers are familiar\, been enabled to put off the examination for a few
	 days\, Mr. Stephens returned to his office\, and found lying upon his tab
	le the packet of letters he was expecting from New York.\n\nUpon breaking 
	the seal\, and tearing off the outer covering\, he discovered a number of 
	letters\, time-worn and yellow with age\; they were tied tightly together 
	with a piece of cord\; cutting this\, they fell scattered over the desk.\n
	\nTaking one of them up\, he examined it attentively\, turning it from sid
	e to side to endeavour to decipher the half-effaced post-mark. \"What a ni
	nny I am\, to waste time in looking at the cover of this\, when the conten
	ts will\, no doubt\, explain the whole matter?\" Thus soliloquising he ope
	ned the letter\, and was soon deeply absorbed in its contents. He perused 
	and re-perused it\; then opened\, one after another\, the remainder that l
	ay scattered before him. Their contents seemed to agitate him exceedingly\
	; as he walked up and down the room with hasty strides\, muttering angrily
	 to himself\, and occasionally returning to the desk to re-peruse the lett
	ers which had so strangely excited him.\n\nWhilst thus engaged\, the door 
	was opened by no less a personage than Mr.\nMorton\, who walked in and sea
	ted himself in a familiar manner.\n\n\"Oh\, how are you\, Morton. You ente
	red with such a ghostly tread\, that I scarcely heard you\,\" said Mr. Ste
	vens\, with a start\; \"what has procured me the honour of a visit from yo
	u this morning?\"\n\n\"I was strolling by\, and thought I would just step 
	in and inquire how that matter respecting the Tenth-street property has su
	cceeded.\"\n\n\"Not at all—the old fellow is as obstinate as a mule\; he
	 won't sell except on his own terms\, which are entirely out of all reason
	. I am afraid you will be compelled to abandon your building speculation i
	n that quarter until his demise—he is old and feeble\, and can't last ma
	ny years\; in the event of his death you may be able to effect some more f
	avourable arrangement with his heirs.\"\n\n\"And perhaps have ten or fifte
	en years to wait—no\, that won't do. I'd better sell out myself. What wo
	uld you\, advise me to do\, Stevens?\"\n\nMr. Stevens was silent for a few
	 moments\; then having opened the door and looked into the entry\, he clos
	ed it carefully\, placed the piece of sponge in the key-hole\, and returne
	d to his seat at the desk\, saying:—\n\n\"We've transacted enough busine
	ss together to know one another pretty well. So I've no hesitation in conf
	iding to you a little scheme I've conceived for getting into our hands a l
	arge proportion of property in one of the lower districts\, at a very low 
	figure\; and 'tis probable\, that the same plan\, if it answers\, will ass
	ist you materially in carrying out your designs. It will require the aid o
	f two or three moneyed men like yourself\; and\, if successful\, will with
	out doubt be highly remunerative.\"\n\n\"If successful\,\" rejoined Mr. Mo
	rton\; \"yes\, there is the rub. How are you to guarantee success?\"\n\n\"
	Hear my plan\, and then you can decide. In the first place\, you know as w
	ell as I that a very strong feeling exists in the community against the Ab
	olitionists\, and very properly too\; this feeling requires to be guided i
	nto some proper current\, and I think we can give it that necessary guidan
	ce\, and at the same time render it subservient to our own purposes. You a
	re probably aware that a large amount of property in the lower part of the
	 city is owned by niggers\; and if we can create a mob and direct it again
	st them\, they will be glad to leave that quarter\, and remove further up 
	into the city for security and protection. Once get the mob thoroughly aro
	used\, and have the leaders under our control\, and we may direct its ener
	gies against any parties we desire\; and we can render the district so uns
	afe\, that property will be greatly lessened in value—the houses will re
	nt poorly\, and many proprietors will be happy to sell at very reduced pri
	ces. If you can furnish me the means to start with\, I have men enough at 
	my command to effect the rest. We will so control the elections in the dis
	trict\, through these men\, as to place in office only such persons as wil
	l wink at the disturbances. When\, through their agency\, we have brought 
	property down sufficiently low\, we will purchase all that we can\, re-est
	ablish order and quiet\, and sell again at an immense advantage.\"\n\n\"Yo
	ur scheme is a good one\, I must confess\, and I am ready to join you at a
	ny time. I will communicate with Carson\, who\, I think\, will be interest
	ed\, as he desired to invest with me in those Tenth-street improvements. I
	 will call in to-morrow\, and endeavour to persuade him to accompany me\, 
	and then we can discuss the matter more fully.\"\n\n\"Well\, do\; but one 
	word before you go. You appear to know everybody—who is anybody—south 
	of Mason and Dixon's line\; can you give me any information respecting a f
	amily by the name of Garie\, who live or formerly did live in the vicinity
	 of Savannah?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes—I know them\, root and branch\; although t
	here is but little of the latter left\; they are one of the oldest familie
	s in Georgia—those of whom I have heard the most are of the last two gen
	erations. There now remain of the family but two persons—old John or Jac
	k Garie as he is called\, a bachelor—and who I have recently learned is 
	at the point of death\; and a crack-brained nephew of his\, living in this
	 city—said to be married to a nigger woman—actually married to her. Dr
	. Blackly informed me last week\, that he sent for him to perform the cere
	mony\, which he very properly refused to do. I have no doubt\, however\, t
	hat he has been successful in procuring the services of some one else. I a
	m sorry to say\, there are some clergymen in our city who would willingly 
	assist in such a disgraceful proceeding. What ever could have induced a ma
	n with his prospects to throw himself away in that manner\, I am at loss t
	o determine—he has an independent fortune of about one hundred thousand 
	dollars\, besides expectations from his uncle\, who is worth a considerabl
	e sum of money. I suppose these little darkies of his will inherit it\,\" 
	concluded Mr. Morton.\n\n\"Are there no other heirs?\" asked Mr. Stevens\,
	 in a tone of deep interest.\n\n\"There may be. He had an aunt\, who marri
	ed an exceedingly low fellow from the North\, who treated her shamefully. 
	The mercenary scoundrel no doubt expected to have acquired a fortune with 
	her\, as it was generally understood that she was sole heiress of her moth
	er's property—but it turned out to be an entire mistake. The circumstanc
	e made considerable stir at the time. I remember having heard my elders di
	scuss it some years after its occurrence. But why do you take such an inte
	rest in it? You charged me with coming upon you like a ghost. I could retu
	rn the compliment. Why\, man\, you look like a sheet. What ails you?\" \"M
	e!—I—oh\, nothing—nothing! I'm perfectly well—that is to say\, I w
	as up rather late last night\, and am rather fatigued to day—nothing mor
	e.\"\n\n\"You looked so strange\, that I could not help being frightened
	—and you seemed so interested. You must have some personal motive for in
	quiring.\"\n\n\"No more than a lawyer often has in the business of his cli
	ents. I have been commissioned to obtain some information respecting these
	 people—a mere matter of business\, nothing more\, believe me. Call in a
	gain soon\, and endeavour to bring Carson\; but pray be discreet—be very
	 careful to whom you mention the matter.\"\n\n\"Never fear\,\" said Mr. Mo
	rton\, as he closed the door behind him\, and sauntered lazily out of the 
	house.\n\nMr. Morton speculated in stocks and town-lots in the same spirit
	 that he had formerly betted at the racecourse and cockpit in his dear Pal
	metto State. It was a pleasant sort of excitement to him\, and without exc
	itement of some kind\, he would have found it impossible to exist. To have
	 frequented gaming hells and race courses in the North would have greatly 
	impaired his social position\; and as he set a high value upon that he was
	 compelled to forego his favourite pursuits\, and associate himself with a
	 set of men who conducted a system of gambling operations upon 'Change\, o
	f a less questionable but equally exciting character.\n\nMr. Stevens sat m
	using at his desk for some time after the departure of his visitor\; then\
	, taking up one of the letters that had so strongly excited him\, he read 
	and re-read it\; then crushing it in his hand\, arose\, stamped his feet\,
	 and exclaimed\, \"I'll have it! if I—\" here he stopped short\, and\, l
	ooking round\, caught a view of his face in the glass\; he sank back into 
	the chair behind him\, horrified at the lividness of his countenance.\n\n\
	"Good God!\" he soliloquized\, \"I look like a murderer already\,\" and he
	 covered his face with his hands\, and turned away from the glass. \"But I
	 am wrong to be excited thus\; men who accomplish great things approach th
	em coolly\, so must I. I must plot\, watch\, and wait\;\" and thus speakin
	g\, he put on his hat and left the office.\n\nAs Mr. Stevens approached hi
	s house\, a handsome carriage drove up to the door of his neighbour\, and 
	Mr. Garie and his wife\, who had been enjoying a drive along the bank of t
	he river\, alighted and entered their residence. The rustle of her rich si
	lk dress grated harshly on his ear\, and the soft perfume that wafted towa
	rd him as she glided by\, was the very reverse of pleasant to him.\n\nMr. 
	Garie bowed stiffly to him as they stood on the steps of their respective 
	residences\, which were only divided by the low iron fence\; but\, beyond 
	the slight inclination of the head\, took no further notice of him.\n\n\"T
	he cursed haughty brute\,\" muttered Mr. Stevens\, as he jerked the bell w
	ith violence\; \"how I hate him! I hated him before I knew—but now I
	——\;\" as he spoke\, the door was opened by a little servant that Mrs.
	 Stevens had recently obtained from a charity institution.\n\n\"You've kep
	t me standing a pretty time\,\" exclaimed he savagely\, as he seized her e
	ar and gave it a spiteful twist\; \"can't you manage to open the door quic
	ker?\"\n\n\"I was up in the garret\, and didn't hear the bell\,\" she repl
	ied\, timidly.\n\n\"Then I'll improve your hearing\,\" he continued malign
	antly\, as he pulled her by the ear\; \"take that\, now\, and see if you'l
	l keep me standing at the door an hour again.\"\n\nStriding forward into t
	he back parlour\, he found his wife holding a small rattan elevated over l
	ittle Lizzy in a threatening attitude.\n\n\"Will you never mind me? I've t
	old you again and again not to go\, and still you persist in disobeying me
	. I'll cut you to pieces if you don't mind. Will you ever go again?\" she 
	almost screamed in the ears of the terrified child.\n\n\"Oh\, no\, mother\
	, never\; please don't whip me\, I'll mind you\;\" and as she spoke\, she 
	shrank as far as possible into the corner of the room. \"What's all this
	—what's the matter\, Jule? What on earth are you going to whip Liz for?\
	"\n\n\"Because she deserves it\,\" was the sharp reply\; \"she don't mind 
	a word I say. I've forbid her again and again to go next door to visit tho
	se little niggers\, and she will do it in spite of me. She slipped off thi
	s afternoon\, and has been in their house over an hour\; and it was only t
	his morning I detected her kissing their Clarence through the fence.\"\n\n
	\"Faugh\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, with a look of disgust\; \"you kissed a nig
	ger! I'm ashamed of you\, you nasty little thing\; your mother ought to ha
	ve taken a scrubbing-brush and cleaned your mouth\, never do such a thing 
	again\; come here to me.\"\n\nAs he spoke\, he extended his hand and grasp
	ed the delicately rounded arm of his little girl.\n\n\"What induces you to
	 go amongst those people\; hasn't your mother again and again forbidden yo
	u to do so. Why do you go\, I say?\" he continued\, shaking her roughly by
	 the arm\, and frowning savagely. \"Why don't you answer?—speak!\"\n\nTh
	e child\, with the tears streaming down her lovely face\, was only able to
	 answer in her defence. \"Oh\, pa\, I do love them so.\"\n\n\"You do\, do 
	you?\" replied her exasperated father\, stamping his foot\, and pushing he
	r from him\; \"go to bed\, and if ever I hear of you going there again\, y
	ou shall be well whipped.\" The tearful face lingered about the door in ho
	pe of a reprieve that did not come\, and then disappeared for the night.\n
	\n\"The children must not be suffered to go in there\, Jule\; something I'
	ve learned to-day will——\" here Mr. Stevens checked himself\; and in a
	nswer to his wife's impatient \"What have you learned?\" replied\, \"Oh\, 
	nothing of consequence—nothing that will interest you\,\" and sat with h
	is slipper in his hand\, engaged in deep thought.\n\nNow for Mr. Stevens t
	o commence a communication to his wife\, and then break off in the middle 
	of it\, was as novel as disagreeable\, as he was generally very communicat
	ive\, and would detail to her in the evening\, with pleasing minuteness\, 
	all the rogueries he had accomplished during the day\; and his unwillingne
	ss to confide something that evidently occupied his mind caused his spouse
	 to be greatly irritated.\n\nMr. Stevens drank his tea in silence\, and du
	ring the evening continued absorbed in reflection\; and\, notwithstanding 
	the various ill-natured remarks of his wife upon his strange conduct retir
	ed without giving her the slightest clue to its cause.\n\nCHAPTER XVII.\nP
	lotting.\n\nMr. Stevens awoke at a very early hour the ensuing morning\, a
	nd quite unceremoniously shook his wife to arouse her also. This he accomp
	lished after considerable labour\; for Mrs. Stevens was much more sleepy t
	han usual\, in consequence of her husband's restlessness the previous nigh
	t.\n\n\"I declare\,\" said she\, rubbing her eyes\, \"I don't get any peac
	e of my life. You lie awake\, kicking about\, half the night\, muttering a
	nd whispering about no one knows what\, and then want me to rise before da
	y. What are you in such\, a hurry for this morning\,—no more mysteries\,
	 I hope?\"\n\n\"Oh\, come\, Jule\, get up!\" said her husband\, impatientl
	y. \"I must be off to my business very early\; I am overburthened with dif
	ferent things this morning.\"\n\nMrs. Stevens made a very hasty toilette\,
	 and descended to the kitchen\, where the little charity-girl was bustling
	 about with her eyes only half open. With her assistance\, the breakfast w
	as soon prepared\, and Mr. Stevens called downstairs. He ate rapidly and s
	ilently\, and at the conclusion of his meal\, put on his hat\, and wished 
	his amiable spouse an abrupt good morning.\n\nAfter leaving his house\, he
	 did not take the usual course to his office\, but turned his steps toward
	 the lower part of the city. Hastening onward\, he soon left the improved 
	parts of it in his rear\, and entered upon a shabby district.\n\nThe morni
	ng was very chilly\, and as it was yet quite early\, but few people were s
	tirring: they were labourers hurrying to their work\, milkmen\, and trundl
	ers of breadcarts.\n\nAt length he stopped at the door of a tavern\, over 
	which was a large sign\, bearing the name of Whitticar. On entering\, he f
	ound two or three forlorn-looking wretches clustering round the stove\, en
	deavouring to receive some warmth upon their half-clothed bodies\,—their
	 red and pimpled noses being the only parts about them that did not look c
	old. They stared wonderingly at Mr. Stevens as he entered\; for a person s
	o respectable as himself in appearance was but seldom seen in that house.\
	n\nThe boy who attended the bar inquired from behind the counter what he w
	ould take.\n\n\"Mr. Whitticar\, if you please\,\" blandly replied Mr. Stev
	ens.\n\nHearing this\, the boy bolted from the shop\, and quite alarmed th
	e family\, by stating that there was a man in the shop\, who said he wante
	d to take Mr. Whitticar\, and he suspected that he was a policeman.\n\nWhi
	tticar\, who was seldom entirely free from some scrape\, went through anot
	her door to take a survey of the new comer\, and on ascertaining who it wa
	s\, entered the room.\n\n\"You've quite upset the family\; we all took you
	 for a constable\,\" said he\, approaching Mr. Stevens\, who shook hands w
	ith him heartily\, and then\, laying his arm familiarly on his shoulder\, 
	rejoined\,—\n\n\"I say\, Whitticar\, I want about five minutes' conversa
	tion with you.\nHaven't you some room where we can be quite private for a 
	little while?\"\n\n\"Yes\; come this way\,\" replied he. And\, leading his
	 visitor through the bar\, they entered a small back room\, the door of wh
	ich they locked behind them.\n\n\"Now\, Whitticar\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, \
	"I want you to act the part of a friend by the fellow who got in that awkw
	ard scrape at this house. As you did not give the evidence you informed me
	 you were possessed of\, at the coroner's inquest\, it is unnecessary for 
	you to do so before the magistrate at examination. There is no use in hang
	ing the fellow—it cannot result in any benefit to yourself\; it will onl
	y attract disagreeable notice to your establishment\, and possibly may occ
	asion a loss of your licence. We will be willing to make it worth your whi
	le to absent yourself\, for a short time at least\, until the trial is ove
	r\; it will put money in your purse\, and save this poor devil's life besi
	des. What do you say to receiving a hundred and fifty\, and going off for 
	a month or two?\"\n\n\"Couldn't think of it\, Mr. Stevens\, no how. See ho
	w my business would suffer\; everything would be at loose ends. I should b
	e obliged to hire a man to take my place\; and\, in that case\, I must cal
	culate upon his stealing at least twenty-five per cent. of the receipts: a
	nd then there is his wages. No\, no that won't do. Besides\, I'm trying to
	 obtain the nomination for the office of alderman—to secure it\, I must 
	be on the spot\; nothing like looking out for oneself. I am afraid I can't
	 accommodate you\, squire\, unless you can offer something better than one
	 hundred and fifty.\"\n\n\"You've got no conscience\,\" rejoined Mr. Steve
	ns\, \"not a bit.\"\n\n\"Well\, the less of that the better for me\; it's 
	a thing of very little use in the rum-selling business\; it interferes wit
	h trade—so I can't afford to keep a conscience. If you really want me to
	 go\, make me a better offer\; say two fifty\, and I'll begin to think of 
	it. The trial will be over in a month or six weeks\, I suppose\, and a spr
	ee of that length would be very pleasant.\"\n\n\"No\, I won't do that\, Wh
	itticar\,—that's flat\; but I'll tell you what I will do. I'll make it t
	wo hundred\, and what is more\, I'll see to your nomination. I'm all right
	 down here\, you know\; I own the boys in this district\; and if you'll sa
	y you'll put some little matters through for me after you are elected\, I'
	ll call it a bargain.\"\n\n\"Then I'm your man\,\" said Whitticar\, extend
	ing his hand.\n\n\"Well\, then\,\" added Stevens\, \"come to my office thi
	s morning\, and you shall have the money\; after that I shall expect you t
	o get out of town as quick as possible. Goodbye.\"\n\n\"So far all right\,
	\" muttered Mr. Stevens\, with an air of intense satisfaction\, as he left
	 the house\; \"he'll be of great use to me. When it becomes necessary to b
	lind the public by a sham investigation\, he will be the man to conduct it
	\; when I want a man released from prison\, or a little job of that kind d
	one\, he will do it—this act will put him in my power\; and I am much mi
	staken if he won't prove of the utmost service in our riot scheme. Now\, t
	hen\, we will have an examination of McCloskey as soon as they like.\"\n\n
	A few weeks subsequent to the events we have just written\, we find Mr. St
	evens seated in his dingy office in company with the McCloskey\, who had r
	ecently been discharged from custody in default of sufficient evidence bei
	ng found to warrant his committal for trial. He was sitting with his feet 
	upon the stove\, and was smoking a cigar in the most free-and-easy manner 
	imaginable.\n\n\"So far\, so good\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, as he laid down t
	he letter he was perusing\; \"that simplifies the matter greatly\; and wha
	tever is to be done towards his removal\, must be done quickly—now that 
	the old man is dead there is but one to deal with.\"\n\nDuring the interva
	l that had elapsed between the interview of Mr. Stevens with Whitticar and
	 the period to which we now refer\, Mr. Stevens had been actively engaged 
	in promoting his riot scheme\; and already several disturbances had occurr
	ed\, in which a number of inoffensive coloured people had been injured in 
	their persons and property.\n\nBut this was only a faint indication of wha
	t was to follow\; and as he had\, through the agency of Mr. Morton and oth
	ers\, been able to prevent any but the most garbled statements of these af
	fairs from getting abroad\, there was but little danger of their operation
	s being interfered with. Leading articles daily appeared in the public jou
	rnals (particularly those that circulated amongst the lowest classes)\, in
	 which the negroes were denounced\, in the strongest terms. It was averred
	 that their insolence\, since the commencement of the abolition agitation\
	, had become unbearable\; and from many quarters was suggested the absolut
	e necessity for inflicting some general chastisement\, to convince them th
	at they were still negroes\, and to teach them to remain in their proper p
	lace in the body politic.\n\nMany of these articles were written by Mr. St
	evens\, and their insertion as editorials procured through the instrumenta
	lity of Mr. Morton and his friends.\n\nMr. Stevens turned to his visitor\,
	 and inquired\, \"What was done last night—much of anything?\"\n\n\"A gr
	eat deal\, yer honour\,\" replied McCloskey\; \"a nagur or two half killed
	\, and one house set on fire and nearly burned up.\"\n\n\"Is that all?\" s
	aid Mr. Stevens\, with a well-assumed look of disappointment. \"Is that al
	l? Why\, you are a miserable set: you should have beaten every darky out o
	f the district by this time.\"\n\n\"They're not so aisily bate out—they 
	fight like sevin divils. One o' 'em\, night before last\, split Mikey Dola
	n's head clane open\, and it's a small chance of his life he's got to comf
	ort himself wid.\"\n\n\"Chances of war—chances of war!\" rejoined Mr. St
	evens\,—\"mere trifles when you get used to 'em: you mustn't let that st
	op you—you have a great deal yet to do. What you have already accomplish
	ed is a very small matter compared with what is expected\, and what I inte
	nd you to do: your work has only just begun\, man.\"\n\n\"Jist begun!\" re
	plied the astonished McCloskey\; \"haven't we bin raising the very divil e
	very night for the last week—running a near chance of being kilt all the
	 time—and all for nothing! It's gettin' tiresome\; one don't like to be 
	fighting the nagurs all the time for the mere fun of the thing—it don't 
	pay\, for divil a cent have I got for all my trouble\; and ye said ye woul
	d pay well\, ye remimber.\"\n\n\"So I shall\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, \"when 
	you do something worth paying for—the quarter is not accomplished yet. I
	 want the place made so hot down there that the niggers can't stay. Go a-h
	ead\, don't give them any rest—I'll protect you from the consequences\, 
	whatever they be: I've great things in store for you\,\" continued he\, mo
	ving nearer and speaking in a confidential tone\; \"how should you like to
	 return to Ireland a moneyed man?\"\n\n\"I should like it well enough\, to
	 be sure\; but where's the money to come from\, squire?\"\n\n\"Oh\, there'
	s money enough to be had if you have the courage to earn it.\"\n\n\"I'm wi
	llin' enough to earn an honest penny\, but I don't like risking me neck fo
	r it\, squire. It's clear ye'll not be afther givin' me a dale of money wi
	dout being sure of havin' the worth of it out o' me\; and it's dirty work 
	enough I've done\, widout the doin' of any more: me conscience is a sore t
	hrouble to me about the other job. Be the powers I'm out o' that\, and div
	il a like scrape will I get in agin wid my own consint.\"\n\n\"Your consci
	ence has become troublesome very suddenly\,\" rejoined Mr. Stevens\, with 
	a look of angry scorn\; \"it's strange it don't appear to have troubled yo
	u in the least during the last few weeks\, whilst you have been knocking n
	iggers on the head so freely.\"\n\n\"Well\, I'm tired o' that work\,\" int
	errupted McCloskey\; \"and what's more\,\nI'll soon be lavin' of it off.\"
	\n\n\"We'll see about that\,\" said Mr. Stevens. \"You're a pretty fellow\
	, now\, ain't you—grateful\, too—very! Here I've been successful in ge
	tting you out of a hanging scrape\, and require a trifling service in retu
	rn\, and you retire. You'll find this trifling won't do with me\,\" contin
	ued Mr. Stevens\, with great sternness of manner. \"You shall do as I wish
	: you are in my power! I need your services\, and I will have them—make 
	up your mind to that.\"\n\nMcCloskey was somewhat staggered at this bold d
	eclaration from Mr. Stevens\; but he soon assumed his former assured manne
	r\, and replied\, \"I'd like to know how I'm in your power: as far as this
	 riot business is concerned\, you're as deep in the mud as I'm in the mire
	\; as for the other\, be St. Patrick\, I'm clane out o' that!—they don't
	 try a man twice for the same thing.\" \"Don't halloo so loud\, my fine fe
	llow\,\" sneeringly rejoined Mr. Stevens\, \"you are not entirely out of t
	he wood yet\; you are by no means as safe as you imagine—you haven't bee
	n tried yet\, you have only been examined before a magistrate! They lacked
	 sufficient evidence to commit you for trial—that evidence I can produce
	 at any time\; so remember\, if you please\, you have not been tried yet: 
	when you have been\, and acquitted\, be kind enough to let me know\, will 
	you?\"\n\nMr. Stevens stood for a few moments silently regarding the chang
	e his language had brought over the now crestfallen McCloskey\; he then co
	ntinued—\"Don't think you can escape me—I'll have a thousand eyes upon
	 you\; no one ever escapes me that I wish to retain. Do as I require\, and
	 I'll promote your interest in every possible way\, and protect you\; but 
	waver\, or hold back\, and I'll hang you as unhesitatingly as if you were 
	a dog.\"\n\nThis threat was given in a tone that left no doubt on the mind
	 of the hearer but that Mr. Stevens would carry out his expressed intentio
	n\; and the reflections thereby engendered by no means added to the comfor
	t or sense of security that McCloskey had flattered himself he was in futu
	re to enjoy\; he\, therefore\, began to discover the bad policy of offendi
	ng one who might prove so formidable an enemy—of incensing one who had i
	t in his power to retaliate by such terrible measures.\n\nHe therefore tur
	ned to Mr. Stevens\, with a somewhat humbled manner\, and said: \"You need
	n't get so mad\, squire—sure it's but natural that a man shouldn't want 
	to get any deeper in the mire than he can help\; and I've enough on my han
	ds now to make them too red to look at wid comfort—sure it's not a shade
	 deeper you'd have 'em?\" he asked\, looking inquiringly at Mr. Stevens\, 
	who was compelled to turn away his face for a moment to hide his agitation
	.\n\nAt last he mastered his countenance\, and\, in as cool a tone as he c
	ould assume\, replied: \"Oh\, a little more on them will be scarcely a per
	ceptible addition. You know the old adage\, 'In for a penny\, in for a pou
	nd.' You need have no fear\,\" said he\, lowering his voice almost to a wh
	isper\; \"it can be done in a crowd—and at night—no one will notice it
	.\"\n\n\"I don't know about that\, squire—in a crowd some one will be su
	re to notice it. It's\, too dangerous—I can't do it.\"\n\n\"Tut\, tut\, 
	man\; don't talk like a fool. I tell you there is no danger. You\, in comp
	any with a mob of others\, are to attack this man's house. When he makes h
	is appearance\, as he will be sure to do\, shoot him down.\"\n\n\"Good God
	! squire\,\" said McCloskey\, his face growing pale at the prospect of wha
	t was required of him\, \"you talk of murder as if it was mere play!\"\n\n
	\"And still\, I never murdered any one\,\" rejoined Mr. Stevens\, signific
	antly\; \"come\, come—put your scruples in your pocket\, and make up you
	r mind to go through with it like a man. When the thing is done\, you shal
	l have five thousand dollars in hard cash\, and you can go with it where y
	ou please. Now\, what do you think of that?\"\n\n\"Ah\, squire\, the money
	's a great timptation! but it's an awful job.\"\n\n\"No worse than you did
	 for nothing\,\" replied Mr. Stevens.\n\n\"But that was in a fair fight\, 
	and in hot blood\; it isn't like planning to kill a man\, squire.\"\n\n\"D
	o you call it a fair fight when you steal up behind a man\, and break his 
	skull with a slung shot?\" asked Mr. Stevens.\n\nMcCloskey was unable to a
	nswer this\, and sat moodily regarding his tempter.\n\n\"Come\, make up yo
	ur mind to it—you might as well\,\" resumed Mr. Stevens\, in a coaxing t
	one.\n\n\"Ye seem bent on not giving it up\, and I suppose I'll have to do
	 it\,\" replied McCloskey\, reluctantly\; \"but what has the man done to y
	e's\, squire\, that you're so down upon him?\"\n\n\"Oh\, he is one of thos
	e infernal Abolitionists\, and one of the very worst kind\; he lives with 
	a nigger woman—and\, what is more\, he is married to her!\"\n\n\"Married
	 to a nigger!\" exclaimed McCloskey—\"it's a quare taste the animal ha
	s—but you're not afther killing him for that\; there's something more be
	hind: it's not for having a black wife instead of a white one you'd be aft
	her murthering him—ye'll get no stuff like that down me.\"\n\n\"No\, it 
	is not for that alone\, I acknowledge\,\" rejoined Mr. Stevens\, with cons
	iderable embarrassment. \"He insulted me some time ago\, and I want to be 
	revenged upon him.\"\n\n\"It's a dear job to insult you\, at that rate\, s
	quire\; but where does he live?\"\n\n\"In my neighbourhood—in fact\, nex
	t door to me\,\" replied Mr. Stevens\, with an averted face.\n\n\"Howly Mo
	ther! not away up there—sure it's crazy ye are. What\, away up there in 
	the city limits!—why\, they would have the police and the sogers at our 
	heels in less than no time. Sure\, you're out o' your sinses\, to have me 
	go up there with a mob. No\, no—there's too much risk—I can't try that
	.\"\n\n\"I tell you there shall be no risk\,\" impatiently replied Mr. Ste
	vens. \"It's not to be done to-night\, nor to-morrow night\; and\, when I 
	say do it\, you shall do it\, and as safely there as anywhere. Only come t
	o the conclusion that a thing must be done\, and it is half finished alrea
	dy. You have only to make up your mind that you will accomplish a design i
	n spite of obstacles\, and what you once thought to be insurmountable diff
	iculties will prove mere straws in your path. But we are wasting time\; I'
	ve determined you shall do it\, and I hope you now know me well enough to 
	be convinced that it is your best policy to be as obliging as possible. Yo
	u had better go now\, and be prepared to meet me to-night at Whitticar's.\
	"\n\nAfter the door closed upon the retreating form of McCloskey\, the car
	eless expression that Mr. Stevens's countenance had worn during the conver
	sation\, gave place to one full of anxiety and apprehension\, and he shudd
	ered as he contemplated the fearful length to which he was proceeding.\n\n
	\"If I fail\,\" said he—\"pshaw! I'll not fail—I must not fail—for f
	ailure is worse than ruin\; but cool—cool\,\" he continued\, sitting dow
	n to his desk—\"those who work nervously do nothing right.\" He sat writ
	ing uninterruptedly until quite late in the afternoon\, when the fading su
	nlight compelled him to relinquish his pen\, and prepare for home.\n\nThru
	sting the papers into his pocket\, he hurried toward the newspaper office 
	from which were to emanate\, as editorials\, the carefully concocted appea
	ls to the passions of the rabble which he had been all the afternoon so bu
	sily engaged in preparing.\n\nCHAPTER XVIII.\nMr. Stevens falls into Bad H
	ands.\n\nThe amiable partner of Mr. Stevens sat in high dudgeon\, at being
	 so long restrained from her favourite beverage by the unusually deferred 
	absence of her husband. At length she was rejoiced by hearing his well-kno
	wn step as he came through the garden\, and the rattle of his latch-key as
	 he opened the door was quite musical in her ears.\n\n\"I thought you was 
	never coming\,\" said she\, querulously\, as he entered the room\; \"I hav
	e been waiting tea until I am almost starved.\"\n\n\"You needn't have wait
	ed a moment\, for you will be obliged to eat alone after all\; I'm going o
	ut. Pour me out a cup of tea—I'll drink it whilst I'm dressing\; and\,\"
	 continued Mr. Stevens\, \"I want you to get me that old brown over-coat a
	nd those striped trowsers I used to wear occasionally.\"\n\n\"Why\, you to
	ld me\,\" rejoined Mrs. Stevens\, \"that you did not require them again\, 
	and so I exchanged them for this pair of vases to-day.\"\n\n\"The devil yo
	u did!\" said Mr. Stevens\, angrily\; \"you let them lie about the house f
	or nearly a year—and now\, just as they were likely to be of some servic
	e to me\, you've sold them. It's just like you—always doing something at
	 the wrong time.\"\n\n\"How on earth\, Stevens\, was I to know you wanted 
	them?\"\n\n\"Well\, there\, Jule\, they're gone\; don't let's have any mor
	e talk about it. Get me another cup of tea\; I must go out immediately.\" 
	After hastily swallowing the second cup\, Mr. Stevens left his home\, and 
	walked to an omnibus-station\, from whence he was quickly transported to a
	 street in the lower part of the city\, in which were a number of second-h
	and clothing stores. These places were supported principally by the countr
	y people who attended the market in the same street\, and who fancied that
	 the clothing they purchased at these shops must be cheap\, because it was
	 at second-hand.\n\nMr. Stevens stopped at the door of one of these establ
	ishments\, and paused to take a slight survey of the premises before enter
	ing. The doorway was hung with coats of every fashion of the last twenty y
	ears\, and all in various stages of decay. Some of them looked quite respe
	ctable\, from much cleaning and patching\; and others presented a reckless
	 and forlorn aspect\, as their worn and ragged sleeves swung about in the 
	evening air. Old hats\, some of which were\, in all probability\, worn at 
	a period anterior to the Revolution\, kept company with the well-blacked s
	hoes that were ranged on shelves beside the doorway\, where they served in
	 the capacity of signs\, and fairly indicated the style of goods to be pur
	chased within.\n\nSeeing that there were no buyers in the store\, Mr. Stev
	ens opened the door\, and entered. The sounds of his footsteps drew from b
	ehind the counter no less a personage than our redoubtable friend Kinch\, 
	who\, in the absence of his father\, was presiding over the establishment.
	\n\n\"Well\, Snowball\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, \"do you keep this curiosity-
	shop?\"\n\n\"My name is not Snowball\, and this ain't a curiosity-shop\,\"
	 replied Kinch.\n\"Do you want to buy anything?\"\n\n\"I believe I do\,\" 
	answered Mr. Stevens. \"Let me look at some coats—one that I can get o
	n—I won't say fit me\, I'm indifferent about that—let me see some of t
	he worst you've got.\"\n\nKinch looked surprised at this request from a ge
	ntleman of Mr. Stevens's appearance\, and handed out\, quite mechanically\
	, a coat that was but slightly worn. \"Oh\, that won't do—I want somethi
	ng like this\,\" said Mr. Stevens\, taking down from a peg a very dilapida
	ted coat\, of drab colour\, and peculiar cut. What do you ask for this?\"\
	n\n\"That's not fit for\, a gentleman like you\, sir\,\" said Kinch.\n\n\"
	I'm the best judge of that matter\,\" rejoined Mr. Stevens. \"What is the 
	price of it?\"\n\n\"Oh\, that coat you can have for a dollar\,\" replied K
	inch.\n\n\"Then I'll take it. Now hand out some trowsers.\"\n\nThe trowser
	s were brought\; and from a large number Mr. Stevens selected a pair that 
	suited him. Then adding an old hat to his list of purchases\, he declared 
	his fit-out complete.\n\n\"Can't you accommodate me with some place where 
	I can put these on?\" he asked of Kinch\; \"I'm going to have a little spo
	rt with some friends of mine\, and I want to wear them.\"\n\nKinch led the
	 way into a back room\, where he assisted Mr. Stevens to array himself in 
	his newly-purchased garments. By the change in his attire he seemed comple
	tely robbed of all appearance of respectability\; the most disagreeable po
	ints of his physique seemed to be brought more prominently forward by the 
	habiliments he had assumed\, they being quite in harmony with his villanou
	s countenance.\n\nKinch\, who looked at him with wonder\, was forced to re
	mark\, \"Why\, you don't look a bit like a gentleman now\, sir.\"\n\nMr. S
	tevens stepped forward\, and surveyed himself in the looking-glass. The tr
	ansformation was complete—surprising even to himself. \"I never knew bef
	ore\,\" said he\, mentally\, \"how far a suit of clothes goes towards givi
	ng one the appearance of a gentleman.\"\n\nHe now emptied the pockets of t
	he suit he had on\;—in so doing\, he dropped upon the floor\, without ob
	serving it\, one of the papers.\n\n\"Fold these up\,\" said he\, handing t
	o Kinch the suit he had just taken off\, \"and to-morrow bring them to thi
	s address.\" As he spoke\, he laid his card upon the counter\, and\, after
	 paying for his new purchases\, walked out of the shop\, and bent his step
	s in the direction of Whitticar's tavern.\n\nOn arriving there\, he found 
	the bar-room crowded with half-drunken men\, the majority of whom were Iri
	shmen\, armed with bludgeons of all sizes and shapes. His appearance among
	st them excited but little attention\, and he remained there some time bef
	ore he was recognized by the master of the establishment.\n\n\"By the howl
	y St. Patherick I didn't know you\, squire\; what have you been doing to y
	ourself?\"\n\n\"Hist!\" cried Mr. Stevens\, putting his fingers to his lip
	s\; \"I thought it was best to see how matters were progressing\, so I've 
	run down for a little while. How are you getting on?\"\n\n\"Fine\, fine\, 
	squire\,\" replied Whitticar\; \"the boys are ripe for anything.\nThey tal
	k of burning down a nigger church.\"\n\n\"Not to-night—they must not do 
	such a thing to-night—we are not ready for that yet. I've made out a lit
	tle list—some of the places on it they might have a dash at to-night\, j
	ust to keep their hands in.\" As Mr. Stevens spoke\, he fumbled in his poc
	ket for the list in question\, and was quite surprised to be unable to dis
	cover it.\n\n\"Can't you find it\, squire?\" asked Whitticar.\n\n\"I must 
	have lost\; it on the way\,\" replied Mr. Stevens. \"I am sure I put it in
	 this pocket\,\" and he made another search. \"No use—I'll have to give 
	it up\,\" said he\, at length\; \"but where is McCloskey? I haven't seen h
	im since I came in.\"\n\n\"He came here this afternoon\, very far gone\; h
	e had been crooking his elbow pretty frequently\, and was so very drunk th
	at I advised him to go home and go to bed\; so he took another dram and we
	nt away\, and I haven't seen him since.\"\n\n\"That's bad\, very bad—eve
	rything goes wrong this evening—I wanted him to-night particularly.\" \"
	Wouldn't the boys go out with you?\" suggested Whitticar.\n\n\"No\, no\; t
	hat wouldn't do at all. I mustn't appear in these things. If I'm hauled up
	 for participation\, who is to be your lawyer—eh?\"\n\n\"True for you\,\
	" rejoined Whitticar\; \"and I'll just disperse the crowd as soon as I can
	\, and there will be one peaceable night in the district at any rate.\"\n\
	nNot liking to give directions to the mob personally\, and his useful coad
	jutor McCloskey not being at hand\, Mr. Stevens came to the conclusion he 
	would return to his home\, and on the next evening a descent should be mad
	e upon the places marked on the list.\n\nTaking out his watch\, he found i
	t would be too late to return to the store where he had purchased his pres
	ent adornments\, so he determined to start for home.\n\nThe coat that temp
	orarily adorned the person of Mr. Stevens was of peculiar cut and colour
	—it was\, in fact\, rather in the rowdy style\, and had\, in its pristin
	e state\, bedecked the person of a member of a notorious fire company. The
	se gentry had for a long time been the terror of the district in which the
	y roamed\, and had rendered themselves highly obnoxious to some of the riv
	al factions on the borders of their own territory\; they had the unpleasan
	t habit of pitching into and maltreating\, without the slightest provocati
	on\, any one whom their practised eyes discovered to be a rival\; and by s
	uch outrages they had excited in the bosoms of their victims a desire for 
	revenge that only awaited the occasion to manifest itself.\n\nMr. Stevens\
	, in happy unconsciousness\, that\, owing to his habiliments\, he represen
	ted one of the well-known and hated faction\, walked on quite leisurely\; 
	but\, unfortunately for him\, his way home lay directly through the camp o
	f their bitterest and most active enemies.\n\nStanding in front of a taver
	n-window\, through which a bright light shone\, were a group of young men\
	, who bestowed upon Mr. Stevens more than passing attention. \"I'm blest\,
	\" exclaimed one of them\, if there ain't a ranger! now that it a saucy pi
	ece of business\, ain't it! That fellow has come up here to be able to go 
	back and play brag-game.\"\n\n\"Let's wallop him\, then\,\" suggested anot
	her\, \"and teach him better than to come parading himself in our parts. I
	 owe 'em something for the way they served me when I was down in their dis
	trict.\"\n\n\"Well\, come on\,\" said the first speaker\, \"or he will get
	 away whilst we are jawing about what we shall do.\"\n\nAdvancing to Mr. S
	tevens\, he tapped that gentleman on the shoulder\, and said\, with mock c
	ivility\, and in as bland a tone as he could assume\, \"It's really very o
	bliging of you\, mister\, to come up here to be flogged—saves us the tro
	uble of coming down to you. We would like to settle with you for that drub
	bing you gave one of our boys last week.\"\n\n\"You must be mistaken\,\" r
	eplied Mr. Stevens: \"I don't know anything of the affair to which you all
	ude.\"\n\n\"You don't\, eh! Well\, take that\, then\, to freshen your memo
	ry\,\" exclaimed one of the party\, at the same time dealing him a heavy b
	low on the cheek\, which made the lamplights around appear to dance about 
	in the most fantastic style.\n\nThe first impulse of Mr. Stevens was to cr
	y out for the watchman\; but a moment's reflection suggested the impolicy 
	of that project\, as he would inevitably be arrested with the rest\; and t
	o be brought before a magistrate in his present guise\, would have entaile
	d upon him very embarrassing explanations\; he therefore thought it best t
	o beg off—to throw himself\, as it were\, upon their sympathies.\n\n\"St
	op\, gentlemen—stop—for God's sake\, stop\,\" he cried\, as soon as he
	 could regain the breath that had been almost knocked out of him by the tr
	emendous blow he had just received—\"don't kill an innocent man\; upon m
	y honour I never saw you before\, nor ever assaulted any of you in my life
	. My dear friends\,\" he continued\, in a dolorous tone\, \"please let me 
	go—you are quite mistaken: I assure you I am not the man.\" \"No\, we ai
	n't mistaken\, either: you're one of the rangers\; I know you by your coat
	\,\" replied one of the assaulters.\n\nIt now flashed upon Mr. Stevens tha
	t he had brought himself into these difficulties\, by the assumption of th
	e dress he then wore\; he therefore quickly rejoined—\"Oh\, it is not my
	 coat—I only put it on for a joke!\"\n\n\"That's a likely tale\,\" respo
	nded one of the party\, who looked very incredulous\; \"I don't believe a 
	word of it. That's some darned stuff you've trumped up\, thinking to gammo
	n us—it won't go down\; we'll just give you a walloping\, if it's only t
	o teach you to wear your own clothes\,\"—and suiting the action to the w
	ord\, he commenced pommelling him unmercifully.\n\n\"Help! help!\" screame
	d Mr. Stevens. \"Don't kill me\, gentlemen\,—don't kill me!\"\n\n\"Oh! w
	e won't kill you—we'll only come as near it as we can\, without quite fi
	nishing you\,\" cried one of his relentless tormenters.\n\nOn hearing this
	\, their victim made a frantic effort to break away\, and not succeeding i
	n it\, he commenced yelling at the top of his voice. As is usual in such c
	ases\, the watchman was nowhere to be seen\; and his cries only exasperate
	d his persecutors the more.\n\n\"Hit him in the bread-crusher\, and stop h
	is noise\,\" suggested one of the party farthest off from Mr. Stevens. Thi
	s piece of advice was carried into immediate effect\, and the unfortunate 
	wearer of the obnoxious coat received a heavy blow in the mouth\, which cu
	t his lips and knocked out one of his front teeth.\n\nHis cries now became
	 so loud as to render it necessary to gag him\, which was done by one of t
	he party in the most thorough and expeditious manner. They then dragged hi
	m into a wheelwright's shop near by\, where they obtained some tar\, with 
	which they coated his face completely.\n\n\"Oh! don't he look like a nigge
	r!\" said one of the party\, when they had finished embellishing their vic
	tim.\n\n\"Rub some on his hands\, and then let him go\,\" suggested anothe
	r. \"When he gets home I guess he'll surprise his mammy: I don't believe h
	is own dog will know him!\"\n\nA shout of laughter followed this remark\, 
	in the midst of which they ungagged Mr. Stevens and turned him from the do
	or.\n\n\"Now run for it—cut the quickest kind of time\,\" exclaimed one 
	of them\, as he gave him a kick to add impetus to his forward movement.\n\
	nThis aid was\, however\, entirely unnecessary\, for Mr. Stevens shot away
	 from the premises like an arrow from a bow\; and that\, too\, without any
	 observation upon the direction in which he was going.\n\nAs soon as he fe
	lt himself out of the reach of his tormentors\, he sat down upon the steps
	 of a mansion\, to consider what was best to be done. All the shops\, and 
	even the taverns\, were closed—not a place was open where he could procu
	re the least assistance\; he had not even an acquaintance in the neighbour
	hood to whom he might apply.\n\nHe was\, indeed\, a pitiable object to loo
	k upon The hat he had so recently purchased\, bad as it was when it came i
	nto his possession\, was now infinitely less presentable. In the severe tr
	ials it had undergone\, in company with its unfortunate owner\, it had los
	t its tip and half the brim. The countenance beneath it would\, however\, 
	have absorbed the gazer's whole attention. His lips were swelled to a size
	 that would have been regarded as large even on the face of a Congo negro\
	, and one eye was puffed out to an alarming extent\; whilst the coating of
	 tar he had received rendered him such an object as the reader can but fai
	ntly picture to himself.\n\nThe door of the mansion was suddenly opened\, 
	and there issued forth a party of young men\, evidently in an advanced sta
	te of intoxication. \"Hallo! here's a darkey!\" exclaimed one of them\, as
	 the light from the hall fell upon the upturned face of Mr. Stevens. \"Ha\
	, ha! Here's a darkey—now for some fun!\"\n\nMr. Stevens was immediately
	 surrounded by half a dozen well-dressed young men\, who had evidently bee
	n enjoying an entertainment not conducted upon temperance principles. \"Sp
	irit of—hic—hic—night\, whence co-co-comest thou?\" stammered one\; 
	\"sp-p-peak—art thou a creature of the mag-mag-na-tion-goblin-damned\, o
	r only a nigger?—speak!\" Mr. Stevens\, who at once recognized one or tw
	o of the parties as slight acquaintances\, would not open his mouth\, for 
	fear that his voice might discover him\, as to them\, above all persons\, 
	he would have shrunk from making himself known\, he therefore began to mak
	e signs as though he were dumb.\n\n\"Let him alone\,\" said one of the mor
	e sober of the party\; \"he's a poor dumb fellow—let him go.\" His voice
	 was disregarded\, however\, as the rest seemed bent on having some sport.
	\n\nA half-hogshead\, nearly filled with water\, which stood upon the edge
	 of the pavement\, for the convenience of the builders who were at work ne
	xt door\, caught the attention of one of them.\n\n\"Let's make him jump in
	to this\,\" he exclaimed\, at the same time motioning to Mr. Stevens to th
	at effect. By dint of great effort they made him understand what was requi
	red\, and they then continued to make him jump in and out of the hogshead 
	for several minutes\; then\, joining hands\, they danced around him\, whil
	st he stood knee-deep in the water\, shivering\, and making the most implo
	ring motions to be set at liberty.\n\nWhilst they were thus engaged\, the 
	door again opened\, and the fashionable Mr. Morton (who had been one of th
	e guests) descended the steps\, and came to see what had been productive o
	f so much mirth.\n\n\"What have you got here?\" he asked\, pressing forwar
	d\, until he saw the battered form of Mr. Stevens\; \"oh\, let the poor da
	rkey go\,\" he continued\, compassionately\, for he had just drunk enough 
	to make him feel humane\; \"let the poor fellow go\, it's a shame to treat
	 him in this manner.\"\n\nAs he spoke\, he endeavoured to take from the ha
	nds of one of the party a piece of chip\, with which he was industriously 
	engaged in streaking the face of Mr. Stevens with lime\, \"Let me alone\, 
	Morton—let me alone\; I'm making a white man of him\, I'm going to make 
	him a glorious fellow-citizen\, and have him run for Congress. Let me alon
	e\, I say.\"\n\nMr. Morton was able\, however\, after some persuasion\, to
	 induce the young men to depart\; and as his home lay in a direction oppos
	ite to theirs\, he said to Mr. Stevens\, \"Come on\, old fellow\, I'll pro
	tect you.\"\n\nAs soon as they were out of hearing of the others\, Mr. Ste
	vens exclaimed\,\n\"Don't you know me\, Morton?\"\n\nMr. Morton started ba
	ck with surprise\, and looked at his companion in a bewildered manner\, th
	en exclaimed\, \"No\, I'll be hanged if I do. Who the devil are you?\"\n\n
	\"I'm Stevens\; you know me.\"\n\n\"Indeed I don't. Who's Stevens?\"\n\n\"
	You don't know me! why\, I'm George Stevens\, the lawyer.\"\n\nMr. Morton 
	thought that he now recognized the voice\, and as they were passing under 
	the lamp at the time\, Mr. Stevens said to him\, \"Put your finger on my f
	ace\, and you will soon see it is only tar.\" Mr. Morton did as he was des
	ired\, and found his finger smeared with the sticky article.\n\n\"What on 
	earth have you been doing with yourself?\" he asked\, with great surprise\
	; \"what is all this masquerading for?\"\n\nMr. Stevens hereupon related h
	is visit at Whitticar's\, and detailed the events that had subsequently oc
	curred.\n\nMr. Morton gave vent to shouts of laughter as he listened to th
	e recital of his friend. \"By George!\" he exclaimed\, \"I'll have to tell
	 that\; it is too good to keep.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, don't\,\" said Mr. Steven
	s\; \"that won't do—you forget what I came out for?\"\n\n\"True\,\" rejo
	ined Mr. Morton\; \"I suppose it will be best to keep mum about it. I'll g
	o home with you\, you might fall into the hands of the Philistines again.\
	"\n\n\"Thank you—thank you\,\" replied Mr. Stevens\, who felt greatly re
	lieved to have some company for his further protection\; \"and\,\" continu
	ed he\, \"if I could only get some of this infernal stuff off my face\, I 
	should be so glad\; let us try.\"\n\nAccordingly they stopped at the neare
	st pump\, and endeavoured to remove some of the obnoxious tar from his fac
	e\; but\, unfortunately\, the only result obtained by their efforts was to
	 rub it more thoroughly in\, so they were compelled to give up in despair\
	, and hasten onward.\n\nMr. Stevens rang so loudly at the door\, as to qui
	te startle his wife and the charity-girl\, both of whom had fallen into a 
	sound sleep\, as they sat together awaiting his return. Mr. Morton\, who\,
	 as we have said before\, was not entirely sober\, was singing a popular m
	elody\, and keeping time upon the door with the head of his cane. Now\, in
	 all her life\, Mrs. Stevens had never heard her husband utter a note\, an
	d being greatly frightened at the unusual noise upon the door-step\, held 
	a hurried consultation with the charity-girl upon the best mode of proceed
	ing.\n\n\"Call through the key-hole\, ma'am\,\" suggested she\, which advi
	ce Mrs.\nStevens immediately followed\, and inquired\, \"Who's there?\"\n\
	n\"Open the door\, Jule\, don't keep me out here with your darned nonsense
	\; let me in quick.\"\n\n\"Yes\, let him in\,\" added Mr. Morton\; \"he's 
	brought a gentleman from Africa with him.\"\n\nMrs. Stevens did not exactl
	y catch the purport of the words uttered by Mr. Morton\; and\, therefore\,
	 when she opened the door\, and her husband\, with his well-blacked face\,
	 stalked into the entry\, she could not repress a scream of fright at the 
	hideous figure he presented.\n\n\"Hush\, hush\,\" he exclaimed\, \"don't a
	rouse the neighbours—it's me\; don't you know my voice.\"\n\nMrs. Steven
	s stared at him in a bewildered manner\, and after bidding Mr. Morton \"Go
	od night\,\" she closed and locked the door\, and followed her husband int
	o the back room. In a short time he recapitulated the events of the night 
	to his astonished and indignant spouse\, who greatly commiserated his misf
	ortunes. A bottle of sweet oil was brought into requisition\, and she made
	 a lengthened effort to remove the tar from her husband's face\, in which 
	she only partially succeeded\; and it was almost day when he crawled off t
	o bed\, with the skin half scraped off from his swollen face.\n\nCHAPTER X
	IX.\nThe Alarm.\n\nImmediately after the departure of Mr. Stevens\, Master
	 Kinch began to consider the propriety of closing the establishment for th
	e night. Sliding down from the counter\, where he had been seated\, reflec
	ting upon the strange conduct of his recent customer\, he said\, \"I feels
	 rather queer round about here\,\" laying his hand upon his stomach\; \"an
	d I'm inclined to think that some of them 'ere Jersey sausages and buckwhe
	at cakes that the old man has been stuffing himself with\, wouldn't go dow
	n slow. Rather shabby in him not to come back\, and let me go home\, and h
	ave a slap at the wittles. I expect nothing else\, but that he has eat so 
	much\, that he's fell asleep at the supper-table\, and won't wake up till 
	bedtime. He's always serving me that same trick.\"\n\nThe old man thus all
	uded to was no other than Master Kinch's father\, who had departed from th
	e shop two or three hours previously\, promising to return immediately aft
	er tea.\n\nThis promise appeared to have entirely faded from his recollect
	ion\, as he was at that moment\, as Kinch had supposed\, fast asleep\, and
	 totally oblivious of the fact that such a person as his hungry descendant
	 was in existence.\n\nHaving fully come to the conclusion to suspend opera
	tions for the evening\, Kinch made two or three excursions into the street
	\, returning each time laden with old hats\, coats\, and shoes. These he d
	eposited on the counter without order or arrangement\, muttering\, as he d
	id so\, that the old man could sort 'em out in the morning to suit himself
	. The things being all brought from the street\, he had only to close the 
	shutters\, which operation was soon effected\, and our hungry friend on hi
	s way home.\n\nThe next morning Mr. De Younge (for the father of Kinch rej
	oiced in that aristocratic cognomen) was early at his receptacle for old c
	lothes\, and it being market-day\, he anticipated doing a good business. T
	he old man leisurely took down the shutters\, assorted and hung out the ol
	d clothes\, and was busily engaged in sweeping out the store\, when his ey
	e fell upon the paper dropped by Mr. Stevens the evening previous.\n\n\"Wh
	at's dis 'ere\,\" said he\, stooping to pick it up\; \"bill or suthin' lik
	e it\, I s'pose. What a trial 'tis not to be able to read writin'\; don't 
	know whether 'tis worth keeping or not\; best save it though till dat ar b
	oy of mine comes\, he can read it—he's a scholar. Ah\, de children now-a
	-days has greater 'vantages than deir poor fathers had.\"\n\nWhilst he was
	 thus soliloquizing\, his attention was arrested by the noise of footsteps
	 in the other part of the shop\, and looking up\, he discerned the tall fo
	rm of Mr. Walters.\n\n\"Why\, bless me\,\" said the old man\, \"dis is an 
	early visit\; where you come from\, honey\, dis time o' day?\"\n\n\"Oh\, I
	 take a walk every morning\, to breathe a little of the fresh air\; it giv
	es one an appetite for breakfast\, you know. You'll let me take the libert
	y of sitting on your counter\, won't you?\" he continued\; \"I want to rea
	d a little article in a newspaper I have just purchased.\"\n\nAssent being
	 readily given\, Mr. Walters was soon perusing the journal with great atte
	ntion\; at last he tossed it from him in an impatient manner\, and exclaim
	ed\, \"Of all lying rascals\, I think the reporters for this paper are the
	 greatest. Now\, for instance\, three or four nights since\, a gang of vil
	lains assaulted one of my tenants—a coloured man—upon his own doorstep
	\, and nearly killed him\, and that\, too\, without the slightest provocat
	ion\; they then set fire to the house\, which was half consumed before it 
	could be extinguished\; and it is here stated that the coloured people wer
	e the aggressors\, and whilst they were engaged in the melee\, the house c
	aught fire accidentally.\" \"Yes\,\" rejoined Mr. De Younge\; \"things are
	 gitting mighty critical even in dese 'ere parts\; and I wouldn't live fur
	der down town if you was to give me a house rent-free. Why\, it's raly dan
	gerous to go home nights down dere.\"\n\n\"And there is no knowing how lon
	g we may be any better off up here\,\" continued Mr. Walters\; \"the autho
	rities don't seem to take the least notice of them\, and the rioters appea
	r to be having it all their own way.\"\n\nThey continued conversing upon t
	he topic for some time\, Mr. De Younge being meanwhile engaged in sponging
	 and cleaning some coats he had purchased the day before\; in so doing\, h
	e was obliged to remove the paper he had picked up from the floor\, and it
	 occurred to him to ask Mr. Walters to read it\; he therefore handed it to
	 him\, saying—\n\n\"Jist read dat\, honey\, won't you? I want to know if
	 it's worth savin'. I've burnt up two or three receipts in my life\, and h
	ad de bills to pay over\; and I'se got rale careful\, you know. 'Taint ple
	asant to pay money twice over for de same thing.\"\n\nMr. Walters took the
	 paper extended to him\, and\, after glancing over it\, remarked\, \"This 
	handwriting is very familiar to me\, very\; but whose it is\, I can't say\
	; it appears to be a list of addresses\, or something of that kind.\" And 
	he read over various names of streets\, and numbers of houses. \"Why\,\" h
	e exclaimed\, with a start of surprise\, \"here is my own house upon the l
	ist\, 257\, Easton-street\; then here is 22\, Christian-street\; here also
	 are numbers in Baker-street\, Bedford-street\, Sixth\, Seventh\, and Eigh
	th Streets\; in some of which houses I know coloured people live\, for one
	 or two of them are my own. This is a strange affair.\"\n\nAs he spoke\, h
	e turned over the paper\, and read on the other side\,—\"Places to be at
	tacked.\" \"Why\, this looks serious\,\" he continued\, with some exciteme
	nt of manner. \"'Places to be attacked\,'—don't that seem to you as if i
	t might be a list of places for these rioters to set upon? I really must l
	ook into this. Who could have left it here?\"\n\n\"I raly don't know\,\" r
	eplied the old man. \"Kinch told me suthin' last night about some gemman c
	omin' here and changing his clothes\; p'raps 'twas him. I'd like to know w
	ho 'twas myself. Well\, wait awhile\, my boy will come in directly\; maybe
	 he can explain it.\"\n\nHe had scarcely finished speaking\, when Master K
	inch made his appearance\, with his hat\, as usual\, placed upon nine hair
	s\, and his mouth smeared with the eggs and bacon with which he had been \
	"staying and comforting\" himself. He took off his hat on perceiving Mr. W
	alters\, and\, with great humility\, \"hoped that gentleman was well.\"\n\
	n\"Yes\, very well\, Kinch\,\" replied Mr. Walters. \"We were waiting for 
	you. Can you tell where this came from?\" he asked\, handing him the myste
	rious paper.\n\n\"Never seen it before\, that I know of\,\" replied Kinch\
	, after a short inspection.\n\n\"Well\, who was here last night?\" asked h
	is father\; \"you said you sold suthin'?\"\n\n\"So I did\,\" replied Kinch
	\; \"sold a whole suit\; and the gentleman who put it on said he was going
	 out for a lark. He was changing some papers from his pocket: perhaps he d
	ropped it. I'm to take this suit back to him to-day. Here is his card.\"\n
	\n\"By heavens!\" exclaimed Mr. Walters\, after looking at the card\, \"I 
	know the fellow\,—George Stevens\, 'Slippery George\,'—every one knows
	 him\, and can speak no good of him either. Now I recognize the handwritin
	g of the list\; I begin to suspect something wrong by seeing his name in c
	onnection with this.\"\n\nHereupon Kinch was subjected to a severe cross-e
	xamination\, which had the effect of deepening Mr. Walters's impression\, 
	that some plot was being concocted that would result to the detriment of t
	he coloured people\; for he was confident that no good could be indicated 
	by the mysterious conduct of Mr. Stevens.\n\nAfter some deliberation\, Kin
	ch received instructions to take home the clothes as directed\, and to hav
	e his eyes about him\; and if he saw or heard anything\, he was to report 
	it. In accordance with his instructions\, Master Kinch made several journe
	ys to Mr. Stevens's office\, but did not succeed in finding that gentleman
	 within\; the last trip he made there fatigued him to such a degree\, that
	 he determined to wait his arrival\, as he judged\, from the lateness of t
	he hour\, that\, if it was his intention to come at all that day\, he woul
	d soon be there.\n\n\"I'll sit down here\,\" said Kinch\, who espied an ol
	d box in the back part of the entry\, \"and give myself a little time to b
	low.\"\n\nHe had not sat long before he heard footsteps on the stairs\, an
	d presently the sound of voices became quite audible.\n\n\"That's him\,\" 
	ejaculated Kinch\, as Mr. Stevens was heard saying\, in an angry tone\,—
	\"Yes\; and a devil of a scrape I got into by your want of sobriety. Had y
	ou followed my directions\, and met me at Whitticar's\, instead of getting
	 drunk as a beast\, and being obliged to go home to bed\, it wouldn't have
	 happened.\"\n\n\"Well\, squire\,\" replied McCloskey\, for he was the per
	son addressed by Mr.\nStevens\, \"a man can't be expected always to keep s
	ober.\"\n\n\"He ought to when he has business before him\,\" rejoined Mr. 
	Stevens\, sharply\; \"how the devil am I to trust you to do anything of im
	portance\, when I can't depend on your keeping sober a day at a time? Come
	 up to this top landing\,\" continued he\, \"and listen to me\, if you thi
	nk you are sober enough to comprehend what I say to you.\"\n\nThey now app
	roached\, and stood within a few feet of the place where Kinch was sitting
	\, and Mr. Stevens said\, with a great deal of emphasis\, \"Now\, I want y
	ou to pay the strictest attention to what I say. I had a list of places ma
	de out for you last night\, but\, somehow or other\, I lost it. But that i
	s neither here nor there. This is what I want you to attend to particularl
	y. Don't attempt anything to-night\; you can't get a sufficient number of 
	the boys together\; but\, when you do go\, you are to take\, first\, Chris
	tian-street\, between Eleventh and Twelfth\,—there are several nigger fa
	milies living in that block. Smash in their windows\, break their furnitur
	e\, and\, if possible\, set one of the houses on fire\, and that will draw
	 attention to that locality whilst you are operating elsewhere. By that ti
	me\, the boys will be ripe for anything. Then you had better go to a house
	 in Easton-street\, corner of Shotwell: there is a rich nigger living ther
	e whose plunder is worth something. I owe him an old grudge\, and I want y
	ou to pay it off for me.\"\n\n\"You keep me pretty busy paying your debts.
	 What's the name of this rich nigger?\"\n\n\"Walters\,\" replied Mr. Steve
	ns\; \"everybody knows him. Now about that other affair.\" Here he whisper
	ed so low\, that Kinch could only learn they were planning an attack on th
	e house of some one\, but failed in discovering the name. McCloskey depart
	ed as soon as he had received full directions from Mr. Stevens\, and his r
	etreating steps might be still heard upon the stairs\, when Mr. Stevens un
	locked his office-door and entered.\n\nAfter giving him sufficient time to
	 get quietly seated\, Kinch followed\, and delivered the clothes left with
	 him the evening previous. He was very much struck with Mr. Stevens's alte
	red appearance\, and\, in fact\, would not have recognized him\, but for h
	is voice.\n\n\"You don't seem to be well?\" remarked Kinch\, inquiringly.\
	n\n\"No\, I'm not\,\" he replied\, gruffly\; \"I've caught cold.\" As Kinc
	h was leaving the office\, he called after him\, \"Did you find a paper in
	 your shop this morning?\"\n\n\"No\, sir\,\" replied Kinch\, \"I didn't\;\
	" but mentally he observed\, \"My daddy did though\;\" and\, fearful of so
	me other troublesome question\, he took leave immediately.\n\nFatigued and
	 out of breath\, Kinch arrived at the house of Mr. Walters\, where he cons
	idered it best to go and communicate what he had learned.\n\nMr. Walters w
	as at dinner when he received from the maid a summons to the parlour to se
	e a lad\, who said his business was a matter \"of life or death.\" He was 
	obliged to smile at the air of importance with which Kinch commenced the r
	elation of what he had overheard—but the smile gave place to a look of a
	nxiety and indignation long ere he had finished\, and at the conclusion of
	 the communication he was highly excited and alarmed.\n\n\"The infernal sc
	oundrel!\" exclaimed Mr. Walters. \"Are you sure it was my house?\"\n\n\"Y
	es\, sure\,\" was Kinch's reply. \"You are the only coloured person living
	 in the square—and he said plain enough for anybody to understand\, 'Eas
	ton-street\, corner of Shotwell.' I heard every word but what they said to
	wards the last in a whisper.\"\n\n\"You couldn't catch anything of it?\" a
	sked Mr. Walters.\n\n\"No\, I missed that\; they talked too low for me to 
	hear.\"\n\nAfter reflecting a few moments\, Mr. Walters said: \"Not a word
	 of this is to be lisped anywhere except with my permission\, and by my di
	rection. Have you had your dinner?\"\n\n\"No\, sir\,\" was the prompt repl
	y.\n\n\"I want to despatch a note to Mr. Ellis\, by you\, if it won't trou
	ble you too much. Can you oblige me?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\, sir\, by all means\
	,\" replied Kinch\, \"I'll go there with pleasure.\"\n\n\"Then whilst I'm 
	writing\,\" continued Mr. Walters\, \"you can be eating your dinner\, that
	 will economize time\, you know.\"\n\nKinch followed the servant who answe
	red the bell into the dining-room which Mr. Walters had just left. On bein
	g supplied with a knife and fork\, he helped himself bountifully to the ro
	ast duck\, then pouring out a glass of wine\, he drank with great enthusia
	sm\, to \"our honoured self\,\" which proceeding caused infinite amusement
	 to the two servants who were peeping at him through the dining-room door.
	 \"Der-licious\,\" exclaimed Kinch\, depositing his glass upon the table\;
	 \"guess I'll try another\;\" and suiting the action to the word\, he refi
	lled his glass\, and dispatched its contents in the wake of the other. Hav
	ing laboured upon the duck until his appetite was somewhat appeased\, he l
	eant back in his chair and suffered his plate to be changed for another\, 
	which being done\, he made an attack upon a peach pie\, and nearly demolis
	hed it outright.\n\nThis last performance brought his meal to a conclusion
	\, and with a look of weariness\, he remarked\, \"I don't see how it is—
	but as soon as I have eat for a little while my appetite is sure to leave 
	me—now I can't eat a bit more. But the worst thing is walking down to Mr
	. Ellis's. I don't feel a bit like it\, but I suppose I must\;\" and reluc
	tantly rising from the table\, he returned to the parlour\, where he found
	 Mr. Walters folding the note he had promised to deliver.\n\nAs soon as he
	 had despatched Kinch on his errand\, Mr. Walters put on his hat and walke
	d to the office of the mayor.\n\n\"Is his honour in?\" he asked of one of 
	the police\, who was lounging in the anteroom.\n\n\"Yes\, he is—what do 
	you want with him?\" asked the official\, in a rude tone.\n\n\"That\, sir\
	, is none of your business\,\" replied Mr. Walters\; \"if the mayor is in\
	, hand him this card\, and say I wish to see him.\"\n\nSomewhat awed by Mr
	. Walters's dignified and decided manner\, the man went quickly to deliver
	 his message\, and returned with an answer that his honour would be oblige
	d to Mr. Walters if he would step into his office.\n\nOn following the off
	icer\, he was ushered into a small room—the private office of the chief 
	magistrate of the city.\n\n\"Take a seat\, sir\,\" said the mayor\, polite
	ly\, \"it is some time since we have met. I think I had the pleasure of tr
	ansacting business with you quite frequently some years back if I am not m
	istaken.\"\n\n\"You are quite correct\,\" replied Mr. Walters\, \"and bein
	g so favourably impressed by your courtesy on the occasions to which you r
	efer\, I have ventured to intrude upon you with a matter of great importan
	ce\, not only to myself\, but I think I may say to the public generally. S
	ince this morning\, circumstances have come under my notice that leave no 
	doubt on my mind that a thoroughly-concerted plan is afoot for the destruc
	tion of the property of a large number of our coloured citizens—mine amo
	ngst the rest. You must be aware\,\" he continued\, \"that many very serio
	us disturbances have occurred lately in the lower part of the city.\"\n\n\
	"Yes\, I've heard something respecting it\,\" replied the mayor\, \"but I 
	believe they were nothing more than trifling combats between the negroes a
	nd the whites in that vicinity.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, sir! I assure you\,\" rej
	oined Mr. Walters\, \"they were and are anything but trifling. I regard th
	em\, however\, as only faint indications of what we may expect if the thin
	g is not promptly suppressed\; there is an organized gang of villains\, wh
	o are combined for the sole purpose of mobbing us coloured citizens\; and\
	, as we are inoffensive\, we certainly deserve protection\; and here\,\" c
	ontinued Mr. Walters\, \"is a copy of the list of places upon which it is 
	rumoured an attack is to be made.\"\n\n\"I really don't see how I'm to pre
	vent it\, Mr. Walters\; with the exception of your own residence\, all tha
	t are here enumerated are out of my jurisdiction. I can send two or three 
	police for your protection if you think it necessary. But I really can't s
	ee my way clear to do anything further.\"\n\n\"Two or three police!\" said
	 Mr. Walters\, with rising indignation at the apathy and indifference the 
	mayor exhibited\; \"they would scarcely be of any more use than as many wo
	men. If that is the extent of the aid you can afford me\, I must do what I
	 can to protect myself.\"\n\n\"I trust your fears lead you to exaggerate t
	he danger\,\" said the mayor\, as\nMr. Walters arose to depart\; \"perhaps
	 it is only rumour after all.\"\n\n\"I might have flattered myself with th
	e same idea\, did I not feel convinced by what has so recently occurred bu
	t a short distance from my own house\; at any rate\, if I am attacked\, th
	ey will find I am not unprepared. Good day\,\" and bowing courteously to t
	he mayor\, Mr. Walters departed.\n\nCHAPTER XX.\nThe Attack.\n\nMr. Walter
	s lost no time in sending messengers to the various parties threatened by 
	the mob\, warning them either to leave their houses or to make every exert
	ion for a vigorous defence. Few\, however\, adopted the latter extremity\;
	 the majority fled from their homes\, leaving what effects they could not 
	carry away at the mercy of the mob\, and sought an asylum in the houses of
	 such kindly-disposed whites as would give them shelter.\n\nAlthough the a
	uthorities of the district had received the most positive information of t
	he nefarious schemes of the rioters\, they had not made the slightest effo
	rts to protect the poor creatures threatened in their persons and property
	\, but let the tide of lawlessness flow on unchecked.\n\nThroughout the da
	y parties of coloured people might have been seen hurrying to the upper pa
	rt of the city: women with terror written on their faces\, some with babes
	 in their arms and children at their side\, hastening to some temporary pl
	ace of refuge\, in company with men who were bending beneath the weight of
	 household goods.\n\nMr. Walters had converted his house into a temporary 
	fortress: the shutters of the upper windows had been loop-holed\, double b
	ars had been placed across the doors and windows on the ground floor\, car
	pets had been taken up\, superfluous furniture removed\, and an air of tho
	rough preparation imparted. A few of Mr. Walters's male friends had volunt
	eered their aid in defence of his house\, and their services had been acce
	pted.\n\nMr. Ellis\, whose house was quite indefensible (it being situated
	 in a neighbourhood swarming with the class of which the mob was composed)
	\, had decided on bringing his family to the house of Mr. Walters\, and sh
	aring with him the fortunes of the night\, his wife and daughters having d
	eclared they would feel as safe there as elsewhere\; and\, accordingly\, a
	bout five in the afternoon\, Mrs. Ellis came up\, accompanied by Kinch and
	 the girls.\n\nCaddy and Kinch\, who brought up the rear\, seemed very sol
	icitous respecting the safety of a package that the latter bore in his arm
	s.\n\n\"What have you there?\" asked Mr. Walters\, with a smile\; \"it mus
	t be powder\, or some other explosive matter\, you take such wonderful pai
	ns for its preservation. Come\, Caddy\, tell us what it is\; is it powder?
	\"\n\n\"No\, Mr. Walters\, it isn't powder\,\" she replied\; \"it's nothin
	g that will blow the house up or burn it down.\"\n\n\"What is it\, then? Y
	ou tell us\, Kinch.\"\n\n\"Just do\, if you think best\,\" said Caddy\, gi
	ving him a threatening glance\; whereupon\, Master Kinch looked as much as
	 to say\, \"If you were to put me on the rack you couldn't get a word out 
	of me.\"\n\n\"I suppose I shall have to give you up\,\" said Mr. Walters a
	t last\; \"but don't stand here in the entry\; come up into the drawing-ro
	om.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis and Esther followed him upstairs\, and stood at the do
	or of the drawing-room surveying the preparations for defence that the app
	earance of the room so abundantly indicated. Guns were stacked in the corn
	er\, a number of pistols lay upon the mantelpiece\, and a pile of cartridg
	es was heaped up beside a small keg of powder that stood upon the table op
	posite the fire-place.\n\n\"Dear me!\" exclaimed Mrs. Ellis\, \"this looks
	 dreadful\; it almost frightens me out of my wits to see so many dangerous
	 weapons scattered about.\"\n\n\"And how does it affect our quiet Esther?\
	" asked Mr. Walters.\n\n\"It makes me wish I were a man\,\" she replied\, 
	with considerable vehemence of manner. All started at this language from o
	ne of her usually gentle demeanour.\n\n\"Why\, Esther\, how you talk\, gir
	l: what's come over you?\"\n\n\"Talk!\" replied she. \"I say nothing that 
	I do not feel. As we came through the streets to-day\, and I saw so many i
	noffensive creatures\, who\, like ourselves\, have never done these white 
	wretches the least injury\,—to see them and us driven from our homes by 
	a mob of wretches\, who can accuse us of nothing but being darker than the
	mselves\,—it takes all the woman out of my bosom\, and makes me feel lik
	e a——\" here Esther paused\, and bit her lip to prevent the utterance 
	of a fierce expression that hovered on the tip of her tongue.\n\nShe then 
	continued: \"One poor woman in particular I noticed: she had a babe in her
	 arms\, poor thing\, and was weeping bitterly because she knew of no place
	 to go to seek for shelter or protection. A couple of white men stood by j
	eering and taunting her. I felt as though I could have strangled them: had
	 I been a man\, I would have attacked them on the spot\, if I had been sur
	e they would have killed me the next moment.\"\n\n\"Hush! Esther\, hush! m
	y child\; you must not talk so\, it sounds unwomanly—unchristian. Why\, 
	I never heard you talk so before.\" Esther made no reply\, but stood resti
	ng her forehead upon the mantelpiece. Her face was flushed with excitement
	\, and her dark eyes glistened like polished jet.\n\nMr. Walters stood reg
	arding her for a time with evident admiration\, and then said\, \"You are 
	a brave one\, after my own heart.\" Esther hung down her head\, confused b
	y the ardent look he cast upon her\, as he continued\, \"You have taken me
	 by surprise\; but it's always the way with you quiet people\; events like
	 these bring you out—seem to change your very natures\, as it were. We m
	ust look out\,\" said he\, with a smile\, turning to one of the young men\
	, \"or Miss Ellis will excel us all in courage. I shall expect great thing
	s from her if we are attacked to-night.\"\n\n\"Don't make a jest of me\, M
	r. Walters\,\" said Esther\, and as she spoke her eyes moistened and her l
	ip quivered with vexation.\n\n\"No\, no\, my dear girl\, don't misundersta
	nd me\,\" replied he\, quickly\; \"nothing was farther from my thoughts. I
	 truly meant all that I said. I believe you to be a brave girl.\"\n\n\"If 
	you really think so\,\" rejoined Esther\, \"prove it by showing me how to 
	load these.\" As she spoke she took from the mantel one of the pistols tha
	t were lying there\, and turned it over to examine it.\n\n\"Oh! put that d
	own\, Esther\, put that down immediately\,\" almost screamed Mrs. Ellis\; 
	\"what with your speeches and your guns you'll quite set me crazy\; do tak
	e it from her\, Walters\; it will certainly go off.\"\n\n\"There's not the
	 least danger\, Ellen\,\" he replied\; \"there's nothing in it.\"\n\n\"Wel
	l\, I'm afraid of guns\, loaded or unloaded\; they are dangerous\, all of 
	them\, whether they have anything in them or not. Do you hear me\, Esther\
	; do put that down and come out of here.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, mother\,\" said 
	she\, \"do let me remain\; there\, I'll lay the pistols down and won't tou
	ch them again whilst you are in the room.\"\n\n\"You may safely leave her 
	in my hands\,\" interposed Mr. Walters. \"If she wants to learn\, let her\
	; it won't injure her in the least\, I'll take care of that.\" This assura
	nce somewhat quieted Mrs. Ellis\, who left the room and took up her quarte
	rs in another apartment.\n\n\"Now\, Mr. Walters\,\" said Esther\, taking o
	ff her bonnet\, I'm quite in earnest about learning to load these pistols\
	, and I wish you to instruct me. You may be hard pressed tonight\, and una
	ble to load for yourselves\, and in such an emergency I could perhaps be o
	f great use to you.\"\n\n\"But\, my child\,\" replied he\, \"to be of use 
	in the manner you propose\, you would be compelled to remain in quite an e
	xposed situation.\"\n\n\"I am aware of that\,\" calmly rejoined Esther. \"
	And still you are not afraid?\" he asked\, in surprise.\n\n\"Why should I 
	be\; I shall not be any more exposed than you or my father.\"\n\n\"That's 
	enough—I'll teach you. Look here\,\" said Mr. Walters\, \"observe how I 
	load this.\" Esther gave her undivided attention to the work before her\, 
	and when he had finished\, she took up another pistol and loaded it with a
	 precision and celerity that would have reflected honour on a more practis
	ed hand.\n\n\"Well done!—capital!\" exclaimed Mr. Walters\, as she laid 
	down the weapon. \"You'll do\, my girl\; as I said before\, you are one af
	ter my own heart. Now\, whilst you are loading the rest\, I will go downst
	airs\, where I have some little matters to attend to.\" On the stair-way h
	e was met by Kinch and Caddy\, who were tugging up a large kettle of water
	. \"Is it possible\, Caddy\,\" asked Mr. Walters\, \"that your propensity 
	to dabble in soap and water has overcome you even at this critical time? Y
	ou certainly can't be going to scrub?\"\n\n\"No\, I'm not going to scrub\,
	\" she replied\, \"nor do anything like it. We've got our plans\, haven't 
	we\, Kinch?\"\n\n\"Let's hear what your plans are. I'd like to be enlighte
	ned a little\, if convenient\,\" said Mr. Walters.\n\n\"Well\, it's not co
	nvenient\, Mr. Walters\, so you need not expect to hear a word about them.
	 You'd only laugh if we were to tell you\, so we're going to keep it to ou
	rselves\, ain't we\, Kinch?\"\n\nThe latter\, thus appealed to\, put on an
	 air of profound mystery\, and intimated that if they were permitted to pu
	rsue the even tenor of their way\, great results might be expected\; but i
	f they were balked in their designs\, he could not answer for the conseque
	nces.\n\n\"You and Esther have your plans\,\" resumed Caddy\, \"and we hav
	e ours. We don't believe in powder and shot\, and don't want anything to d
	o with guns\; for my part I'm afraid of them\, so please let us go by—do
	\, now\, that's a good soul!\"\n\n\"You seem to forget that I'm the comman
	der of this fortress\,\" said Mr. Walters\, \"and that I have a right to k
	now everything that transpires within it\; but I see you look obstinate\, 
	and as I haven't time to settle the matter now\, you may pass on. I wonder
	 what they can be about\,\" he remarked\, as they hurried on. \"I must ste
	al up by-and-by and see for myself.\"\n\nOne after another the various fri
	ends of Mr. Walters came in\, each bringing some vague report of the desig
	ns of the mob. They all described the excitement as growing more intense\;
	 that the houses of various prominent Abolitionists had been threatened\; 
	that an attempt had been made to fire one of the coloured churches\; and t
	hat\, notwithstanding the rioters made little scruple in declaring their i
	ntentions\, the authorities were not using the slightest effort to restrai
	n them\, or to protect the parties threatened. Day was fast waning\, and t
	he approaching night brought with it clouds and cold.\n\nWhilst they had b
	een engaged in their preparations for defence\, none had time to reflect u
	pon the danger of their situation\; but now that all was prepared\, and th
	ere was nothing to sustain the excitement of the last few hours\, a chill 
	crept over the circle who were gathered round the fire. There were no cand
	les burning\, and the uncertain glow from the grate gave a rather weird-li
	ke look to the group. The arms stacked in the corner of the room\, and the
	 occasional glitter of the pistol-barrels as the flames rose and fell\, ga
	ve the whole a peculiarly strange effect.\n\n\"We look belligerent enough\
	, I should think\,\" remarked Mr. Walters\, looking around him. \"I wish w
	e were well out of this: it's terrible to be driven to these extremities
	—but we are not the aggressors\, thank God! and the results\, be they wh
	at they may\, are not of our seeking. I have a right to defend my own: I h
	ave asked protection of the law\, and it is too weak\, or too indifferent\
	, to give it\; so I have no alternative but to protect myself. But who is 
	here? It has grown so dark in the room that I can scarcely distinguish any
	 one. Where are all the ladies?\" \"None are here except myself\,\" answer
	ed Esther\; \"all the rest are below stairs.\"\n\n\"And where are you? I h
	ear\, but can't see you\; give me your hand\,\" said he\, extending his ow
	n in the direction from which her voice proceeded. \"How cold your hand is
	\,\" he continued\; \"are you frightened?\"\n\n\"Frightened!\" she replied
	\; \"I never felt calmer in my life—put your finger on my pulse.\"\n\nMr
	. Walters did as he was desired\, and exclaimed\, \"Steady as a clock. I t
	rust nothing may occur before morning to cause it to beat more hurriedly.\
	"\n\n\"Let us put some wood on these coals\,\" suggested Mr. Ellis\; \"it 
	will make a slight blaze\, and give us a chance to see each other.\" As he
	 spoke he took up a few small fagots and cast them upon the fire.\n\nThe w
	ood snapped and crackled\, as the flames mounted the chimney and cast a ch
	eerful glow upon the surrounding objects: suddenly a thoroughly ignited pi
	ece flew off from the rest and fell on the table in the midst of the cartr
	idges. \"Run for your lives!\" shrieked one of the party. \"The powder! th
	e powder!\" Simultaneously they nearly all rushed to the door.\n\nMr. Walt
	ers stood as one petrified. Esther alone\, of the whole party\, retained h
	er presence of mind\; springing forward\, she grasped the blazing fragment
	 and dashed it back again into the grate. All this passed in a few seconds
	\, and in the end Esther was so overcome with excitement and terror\, that
	 she fainted outright. Hearing no report\, those who had fled cautiously r
	eturned\, and by their united efforts she was soon restored to consciousne
	ss.\n\n\"What a narrow escape!\" said she\, trembling\, and covering her f
	ace with her hands\; \"it makes me shudder to think of it.\"\n\n\"We owe o
	ur lives to you\, my brave girl\,\" said Mr. Walters\; \"your presence of 
	mind has quite put us all to the blush.\"\n\n\"Oh! move the powder some di
	stance off\, or the same thing may happen again. Please do move it\, Mr. W
	alters\; I shall have no peace whilst it is there.\"\n\nWhilst they were t
	hus engaged\, a loud commotion was heard below stairs\, and with one accor
	d all started in the direction from whence the noise proceeded.\n\n\"Bring
	 a light! bring a light!\" cried Mrs. Ellis\; \"something dreadful has hap
	pened.\" A light was soon procured\, and the cause of this second alarm fu
	lly ascertained.\n\nMaster Kinch\, in his anxiety to give himself as warli
	ke an appearance as possible\, had added to his accoutrements an old sword
	 that he had discovered in an out-of-the-way corner of the garret. Not bei
	ng accustomed to weapons of this nature\, he had been constantly getting i
	t between his legs\, and had already been precipitated by it down a flight
	 of steps\, to the imminent risk of his neck. Undaunted\, however\, by thi
	s mishap\, he had clung to it with wonderful tenacity\, until it had again
	 caused a disaster the noise of which had brought all parties into the roo
	m where it had occurred.\n\nThe light being brought\, Master Kinch crawled
	 out from under a table with his head and back covered with batter\, a pan
	 of which had been overturned upon him\, in consequence of his having been
	 tripped up by his sword and falling violently against the table on which 
	it stood.\n\n\"I said you had better take that skewer off\,\" exclaimed Ca
	ddy: \"It's a wonder it hasn't broke your neck before now\; but you are su
	ch a goose you would wear it\,\" said she\, surveying her aide-de-camp wit
	h derision\, as he vainly endeavoured to scrape the batter from his face.\
	n\n\"Please give me some water\,\" cried Kinch\, looking from one to the o
	ther of the laughing group: \"help a feller to get it off\, can't you—it
	's all in my eyes\, and the yeast is blinding me.\"\n\nThe only answer to 
	this appeal was an additional shout of laughter\, without the slightest ef
	fort for his relief. At last Caddy\, taking compassion upon his forlorn co
	ndition\, procured a basin of water\, and assisted him to wash from his wo
	olly pate what had been intended for the next day's meal. \"This is the fa
	rce after what was almost a tragedy\,\" said Mr. Walters\, as they ascende
	d the stairs again\; \"I wonder what we shall have next!\"\n\nThey all ret
	urned to their chairs by the drawing-room fire after this occurrence\, and
	 remained in comparative silence for some time\, until loud cries of \"Fir
	e! fire!\" startled them from their seats.\n\n\"The whole of the lower par
	t of the city appears to be in a blaze\,\" exclaimed one of the party who 
	had hastened to the window\; \"look at the flames—they are ascending fro
	m several places. They are at their work\; we may expect them here soon.\"
	\n\n\"Well\, they'll find us prepared when they do come\,\" rejoined Mr. W
	alters.\n\n\"What do you propose?\" asked Mr. Ellis. \"Are we to fire on t
	hem at once\, or wait for their attack?\"\n\n\"Wait for their attack\, by 
	all means\,\" said he\, in reply\;—\"if they throw stones\, you'll find 
	plenty in that room with which to return the compliment\; if they resort t
	o fire-arms\, then we will do the same\; I want to be strictly on the defe
	nsive—but at the same time we must defend ourselves fully and energetica
	lly.\"\n\nIn about an hour after this conversation a dull roar was heard i
	n the distance\, which grew louder and nearer every moment.\n\n\"Hist!\" s
	aid Esther\; \"do you hear that noise? Listen! isn't that the mob coming?\
	"\n\nMr. Walters opened the shutter\, and then the sound became more disti
	nct. On they came\, nearer and nearer\, until the noise of their voices be
	came almost deafening.\n\nThere was something awful in the appearance of t
	he motley crowd that\, like a torrent\, foamed and surged through the stre
	ets. Some were bearing large pine torches that filled the air with thick s
	moke and partially lighted up the surrounding gloom. Most of them were arm
	ed with clubs\, and a few with guns and pistols.\n\nAs they approached the
	 house\, there seemed to be a sort of consultation between the ringleaders
	\, for soon after every light was extinguished\, and the deafening yells o
	f \"Kill the niggers!\" \"Down with the Abolitionists!\" were almost entir
	ely stilled.\n\n\"I wonder what that means\,\" said Mr. Walters\, who had 
	closed the shutter\, and was surveying\, through an aperture that had been
	 cut\, the turbulent mass below. \"Look out for something soon.\"\n\nHe ha
	d scarcely finished speaking\, when a voice in the street cried\, \"One—
	two—three!\" and immediately there followed a volley of missiles\, crush
	ing in the windows of the chamber above\, and rattling upon the shutters o
	f the room in which the party of defenders were gathered. A yell then went
	 up from the mob\, followed by another shower of stones.\n\n\"It is now ou
	r turn\,\" said Mr. Walters\, coolly. \"Four of you place yourselves at th
	e windows of the adjoining room\; the rest remain here. When you see a bri
	ght light reflected on the crowd below\, throw open the shutters\, and hur
	l down stones as long as the light is shining. Now\, take your places\, an
	d as soon as you are prepared stamp upon the floor.\"\n\nEach of the men n
	ow armed themselves with two or more of the largest stones they could find
	\, from the heap that had been provided for the occasion\; and in a few se
	conds a loud stamping upon the floor informed Mr. Walters that all was rea
	dy. He now opened the aperture in the shutter\, and placed therein a power
	ful reflecting light which brought the shouting crowd below clearly into v
	iew\, and in an instant a shower of heavy stones came crashing down upon t
	heir upturned faces.\n\nYells of rage and agony ascended from the throng\,
	 who\, not seeing any previous signs of life in the house\, had no anticip
	ation of so prompt and severe a response to their attack. For a time they 
	swayed to and fro\, bewildered by the intense light and crushing shower of
	 stones that had so suddenly fallen upon them. Those in the rear\, however
	\, pressing forward\, did not permit the most exposed to retire out of rea
	ch of missiles from the house\; on perceiving which\, Mr. Walters again tu
	rned the light upon them\, and immediately another stony shower came rattl
	ing down\, which caused a precipitate retreat.\n\n\"The house is full of n
	iggers!—the house is full of niggers!\" cried several voices—\"Shoot t
	hem! kill them!\" and immediately several shots were fired at the window b
	y the mob below.\n\n\"Don't fire yet\,\" said Mr. Walters to one of the yo
	ung men who had his hand upon a gun. \"Stop awhile. When we do fire\, let 
	it be to some purpose—let us make sure that some one is hit.\"\n\nWhilst
	 they were talking\, two or three bullets pierced the shutters\, and flatt
	ened themselves upon the ceiling above.\n\n\"Those are rifle bullets\,\" r
	emarked one of the young men—\"do let us fire.\"\n\n\"It is too great a 
	risk to approach the windows at present\; keep quiet for a little while\; 
	and\, when the light is shown again\, fire. But\, hark!\" continued he\, \
	"they are trying to burst open the door. We can't reach them there without
	 exposing ourselves\, and if they should get into the entry it would be ha
	rd work to dislodge them.\"\n\n\"Let us give them a round\; probably it wi
	ll disperse those farthest off—and those at the door will follow\,\" sug
	gested one of the young men.\n\n\"We'll try it\, at any rate\,\" replied W
	alters. \"Take your places\, don't fire until I show the light—then pick
	 your man\, and let him have it. There is no use to fire\, you know\, unle
	ss you hit somebody. Are you ready?\" he asked.\n\n\"Yes\,\" was the promp
	t reply.\n\n\"Then here goes\,\" said he\, turning the light upon the crow
	d below—who\, having some experience in what would follow\, did their be
	st to get out of reach\; but they were too late—for the appearance of th
	e light was followed by the instantaneous report of several guns which did
	 fearful execution amidst the throng of ruffians. Two or three fell on the
	 spot\, and were carried off by their comrades with fearful execrations.\n
	\nThe firing now became frequent on both sides\, and Esther's services cam
	e into constant requisition. It was in vain that her father endeavoured to
	 persuade her to leave the room\; notwithstanding the shutters had been th
	rown open to facilitate operations from within and the exposure thereby gr
	eatly increased\, she resolutely refused to retire\, and continued fearles
	sly to load the guns and hand them to the men.\n\n\"They've got axes at wo
	rk upon the door\, if they are not dislodged\, they'll cut their way in\,\
	" exclaimed one of the young men—\"the stones are exhausted\, and I don'
	t know what we shall do.\"\n\nJust then the splash of water was heard\, fo
	llowed by shrieks of agony.\n\n\"Oh\, God! I'm scalded! I'm scalded!\" cri
	ed one of the men upon the steps.\n\"Take me away! take me away!\"\n\nIn t
	he midst of his cries another volume of scalding water came pouring down u
	pon the group at the door\, which was followed by a rush from the premises
	.\n\n\"What is that—who could have done that—where has that water come
	 from?\" asked Mr. Walters\, as he saw the seething shower pass the window
	\, and fall upon the heads below. \"I must go and see.\"\n\nHe ran upstair
	s\, and found Kinch and Caddy busy putting on more water\, they having exh
	austed one kettle-full—into which they had put two or three pounds of ca
	yenne pepper—on the heads of the crowd below.\n\n\"We gave 'em a settler
	\, didn't we\, Mr. Walters?\" asked Caddy\, as he entered the room. \"It t
	akes us\; we fight with hot water. This\,\" said she\, holding up a dipper
	\, \"is my gun. I guess we made 'em squeal.\"\n\n\"You've done well\, Cadd
	y\,\" replied he—\"first-rate\, my girl. I believe you've driven them of
	f entirely\,\" he continued\, peeping out of the window. \"They are going 
	off\, at any rate\,\" said he\, drawing in his head\; \"whether they will 
	return or not is more than I can say. Keep plenty of hot water\, ready\, b
	ut don't expose yourselves\, children. Weren't you afraid to go to the win
	dow?\" he asked.\n\n\"We didn't go near it. Look at this\,\" replied Caddy
	\, fitting a broom handle into the end of a very large tin dipper. \"Kinch
	 cut this to fit\; so we have nothing to do but to stand back here\, dip u
	p the water\, and let them have it\; the length of the handle keeps us fro
	m being seen from the street. That was Kinch's plan.\"\n\n\"And a capital 
	one it was too. Your head\, Kinch\, evidently has no batter within\, if it
	 has without\; there is a great deal in that. Keep a bright look out\,\" c
	ontinued Mr. Walters\; \"I'm going downstairs. If they come again\, let th
	em have plenty of your warm pepper-sauce.\"\n\nOn returning to the drawing
	-room\, Mr. Walters found Mr. Dennis\, one of the company\, preparing to g
	o out. \"I'm about to avail myself of the advantage afforded by my fair co
	mplexion\, and play the spy\,\" said he. \"They can't discern at night wha
	t I am\, and I may be able to learn some of their plans.\"\n\n\"A most exc
	ellent idea\,\" said Mr. Walters\; \"but pray be careful. You may meet som
	e one who will recognise you.\"\n\n\"Never fear\,\" replied Mr. Dennis. \"
	I'll keep a bright look out for that.\" And\, drawing his cap far down ove
	r his eyes\, to screen his face as much as possible\, he sallied out into 
	the street.\n\nHe had not been absent more than a quarter of an hour\, whe
	n he returned limping into the house. \"Have they attacked you—are you h
	urt?\" asked the anxious group by which he was surrounded.\n\n\"I'm hurt-\
	, but not by them. I got on very well\, and gleaned a great deal of inform
	ation\, when I heard a sudden exclamation\, and\, on looking round\, I fou
	nd myself recognized by a white man of my acquaintance. I ran immediately\
	; and whether I was pursued or not\, I'm unable to say. I had almost reach
	ed here\, when my foot caught in a grating and gave my ancle such a wrench
	 that I'm unable to stand.\" As he spoke\, his face grew pale from the suf
	fering the limb was occasioning. \"I'm sorry\, very sorry\,\" he continued
	\, limping to the sofa\; \"I was going out again immediately. They intend 
	making an attack on Mr. Garie's house: I didn't hear his name mentioned\, 
	but I heard one of the men\, who appeared to be a ringleader\, say\, 'We'r
	e going up to Winter-street\, to give a coat of tar and feathers to a whit
	e man\, who is married to a nigger woman.' They can allude to none but him
	. How annoying that this accident should have happened just now\, of all t
	imes. They ought to be warned.\"\n\n\"Oh\, poor Emily!\" cried Esther\, bu
	rsting into tears\; \"it will kill her\, I know it will\; she is so ill. S
	ome one must go and warn them. Let me try\; the mob\, even if I met them\,
	 surely would not assault a woman.\"\n\n\"You mustn't think of such a thin
	g\, Esther\,\" exclaimed Mr. Walters\; \"the idea isn't to be entertained 
	for a moment. You don't know what ruthless wretches they are. Your colour 
	discovered you would find your sex but a trifling protection. I'd go\, but
	 it would be certain death to me: my black face would quickly obtain for m
	e a passport to another world if I were discovered in the street just now.
	\"\n\n\"I'll go\,\" calmly spoke Mr. Ellis. \"I can't rest here and think 
	of what they are exposed to. By skulking through bye-streets and keeping u
	nder the shadows of houses I may escape observation—at any rate\, I must
	 run the risk.\" And he began to button up his coat. \"Don't let your moth
	er know I'm gone\; stick by her\, my girl\,\" said he\, kissing Esther\; \
	"trust in God\,—He'll protect me.\"\n\nEsther hung sobbing on her father
	's neck. \"Oh\, father\, father\,\" said she\,\n\"I couldn't bear to see y
	ou go for any one but Emily and the children.\"\n\n\"I know it\, dear\,\" 
	he replied\; \"it's my duty. Garie would do the same for me\, I know\, eve
	n at greater risk. Good-bye! good-bye!\" And\, disengaging himself from th
	e weeping girl\, he started on his errand of mercy.\n\nWalking swiftly for
	wards\, he passed over more than two-thirds of the way without the slighte
	st interruption\, the streets through which he passed being almost entirel
	y deserted. He had arrived within a couple of squares of the Garies\, when
	 suddenly\, on turning a corner\, he found himself in the midst of a gang 
	of ruffians.\n\n\"Here's a nigger! here's a nigger!\" shouted two or three
	 of them\, almost simultaneously\, making at the same time a rush at Mr. E
	llis\, who turned and ran\, followed by the whole gang. Fear lent him wing
	s\, and he fast outstripped his pursuers\, and would have entirely escaped
	\, had he not turned into a street which unfortunately was closed at the o
	ther end. This he did not discover until it was too late to retrace his st
	eps\, his pursuers having already entered the street.\n\nLooking for some 
	retreat\, he perceived he was standing near an unfinished building. Tearin
	g off the boards that were nailed across the window\, he vaulted into the 
	room\, knocking off his hat\, which fell upon the pavement behind him. Sca
	rcely had he groped his way to the staircase of the dwelling when he heard
	 the footsteps of his pursuers.\n\n\"He can't have got through\,\" exclaim
	ed one of them\, \"the street is closed up at the end\; he must be up here
	 somewhere.\"\n\nLighting one of their torches\, they began to look around
	 them\, and soon discovered the hat lying beneath the window.\n\n\"He's in
	 here\, boys\; we've tree'd the 'coon\,\" laughingly exclaimed one of the 
	ruffians. \"Let's after him.\"\n\nTearing off the remainder of the boards\
	, one or two entered\, opened the door from the inside\, and gave admissio
	n to the rest.\n\nMr. Ellis mounted to the second story\, followed by his 
	pursuers\; on he went\, until he reached the attic\, from which a ladder l
	ed to the roof. Ascending this\, he drew it up after him\, and found himse
	lf on the roof of a house that was entirely isolated.\n\nThe whole extent 
	of the danger flashed upon him at once. Here he was completely hemmed in\,
	 without the smallest chance for escape. He approached the edge and looked
	 over\, but could discover nothing near enough to reach by a leap.\n\n\"I 
	must sell my life dearly\,\" he said. \"God be my helper now—He is all I
	 have to rely upon.\" And as he spoke\, the great drops of sweat fell from
	 his forehead. Espying a sheet of lead upon the roof\, he rolled it into a
	 club of tolerable thickness\, and waited the approach of his pursuers.\n\
	n\"He's gone on the roof\,\" he heard one of them exclaim\, \"and pulled t
	he ladder up after him.\" Just then\, a head emerged from the trap-door\, 
	the owner of which\, perceiving Mr. Ellis\, set up a shout of triumph.\n\n
	\"We've got him! we've got him!—here he is!\" which cries were answered 
	by the exultant voices of his comrades below.\n\nAn attempt was now made b
	y one of them to gain the roof\; but he immediately received a blow from M
	r. Ellis that knocked him senseless into the arms of his companions. Anoth
	er attempted the same feat\, and met a similar fate.\n\nThis caused a parl
	ey as to the best mode of proceeding\, which resulted in the simultaneous 
	appearance of three of the rioters at the opening. Nothing daunted\, Mr. E
	llis attacked them with such fierceness and energy that they were forced t
	o descend\, muttering the direst curses. In a few moments another head app
	eared\, at which Mr. Ellis aimed a blow of great force\; and the club desc
	ended upon a hat placed upon a stick. Not meeting the resistance expected\
	, it flew from his hand\, and he was thrown forward\, nearly falling down 
	the doorway.\n\nWith a shout of triumph\, they seized his arm\, and held h
	im firmly\, until one or two of them mounted the roof.\n\n\"Throw him over
	! throw him over!\" exclaimed some of the fiercest of the crowd. One or tw
	o of the more merciful endeavoured to interfere against killing him outrig
	ht\; but the frenzy of the majority triumphed\, and they determined to cas
	t him into the street below.\n\nMr. Ellis clung to the chimney\, shrieking
	\,—\"Save me! save me!—Help! help! Will no one save me!\" His cries we
	re unheeded by the ruffians\, and the people at the surrounding windows we
	re unable to afford him any assistance\, even if they were disposed to do 
	so.\n\nDespite his cries and resistance\, they forced him to the edge of t
	he roof\; he clinging to them the while\, and shrieking in agonized terror
	. Forcing off his hold\, they thrust him forward and got him partially ove
	r the edge\, where he clung calling frantically for aid. One of the villai
	ns\, to make him loose his hold\, struck on his fingers with the handle of
	 a hatchet found on the roof\; not succeeding in breaking his hold by thes
	e means\, with\, an oath he struck with the blade\, severing two of the fi
	ngers from one hand and deeply mangling the other.\n\nWith a yell of agony
	\, Mr. Ellis let go his hold\, and fell upon a pile of rubbish below\, whi
	lst a cry of triumphant malignity went up from the crowd on the roof.\n\nA
	 gentleman and some of his friends kindly carried the insensible man into 
	his house. \"Poor fellow!\" said he\, \"he is killed\, I believe. What a g
	ang of wretches. These things are dreadful\; that such a thing can be perm
	itted in a Christian city is perfectly appalling.\" The half-dressed famil
	y gathered around the mangled form of Mr. Ellis\, and gave vent to loud ex
	pressions of sympathy. A doctor was quickly sent for\, who stanched the bl
	ood that was flowing from his hands and head.\n\n\"I don't think he can li
	ve\,\" said he\, \"the fall was too great. As far as I can judge\, his leg
	s and two of his ribs are broken. The best thing we can do\, is to get him
	 conveyed to the hospital\; look in his pockets\, perhaps we can find out 
	who he is.\"\n\nThere was nothing found\, however\, that afforded the leas
	t clue to his name and residence\; and he was\, therefore\, as soon as per
	sons could be procured to assist\, borne to the hospital\, where his wound
	s were dressed\, and the broken limbs set.\n\nCHAPTER XXI.\nMore Horrors.\
	n\nUnaware of the impending danger\, Mr. Garie sat watching by the bedside
	 of his wife. She had been quite ill\; but on the evening of which we writ
	e\, although nervous and wakeful\, was much better. The bleak winds of the
	 fast approaching winter dealt unkindly with her delicate frame\, accustom
	ed as she was to the soft breezes of her Southern home.\n\nMr. Garie had b
	een sitting up looking at the fires in the lower part of the city. Not hav
	ing been out all that day or the one previous\, he knew nothing of the fea
	rful state into which matters had fallen.\n\n\"Those lights are dying away
	\, my dear\,\" said he to his wife\; \"there must have been quite an exten
	sive conflagration.\" Taking out his watch\, he continued\, \"almost two o
	'clock\; why\, how late I've been sitting up. I really don't know whether 
	it's worth while to go to bed or not\, I should be obliged to get up again
	 at five o'clock\; I go to New York to-morrow\, or rather to-day\; there a
	re some matters connected with Uncle John's will that require my personal 
	attention. Dear old man\, how suddenly he died.\"\n\n\"I wish\, dear\, you
	 could put off your journey until I am better\,\" said Mrs.\nGarie\, faint
	ly\; \"I do hate you to go just now.\"\n\n\"I would if I could\, Emily\; b
	ut it is impossible. I shall be back to-morrow\, or the next day\, at fart
	hest. Whilst I'm there\, I'll——\"\n\n\"Hush!\" interrupted Mrs. Garie\
	, \"stop a moment. Don't you hear a noise like the shouting of a great man
	y people.\" \"Oh\, it's only the firemen\,\" replied he\; \"as I was about
	 to observe—\"\n\n\"Hush!\" cried she again. \"Listen now\, that don't s
	ound like the firemen in the least.\" Mr. Garie paused as the sound of a n
	umber of voices became more distinct.\n\nWrapping his dressing-gown more c
	losely about him\, he walked into the front room\, which overlooked the st
	reet. Opening the window\, he saw a number of men—some bearing torches
	—coming rapidly in the direction of his dwelling. \"I wonder what all th
	is is for\; what can it mean\,\" he exclaimed.\n\nThey had now approached 
	sufficiently near for him to understand their cries. \"Down with the Aboli
	tionist—down with the Amalgamationist! give them tar and feathers!\"\n\n
	\"It's a mob—and that word Amalgamationist—can it be pointed at me? It
	 hardly seems possible\; and yet I have a fear that there is something wro
	ng.\"\n\n\"What is it\, Garie? What is the matter?\" asked his wife\, who\
	, with a shawl hastily thrown across her shoulders\, was standing pale and
	 trembling by the window.\n\n\"Go in\, Emily\, my dear\, for Heaven's sake
	\; you'll get your death of cold in this bleak night air—go in\; as soon
	 as I discover the occasion of the disturbance\, I'll come and tell you. P
	ray go in.\" Mrs. Garie retired a few feet from the window\, and stood lis
	tening to the shouts in the street.\n\nThe rioters\, led on evidently by s
	ome one who knew what he was about\, pressed forward to Mr. Garie's house\
	; and soon the garden in front was filled with the shouting crowd.\n\n\"Wh
	at do you all want—why are you on my premises\, creating this disturbanc
	e?\" cried Mr. Garie.\n\n\"Come down and you'll soon find out. You white l
	ivered Abolitionist\, come out\, damn you! we are going to give you a coat
	 of tar and feathers\, and your black wench nine-and-thirty. Yes\, come do
	wn—come down!\" shouted several\, \"or we will come up after you.\"\n\n\
	"I warn you\,\" replied Mr. Garie\, \"against any attempt at violence upon
	 my person\, family\, or property. I forbid you to advance another foot up
	on the premises. If any man of you enters my house\, I'll shoot him down a
	s quick as I would a mad dog.\"\n\n\"Shut up your gap\; none of your cusse
	d speeches\,\" said a voice in the crowd\; \"if you don't come down and gi
	ve yourself up\, we'll come in and take you—that's the talk\, ain't it\,
	 boys?\" A general shout of approval answered this speech\, and several st
	ones were thrown at Mr. Garie\, one of which struck him on the breast.\n\n
	Seeing the utter futility of attempting to parley with the infuriated wret
	ches below\, he ran into the room\, exclaiming\, \"Put on some clothes\, E
	mily! shoes first—quick—quick\, wife!—your life depends upon it. I'l
	l bring down the children and wake the servants. We must escape from the h
	ouse—we are attacked by a mob of demons. Hurry\, Emily! do\, for God sak
	e!\"\n\nMr. Garie aroused the sleeping children\, and threw some clothes u
	pon them\, over which he wrapped shawls or blankets\, or whatever came to 
	hand. Rushing into the next room\, he snatched a pair of loaded pistols fr
	om the drawer of his dressing-stand\, and then hurried his terrified wife 
	and children down the stairs.\n\n\"This way\, dear—this way!\" he cried\
	, leading on toward the back door\; \"out that way through the gate with t
	he children\, and into some of the neighbour's houses. I'll stand here to 
	keep the way.\"\n\n\"No\, no\, Garie\,\" she replied\, frantically\; \"I w
	on't go without you.\"\n\n\"You must!\" he cried\, stamping his foot impat
	iently\; \"this is no time to parley—go\, or we shall all be murdered. L
	isten\, they've broken in the door. Quick—quick! go on\;\" and as he spo
	ke\, he pressed her and the children out of the door\, and closed it behin
	d them.\n\nMrs. Garie ran down the garden\, followed by the children\; to 
	her horror\, she found the gate locked\, and the key nowhere to be found.\
	n\n\"What shall we do?\" she cried. \"Oh\, we shall all be killed!\" and h
	er limbs trembled beneath her with cold and terror. \"Let us hide in here\
	, mother\,\" suggested Clarence\, running toward the wood-house\; \"we'll 
	be safe in there.\" Seeing that nothing better could be done\, Mrs. Garie 
	availed herself of the suggestion\; and when she was fairly inside the pla
	ce\, fell fainting upon the ground.\n\nAs she escaped through the back doo
	r\, the mob broke in at the front\, and were confronting Mr. Garie\, as he
	 stood with his pistol pointed at them\, prepared to fire.\n\n\"Come anoth
	er step forward and I fire!\" exclaimed he\, resolutely\; but those in the
	 rear urged the advance of those in front\, who approached cautiously near
	er and nearer their victim. Fearful of opening the door behind him\, lest 
	he should show the way taken by his retreating wife\, he stood uncertain h
	ow to act\; a severe blow from a stone\, however\, made him lose all refle
	ction\, and he immediately fired. A loud shriek followed the report of his
	 pistol\, and a shower of stones was immediately hurled upon him.\n\nHe qu
	ickly fired again\, and was endeavouring to open the door to effect his es
	cape\, when a pistol was discharged close to his head and he fell forward 
	on the entry floor lifeless.\n\nAll this transpired in a few moments\, and
	 in the semi-darkness of the entry. Rushing forward over his lifeless form
	\, the villains hastened upstairs in search of Mrs. Garie. They ran shouti
	ng through the house\, stealing everything valuable that they could lay th
	eir hands upon\, and wantonly destroying the furniture\; they would have f
	ired the house\, but were prevented by McCloskey\, who acted as leader of 
	the gang.\n\nFor two long hours they ransacked the house\, breaking all th
	ey could not carry off\, drinking the wine in Mr. Garie's cellar\, and sho
	uting and screaming like so many fiends.\n\nMrs. Garie and the children la
	y crouching with terror in the wood-house\, listening to the ruffians as t
	hey went through the yard cursing her and her husband and uttering the dir
	est threats of what they would do should she fall into their hands. Once s
	he almost fainted on hearing one of them propose opening the wood-house\, 
	to see if there was anything of value in it—but breathed again when they
	 abandoned it as not worth their attention.\n\nThe children crouched down 
	beside her—scarcely daring to whisper\, lest they should attract the att
	ention of their persecutors. Shivering with cold they drew closer around t
	hem the blanket with which they had been providentially provided.\n\n\"Bro
	ther\, my feet are so cold\,\" sobbed little Em. \"I can't feel my toes.\n
	Oh\, I'm so cold!\"\n\n\"Put your feet closer to me\, sissy\,\" answered h
	er brother\, baring himself to enwrap her more thoroughly\; \"put my stock
	ings on over yours\;\" and\, as well as they were able in the dark\, he dr
	ew his stockings on over her benumbed feet. \"There\, sis\, that's better\
	,\" he whispered\, with an attempt at cheerfulness\, \"now you'll be warme
	r.\"\n\nJust then Clarence heard a groan from his mother\, so loud indeed 
	that it would have been heard without but for the noise and excitement aro
	und the house—and feeling for her in the dark\, he asked\, \"Mother\, ar
	e you worse? are you sick?\"\n\nA groan was her only answer.\n\n\"Mother\,
	 mother\,\" he whispered\, \"do speak\, please do!\" and he endeavoured to
	 put his arm around her.\n\n\"Don't\, dear—don't\,\" said she\, faintly\
	, \"just take care of your sister—you can't do me any good—don't speak
	\, dear\, the men will hear you.\"\n\nReluctantly the frightened child tur
	ned his attention again to his little sister\; ever and anon suppressed gr
	oans from his mother would reach his ears—at last he heard a groan even 
	fierce in its intensity\; and then the sounds grew fainter and fainter unt
	il they entirely ceased. The night to the poor shivering creatures in thei
	r hiding place seemed interminably long\, and the sound of voices in the h
	ouse had not long ceased when the faint light of day pierced their cheerle
	ss shelter.\n\nHearing the voices of some neighbours in the yard\, Clarenc
	e hastened out\, and seizing one of the ladies by the dress\, cried implor
	ingly\, \"Do come to my mother\, she's sick.\"\n\n\"Why\, where did you co
	me from\, chil?\" said the lady\, with a start of astonishment. \"Where ha
	ve you been?\"\n\n\"In there\,\" he answered\, pointing to the wood-house.
	 \"Mother and sister are in there.\"\n\nThe lady\, accompanied by one or t
	wo others\, hastened to the wood-house.\n\n\"Where is she?\" asked the for
	emost\, for in the gloom of the place she could not perceive anything.\n\n
	\"Here\,\" replied Clarence\, \"she's lying here.\" On opening a small win
	dow\, they saw Mrs. Garie lying in a corner stretched upon the boards\, he
	r head supported by some blocks. \"She's asleep\,\" said Clarence. \"Mothe
	r—mother\,\" but there came no answer. \"MOTHER\,\" said he\, still loud
	er\, but yet there was no response.\n\nStepping forward\, one of the femal
	es opened the shawl\, which was held firmly in the clenched hands of Mrs. 
	Garie—and there in her lap partially covered by her scanty nightdress\, 
	was discovered a new-born babe\, who with its mother had journeyed in the 
	darkness\, cold\, and night\, to the better land\, that they might pour ou
	t their woes upon the bosom of their Creator.\n\nThe women gazed in mournf
	ul silence on the touching scene before them. Clarence was on his knees\, 
	regarding with fear and wonder the unnatural stillness of his mother—the
	 child had never before looked on death\, and could not recognize its pres
	ence. Laying his hand on her cold cheek\, he cried\, with faltering voice\
	, \"Mother\, can't you speak?\" but there was no answering light in the fi
	xed stare of those glassy eyes\, and the lips of the dead could not move. 
	\"Why don't she speak?\" he asked.\n\n\"She can't\, my dear\; you must com
	e away and leave her. She's better off\, my darling—she's dead.\"\n\nThe
	n there was a cry of grief sprung up from the heart of that orphan boy\, t
	hat rang in those women's ears for long years after\; it was the first out
	break of a loving childish heart pierced with life's bitterest grief—a m
	other's loss.\n\nThe two children were kindly taken into the house of some
	 benevolent neighbour\, as the servants had all fled none knew whither. Li
	ttle Em was in a profound stupor—the result of cold and terror\, and it 
	was found necessary to place her under the care of a physician.\n\nAfter t
	hey had all gone\, an inquest was held by the coroner\, and a very unsatis
	factory and untruthful verdict pronounced—one that did not at all coinci
	de with the circumstances of the case\, but such a one as might have been 
	expected where there was a great desire to screen the affair from public s
	crutiny.\n\nCHAPTER XXII.\nAn Anxious Day.\n\nEsther Ellis\, devoured with
	 anxiety respecting the safety of her father and the Garies\, paced with i
	mpatient step up and down the drawing-room. Opening the window\, she looke
	d to see if she could discover any signs of day. \"It's pitchy dark\,\" sh
	e exclaimed\, \"and yet almost five o'clock. Father has run a fearful risk
	. I hope nothing has happened to him.\"\n\n\"I trust not. I think he's saf
	e enough somewhere\,\" said Mr. Walters. \"He's no doubt been very cautiou
	s\, and avoided meeting any one—don't worry yourself\, my child\, 'tis m
	ost likely he remained with them wherever they went\; probably they are at
	 the house of some of their neighbours.\"\n\n\"I can't help feeling dreadf
	ully oppressed and anxious\,\" continued she. \"I wish he would come.\"\n\
	nWhilst she was speaking\, her mother entered the room. \"Any news of your
	 father?\" she asked\, in a tone of anxiety.\n\nEsther endeavoured to conc
	eal her own apprehensions\, and rejoined\, in as cheerful tone as she coul
	d assume—\"Not yet\, mother—it's too dark for us to expect him yet—h
	e'll remain most likely until daylight.\"\n\n\"He shouldn't have gone had 
	I been here—he's no business to expose himself in this way.\"\n\n\"But\,
	 mother\,\" interrupted Esther\, \"only think of it—the safety of Emily 
	and the children were depending on it—we mustn't be selfish.\"\n\n\"I kn
	ow we oughtn't to be\, my child\,\" rejoined her mother\, \"but it's natur
	al to the best of us—sometimes we can't help it.\" Five—six—seven o'
	clock came and passed\, and still there were no tidings of Mr. Ellis.\n\n\
	"I can bear this suspense no longer\,\" exclaimed Esther. \"If father don'
	t come soon\, I shall go and look for him. I've tried to flatter myself th
	at he's safe\; but I'm almost convinced now that something has happened to
	 him\, or he'd have come back long before this—he knows how anxious we w
	ould all be about him. I've tried to quiet mother and Caddy by suggesting 
	various reasons for his delay\, but\, at the same time\, I cannot but cher
	ish the most dismal forebodings. I must go and look for him.\"\n\n\"No\, n
	o\, Esther—stay where you are at present—leave that to me. I'll order 
	a carriage and go up to Garie's immediately.\"\n\n\"Well\, do\, Mr. Walter
	s\, and hurry back: won't you?\" she rejoined\, as he left the apartment.\
	n\nIn a few moments he returned\, prepared to start\, and was speedily dri
	ven to Winter-street. He found a group of people gathered before the gate\
	, gazing into the house. \"The place has been attacked\,\" said he\, as he
	 walked towards the front door—picking his way amidst fragments of furni
	ture\, straw\, and broken glass. At the entrance of the house he was met b
	y Mr. Balch\, Mr. Garie's lawyer.\n\n\"This is a shocking affair\, Walters
	\,\" said he\, extending his hand—he was an old friend of Mr. Walters.\n
	\n\"Very shocking\, indeed\,\" he replied\, looking around. \"But where is
	 Garie?\nWe sent to warn them of this. I hope they are all safe.\"\n\n\"Sa
	fe!\" repeated Mr. Balch\, with an air of astonishment. \"Why\, man\, have
	n't you heard?\"\n\n\"Heard what?\" asked Mr. Walters\, looking alarmed.\n
	\n\"That Mr. and Mrs. Garie are dead—both were killed last night.\"\n\nT
	he shock of this sudden and totally unexpected disclosure was such that Mr
	. Walters leaned against the doorway for support. \"It can't be possible\,
	\" he exclaimed at last\, \"not dead!\" \"Yes\, dead\, I regret to say—h
	e was shot through the head—and she died in the wood-house\, of prematur
	e confinement\, brought on by fright and exposure.\"\n\n\"And the children
	?\" gasped Walters.\n\n\"They are safe\, with some neighbours—it's heart
	-breaking to hear them weeping for their mother.\" Here a tear glistened i
	n the eye of Mr. Balch\, and ran down his cheek. Brushing it off\, he cont
	inued: \"The coroner has just held an inquest\, and they gave a most truth
	less verdict: nothing whatever is said of the cause of the murder\, or of 
	the murderers\; they simply rendered a verdict—death caused by a wound f
	rom a pistol-shot\, and hers—death from exposure. There seemed the great
	est anxiety on the part of the coroner to get the matter over as quickly a
	s possible\, and few or no witnesses were examined. But I'm determined to 
	sift the matter to the bottom\; if the perpetrators of the murder can be d
	iscovered\, I'll leave no means untried to find them.\"\n\n\"Do you know a
	ny one who sat on the inquest?\" asked Walters.\n\n\"Yes\, one\,\" was the
	 reply\, \"Slippery George\, the lawyer\; you are acquainted with him—Ge
	orge Stevens. I find he resides next door.\"\n\n\"Do you know\,\" here int
	errupted Mr. Walters\, \"that I've my suspicions that that villain is at t
	he bottom of these disturbances or at least has a large share in them. I h
	ave a paper in my possession\, in his handwriting—it is in fact a list o
	f the places destroyed by the mob last night—it fell into the hands of a
	 friend of mine by accident—he gave it to me—it put me on my guard\; a
	nd when the villains attacked my house last night they got rather a warmer
	 reception than they bargained for.\"\n\n\"You astonish me! Is it possible
	 your place was assaulted also?\" asked Mr.\nBalch.\n\n\"Indeed\, it was
	—and a hot battle we had of it for a short space of time.\nBut how did y
	ou hear of this affair?\"\n\n\"I was sent for by I can't tell whom. When I
	 came and saw what had happened\, I immediately set about searching for a 
	will that I made for Mr. Garie a few weeks since\; it was witnessed and si
	gned at my office\, and he brought it away with him. I can't discover it a
	nywhere. I've ransacked every cranny. It must have been carried off by som
	e one. You are named in it conjointly with myself as executor. All the pro
	perty is left to her\, poor thing\, and his children. We must endeavour to
	 find it somewhere—at any rate the children are secure\; they are the on
	ly heirs—he had not\, to my knowledge\, a single white relative. But let
	 us go in and see the bodies.\"\n\nThey walked together into the back room
	 where the bodies were lying. Mrs. Garie was stretched upon the sofa\, cov
	ered with a piano cloth\; and her husband was laid upon a long table\, wit
	h a silk window-curtain thrown across his face.\n\nThe two gazed in silenc
	e on the face of Mr. Garie—the brow was still knit\, the eyes staring va
	cantly\, and the marble whiteness of the face unbroken\, save by a few gou
	ts of blood near a small blue spot over the eye where the bullet had enter
	ed.\n\n\"He was the best-hearted creature in the world\,\" said Walters\, 
	as he re-covered the face.\n\n\"Won't you look at her?\" asked Mr. Balch.\
	n\n\"No\, no—I can't\,\" continued Walters\; \"I've seen horrors enough 
	for one morning. I've another thing on my mind! A friend who assisted in t
	he defence of my house started up here last night\, to warn them of their 
	danger\, and when I left home he had not returned: it's evident he hasn't 
	been here\, and I greatly fear some misfortune has befallen him. Where are
	 the children? Poor little orphans\, I must see them before I go.\"\n\nAcc
	ompanied by Mr. Balch\, he called at the house where Clarence and Em had f
	ound temporary shelter. The children ran to him as soon as he entered the 
	room. \"Oh! Mr. Walters\,\" sobbed Clarence\, \"my mother's dead—my moth
	er's dead!\"\n\n\"Hush\, dears—hush!\" he replied\, endeavouring to rest
	rain his own tears\, as he took little Em in his arms. \"Don't cry\, my da
	rling\,\" said he\, as she gave rent to a fresh outburst of tears.\n\n\"Oh
	\, Mr. Walters!\" said she\, still sobbing\, \"she was all the mother I ha
	d.\"\n\nMr. Balch here endeavoured to assist in pacifying the two little m
	ourners.\n\n\"Why don't father come?\" asked Clarence. \"Have you seen him
	\, Mr. Walters?\"\n\nMr. Walters was quite taken aback by this inquiry\, w
	hich clearly showed that the children were still unaware of the extent of 
	their misfortunes. \"I've seen him\, my child\,\" said he\, evasively\; \"
	you'll see him before long.\" And fearful of further questioning\, he left
	 the house\, promising soon to return.\n\nUnable longer to endure her anxi
	ety respecting her father\, Esther determined not to await the return of M
	r. Walters\, which had already been greatly delayed\, but to go herself in
	 search of him. It had occurred to her that\, instead of returning from th
	e Garies direct to them\, he had probably gone to his own home to see if i
	t had been disturbed during the night.\n\nEncouraged by this idea\, withou
	t consulting any one\, she hastily put on her cloak and bonnet\, and took 
	the direction of her home. Numbers of people were wending their way to the
	 lower part of the city\, to gratify their curiosity by gazing upon the ha
	voc made by the rioters during the past night.\n\nEsther found her home a 
	heap of smoking ruins\; some of the neighbours who recognized her gathered
	 round\, expressing their sympathy and regret. But she seemed comparativel
	y careless respecting the loss of their property\; and in answer to their 
	kind expressions\, could only ask\, \"Have you seen my father?—do you kn
	ow where my father is?\"\n\nNone\, however\, had seen him\; and after gazi
	ng for a short time upon the ruins of what was once a happy home\, she tur
	ned mournfully away\, and walked back to Mr. Walters's.\n\n\"Has father co
	me?\" she inquired\, as soon as the door was opened. \"Not yet!\" was the 
	discouraging reply: \"and Mr. Walters\, he hasn't come back\, either\, mis
	s!\"\n\nEsther stood for some moments hesitating whether to go in\, or to 
	proceed in her search. The voice of her mother calling her from the stairw
	ay decided her\, and she went in.\n\nMrs. Ellis and Caddy wept freely on l
	earning from Esther the destruction of their home. This cause of grief\, a
	dded to the anxiety produced by the prolonged absence of Mr. Ellis\, rende
	red them truly miserable.\n\nWhilst they were condoling with one another\,
	 Mr. Walters returned. He was unable to conceal his fears that something h
	ad happened to Mr. Ellis\, and frankly told them so\; he also gave a detai
	led account of what had befallen the Garies\, to the great horror and grie
	f of all.\n\nAs soon as arrangements could be made\, Mr. Walters and Esthe
	r set out in search of her father. All day long they went from place to pl
	ace\, but gained no tidings of him\; and weary and disheartened they retur
	ned at night\, bringing with them the distressing intelligence of their ut
	ter failure to procure any information respecting him.\n\nCHAPTER XXIII.\n
	The Lost One Found.\n\nOn the day succeeding the events described in our l
	ast chapter\, Mr. Walters called upon Mr. Balch\, for the purpose of makin
	g the necessary preparations for the interment of Mr. and Mrs. Garie.\n\n\
	"I think\,\" said Mr. Balch\, \"we had better bury them in the Ash-grove c
	emetery\; it's a lovely spot—all my people are buried there.\"\n\n\"The 
	place is fine enough\, I acknowledge\,\" rejoined Mr. Walters\; \"but I mu
	ch doubt if you can procure the necessary ground.\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\, you ca
	n!\" said Mr. Balch\; \"there are a number of lots still unappropriated.\"
	\n\n\"That may very likely be so\; but are you sure we can get one if we a
	pply?\"\n\n\"Of course we can—what is to prevent?\" asked Mr. Balch.\n\n
	\"You forget\,\" replied Mr. Walters\, \"that Mrs. Garie was a coloured wo
	man.\"\n\n\"If it wasn't such a solemn subject I really should be obliged 
	to laugh at you\, Walters\,\" rejoined Mr. Balch\, with a smile—\"you ta
	lk ridiculously. What can her complexion have to do with her being buried 
	there\, I should like to know?\"\n\n\"It has everything to do with it! Can
	 it be possible you are not aware that they won't even permit a coloured p
	erson to walk through the ground\, much less to be buried there!\"\n\n\"Yo
	u astonish me\, Walters! Are you sure of it?\"\n\n\"I give you my word of 
	honour it is so! But why should you be astonished at such treatment of the
	 dead\, when you see how they conduct themselves towards the living? I hav
	e a friend\,\" continued Mr. Walters\, \"who purchased a pew for himself a
	nd family in a white-church\, and the deacons actually removed the floor f
	rom under it\, to prevent his sitting there. They refuse us permission to 
	kneel by the side of the white communicants at the Lord's Supper\, and giv
	e us separate pews in obscure corners of their churches. All this you know
	—why\, then\, be surprised that they carry their prejudices into their g
	raveyards?—the conduct is all of a piece.\"\n\n\"Well\, Walters\, I know
	 the way things are conducted in our churches is exceedingly reprehensible
	\; but I really did not know they stretched their prejudices to such an ex
	tent.\"\n\n\"I assure you they do\, then\,\" resumed Mr. Walters\; \"and i
	n this very matter you'll find I'm correct. Ask Stormley\, the undertaker\
	, and hear what he'll tell you. Oh! a case in point.—About six months ag
	o\, one of our wealthiest citizens lost by death an old family servant\, a
	 coloured woman\, a sort of half-housekeeper—half-friend. She resembled 
	him so much\, that it was generally believed she was his sister. Well\, he
	 tried to have her laid in their family vault\, and it was refused\; the d
	irectors thought it would be creating a bad precedent—they said\, as the
	y would not sell lots to coloured persons\, they couldn't consistently per
	mit them to be buried in those of the whites.\"\n\n\"Then Ash-grove must b
	e abandoned\; and in lieu of that what can you propose?\" asked Mr. Balch.
	\n\n\"I should say we can't do better than lay them in the graveyard of th
	e coloured Episcopal church.\"\n\n\"Let it be there\, then. You will see t
	o the arrangements\, Walters. I shall have enough on my hands for the pres
	ent\, searching for that will: I have already offered a large reward for i
	t—I trust it may turn up yet.\"\n\n\"Perhaps it may\,\" rejoined Mr. Wal
	ters\; \"we must hope so\, at least. I've brought the children to my house
	\, where they are under the care of a young lady who was a great friend of
	 their mother's\; though it seems like putting too much upon the poor youn
	g creature\, to throw them upon her for consolation\, when she is almost d
	istracted with her own griefs. I think I mentioned to you yesterday\, that
	 her father is missing\; and\, to add to their anxieties\, their property 
	has been all destroyed by the rioters. They have a home with me for the pr
	esent\, and may remain there as long as they please.\"\n\n\"Oh! I remember
	 you told me something of them yesterday\; and now I come to think of it\,
	 I saw in the Journal this morning\, that a coloured man was lying at the 
	hospital very much injured\, whose name they could not ascertain. Can it b
	e possible that he is the man you are in search of?\"\n\n\"Let me see the 
	article\,\" asked Mr. Walters. Mr. Balch handed him the paper\, and pointe
	d out the paragraph in question.\n\n\"I'll go immediately to the hospital\
	,\" said he\, as he finished reading\, \"and see if it is my poor friend\;
	 I have great fears that it is. You'll excuse my leaving so abruptly—I m
	ust be off immediately.\"\n\nOn hastening to the hospital\, Mr. Walters ar
	rived just in time to be admitted to the wards\; and on being shown the pe
	rson whose name they had been unable to discover\, he immediately recogniz
	ed his friend.\n\n\"Ellis\, my poor fellow\,\" he exclaimed\, springing fo
	rward.\n\n\"Stop\, stop\,\" cried the attendant\, laying his hand upon Mr.
	 Walters's shoulder\; \"he is hovering between life and death\, the least 
	agitation might be fatal to him. The doctor says\, if he survives the nigh
	t\, he may probably get better\; but he has small chance of life. I hardly
	 think he will last twelve hours more\, he's been dreadfully beaten\; ther
	e are two or three gashes on his head\, his leg is broken\, and his hands 
	have been so much cut\, that the surgeon thinks they'll never be of any us
	e to him\, even if he recovers.\"\n\n\"What awful intelligence for his fam
	ily\,\" said Mr. Walters\; \"they are already half distracted about him.\"
	\n\nMr. Ellis lay perfectly unconscious of what was passing around him\, a
	nd his moans were deeply affecting to hear\, unable to move but one limb
	—he was the picture of helplessness and misery.\n\n\"It's time to close\
	; we don't permit visitors to remain after this hour\,\" said the attendan
	t\; \"come to-morrow\, you can see your friend\, and remain longer with hi
	m\;\" and bidding Mr. Walters good morning\, he ushered him from the ward.
	\n\n\"How shall I ever find means to break this to the girls and their mot
	her?\" said he\, as he left the gates of the hospital\; \"it will almost k
	ill them\; really I don't know what I shall say to them.\"\n\nHe walked ho
	meward with hesitating steps\, and on arriving at his house\, he paused aw
	hile before the door\, mustering up courage to enter\; at last he opened i
	t with the air of a man who had a disagreeable duty to perform\, and had m
	ade up his mind to go through with it. \"Tell Miss Ellis to come to the dr
	awing-room\,\" said he to the servant\; \"merely say she's wanted—don't 
	say I've returned.\"\n\nHe waited but a few moments before Esther made her
	 appearance\, looking sad and anxious. \"Oh\, it's you\,\" she said\, with
	 some surprise. \"You have news of father?\"\n\n\"Yes\, Esther\, I have ne
	ws\; but I am sorry to say not of a pleasant character.\"\n\n\"Oh\, Mr. Wa
	lters\, nothing serious I hope has happened to him?\" she asked\, in an ag
	itated tone.\n\n\"I'm sorry to say there has\, Esther\; he has met with an
	 accident—a sad and severe one—he's been badly wounded.\" Esther turne
	d deadly pale at this announcement\, and leaned upon the table for support
	.\n\n\"I sent for you\, Esther\,\" continued Mr. Walters\, \"in preference
	 to your mother\, because I knew you to be courageous in danger\, and I tr
	usted you would be equally so in misfortune. Your father's case is a very 
	critical one—very. It appears that after leaving here\, he fell into the
	 hands of the rioters\, by whom he was shockingly beaten. He was taken to 
	the hospital\, where he now remains.\"\n\n\"Oh\, let me go to him at once\
	, do\, Mr. Walters!\n\n\"My dear child\, it is impossible for you to see h
	im to-day\, it is long past the visiting hour\; moreover\, I don't think h
	im in a state that would permit the least agitation. To-morrow you can go 
	with me.\" Esther did not weep\, her heart was too full for tears. With a 
	pale face\, and trembling lips\, she said to Mr. Walters\, \"God give us s
	trength to bear up under these misfortunes\; we are homeless—almost begg
	ars—our friends have been murdered\, and my father is now trembling on t
	he brink of the grave\; such troubles as these\,\" said she\, sinking into
	 a chair\, \"are enough to crush any one.\"\n\n\"I know it\, Esther\; I kn
	ow it\, my child. I sympathize with you deeply. All that I have is at your
	 disposal. You may command me in anything. Give yourself no uneasiness res
	pecting the future of your mother and family\, let the result to your fath
	er be what it may: always bear in mind that\, next to God\, I am your best
	 friend. I speak thus frankly to you\, Esther\, because I would not have y
	ou cherish any hopes of your father's recovery\; from his appearance\, I s
	hould say there is but little\, if any. I leave to you\, my good girl\, th
	e task of breaking this sad news to your mother and sister\; I would tell 
	them\, but I must confess\, Esther\, I'm not equal to it\, the events of t
	he last day or two have almost overpowered me.\"\n\nEsther's lips quivered
	 again\, as she repeated the words\, \"Little hope\; did the doctor say th
	at?\" she asked.\n\n\"I did not see the doctor\,\" replied he\; \"perhaps 
	there may be a favourable change during the night. I'd have you prepare fo
	r the worst\, whilst you hope for the best. Go now and try to break it as 
	gently as possible to your mother.\"\n\nEsther left the room with heavy st
	ep\, and walked to the chamber where her mother was sitting. Caddy also wa
	s there\, rocking backwards and forwards in a chair\, in an earnest endeav
	our to soothe to sleep little Em\, who was sitting in her lap.\n\n\"Who wa
	s it\, Esther?\" asked\, her mother.\n\n\"Mr. Walters\,\" she hesitatingly
	 answered.\n\n\"Was it? Well\, has he heard anything of your father?\" she
	 asked\, anxiously.\n\nEsther turned away her head\, and remained silent.\
	n\n\"Why don't you answer?\" asked her mother\, with an alarmed look\; \"i
	f you know anything of him\, for God's sake tell me. Whatever it may be\, 
	it can't be worse than I expect\; is he dead?\" she asked.\n\n\"No—no\, 
	mother\, he's not dead\; but he's sick\, very sick\, mother. Mr.\nWalters 
	found him in the hospital.\"\n\n\"In the hospital! how came he there? Don'
	t deceive me\, Esther\, there's something behind all this\; are you tellin
	g me the truth? is he still alive?\"\n\n\"Mother\, believe me\, he is stil
	l alive\, but how long he may remain so\, God only knows.\" Mrs. Ellis\, a
	t this communication\, leant her head upon the table\, and wept uncontroll
	ably. Caddy put down her little charge\, and stood beside her mother\, end
	eavouring to soothe her\, whilst unable to restrain her own grief.\n\n\"Le
	t us go to him\, Esther\,\" said her mother\, rising\; \"I must see him—
	let us go at once.\"\n\n\"We can't\, mother\; Mr. Walters says it's imposs
	ible for us to see him to-day\; they don't admit visitors after a certain 
	hour in the morning.\"\n\n\"They must admit me: I'll tell them I'm his wif
	e\; when they know that\, they can't refuse me.\" Quickly dressing themsel
	ves\, Esther\, Caddy\, and their mother were about to start for the hospit
	al\, when Mr. Walters entered.\n\n\"Where are you all going?\" he asked.\n
	\n\"To the hospital\,\" answered Mrs. Ellis\; \"I must see my husband.\"\n
	\n\"I have just sent there\, Ellen\, to make arrangements to hear of him e
	very hour. You will only have the grief of being refused admission if you 
	go\; they're exceedingly strict—no one is admitted to visit a patient af
	ter a certain hour\; try and compose yourselves\; sit down\, I want to tal
	k to you for a little while.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis mechanically obeyed\; and on 
	sitting down\, little Em crept into her lap\, and nestled in her arms.\n\n
	\"Ellen\,\" said Mr. Walters\, taking a seat by her\; \"it's useless to di
	sguise the fact that Ellis is in a precarious situation—how long he may 
	be sick it is impossible to say\; as soon as it is practicable\, should he
	 get better\, we will bring him here. You remember\, Ellen\, that years ag
	o\, when I was young and poor\, Ellis often befriended me—now 'tis my tu
	rn. You must all make up your minds to remain with me—for ever\, if you 
	like—for the present\, whether you like it or not. I'm going to be dread
	fully obstinate\, and have my own way completely about the matter. Here I'
	ve a large house\, furnished from top to bottom with every comfort. Often 
	I've wandered through it\, and thought myself a selfish old fellow to be s
	urrounded with so much luxury\, and keep it entirely to myself. God has bl
	essed me with abundance\, and to what better use can it be appropriated th
	an the relief of my friends? Now\, Ellen\, you shall superintend the whole
	 of the establishment\, Esther shall nurse her father\, Caddy shall stir u
	p the servants\, and I'll look on and find my happiness in seeing you all 
	happy. Now\, what objection can you urge against that arrangement?\" concl
	uded he\, triumphantly.\n\n\"Why\, we shall put you to great inconvenience
	\, and place ourselves under an obligation we can never repay\,\" answered
	 Mrs. Ellis.\n\n\"Don't despair of that—never mind the obligation\; try 
	and be as cheerful as you can\; to-morrow we shall see Ellis\, and perhaps
	 find him better\; let us at least hope for the best.\"\n\nEsther looked w
	ith grateful admiration at Mr. Walters\, as he left the room. \"What a goo
	d heart he has\, mother\,\" said she\, as he closed the door behind him\; 
	\"just such a great tender heart as one should expect to find in so fine a
	 form.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis and her daughters were the first who were found nex
	t day\, at the office of the doorkeeper of the hospital waiting an opportu
	nity to see their sick friends.\n\n\"You're early\, ma'am\,\" said a littl
	e bald-headed official\, who sat at his desk fronting the door\; \"take a 
	chair near the fire—it's dreadful cold this morning.\"\n\n\"Very cold\,\
	" replied Esther\, taking a seat beside her mother\; \"how long will it be
	 before we can go in?\"\n\n\"Oh\, you've good an hour to wait—the doctor
	 hasn't come yet\,\" replied the door-keeper. \"How is my husband?\" tremb
	lingly inquired Mrs. Ellis.\n\n\"Who is your husband?—you don't know his
	 number\, do you? Never know names here—go by numbers.\"\n\n\"We don't k
	now the number\,\" rejoined Esther\; \"my father's name is Ellis\; he was 
	brought here two or three nights since—he was beaten by the mob.\"\n\n\"
	Oh\, yes\; I know now who you mean—number sixty—bad case that\, shocki
	ng bad case—hands chopped—head smashed—leg broke\; he'll have to cro
	ss over\, I guess—make a die of it\, I'm afraid.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis shudder
	ed\, and turned pale\, as the man coolly discussed her husband's injuries\
	, and their probable fatal termination. Caddy\, observing her agitation\, 
	said\, \"Please\, sir\, don't talk of it\; mother can't bear it.\"\n\nThe 
	man looked at them compassionately for a few moments—then continued: \"Y
	ou mustn't think me hard-hearted—I see so much of these things\, that I 
	can't feel them as others do. This is a dreadful thing to you\, no doubt\,
	 but it's an every-day song to me—people are always coming here mangled 
	in all sorts of ways—so\, you see\, I've got used to it—in fact\, I'd 
	rather miss 'em now if they didn't come. I've sat in this seat every day f
	or almost twenty years\;\" and he looked on the girls and their mother as 
	he gave them this piece of information as if he thought they ought to rega
	rd him henceforth with great reverence.\n\nNot finding them disposed to co
	nverse\, the doorkeeper resumed the newspaper he was reading when they ent
	ered\, and was soon deeply engrossed in a horrible steam-boat accident.\n\
	nThe sound of wheels in the courtyard attracting his attention\, he looked
	 up\, and remarked: \"Here's the doctor—as soon as he has walked the war
	ds you'll be admitted.\"\n\nMrs. Ellis and her daughters turned round as t
	he door opened\, and\, to their great joy\, recognized Doctor Burdett.\n\n
	\"How d'ye do?\" said he\, extending his hand to Mrs. Ellis—\"what's the
	 matter? Crying!\" he continued\, looking at their tearful faces\; \"what 
	has happened?\"\n\n\"Oh\, doctor\,\" said Esther\, \"father's lying here\,
	 very much injured\; and they think he'll die\,\" said she\, giving way to
	 a fresh burst of grief.\n\n\"Very much injured—die—how is this?—I k
	new nothing of it—I haven't been here before this week.\"\n\nEsther here
	upon briefly related the misfortunes that had befallen her father.\n\n\"De
	ar me—dear me\,\" repeated the kind old doctor.\n\n\"There\, my dear\; d
	on't fret—he'll get better\, my child—I'll take him in hand at once. M
	y dear Mrs. Ellis\, weeping won't do the least good\, and only make you si
	ck yourself. Stop\, do now—I'll go and see him immediately\, and as soon
	 as possible you shall be admitted.\"\n\nThey had not long to wait before 
	a message came from Doctor Burdett\, informing them that they could now be
	 permitted to see the sufferer.\n\n\"You must control yourselves\,\" said 
	the doctor to the sobbing women\, as he met them at the door\; \"you mustn
	't do anything to agitate him—his situation is extremely critical.\"\n\n
	The girls and their mother followed him to the bedside of Mr. Ellis\, who\
	, ghastly pale\, lay before them\, apparently unconscious.\n\nMrs. Ellis g
	ave but one look at her husband\, and\, with a faint cry\, sank fainting u
	pon the floor. The noise partially aroused him\; he turned his head\, and\
	, after an apparent effort\, recognized his daughters standing beside him:
	 he made a feeble attempt to raise his mutilated hands\, and murmured fain
	tly\, \"You've come at last!\" then closing his eyes\, he dropped his arms
	\, as if exhausted by the effort.\n\nEsther knelt beside him\, and pressed
	 a kiss on his pale face. \"Father!—father!\" said she\, softly. He open
	ed his eyes again\, and a smile of pleasure broke over his wan face\, and 
	lighted up his eyes\, as he feebly said\, \"God bless you\, darlings! I th
	ought you'd never come. Where's mother and Caddy?\"\n\n\"Here\,\" answered
	 Esther\, \"here\, by me\; your looks frightened her so\, that she's faint
	ed.\" Doctor Burdett here interposed\, and said: \"You must all go now\; h
	e's too weak to bear more at present.\"\n\n\"Let me stay with him a little
	 longer\,\" pleaded Esther.\n\n\"No\, my child\, it's impossible\,\" he co
	ntinued\; \"besides\, your mother will need your attention\;\" and\, whils
	t he spoke\, he led her into an adjoining room\, where the others had prec
	eded her.\n\nCHAPTER XXIV.\nCharlie Distinguishes Himself.\n\nCharlie had 
	now been many weeks under the hospitable roof of Mrs. Bird\, improving in 
	health and appearance. Indeed\, it would have been a wonder if he had not\
	, as the kind mistress of the mansion seemed to do nought else\, from day 
	to day\, but study plans for his comfort and pleasure. There was one sad d
	rawback upon the contentment of the dear old lady\, and that was her inabi
	lity to procure Charlie's admission to the academy.\n\nOne morning Mr. Wha
	tely called upon her\, and\, throwing himself into a chair\, exclaimed: \"
	It's all to no purpose\; their laws are as unalterable as those of the Med
	es and Persians—arguments and entreaty are equally thrown away upon them
	\; I've been closeted at least half a dozen times with each director\; and
	 as all I can say won't make your protege a shade whiter\, I'm afraid his 
	admission to the academy must be given up.\"\n\n\"It's too bad\,\" rejoine
	d Mrs. Bird. \"And who\, may I ask\, were the principal opposers?\"\n\n\"T
	hey all opposed it\, except Mr. Weeks and Mr. Bentham.\"\n\n\"Indeed!—wh
	y they are the very ones that I anticipated would go against it tooth and 
	nail. And Mr. Glentworth—surely he was on our side?\"\n\n\"He!—why\, m
	y dear madam\, he was the most rabid of the lot. With his sanctified face 
	and canting tongue!\"\n\n\"I'm almost ashamed to own it—but it's the tru
	th\, and I shouldn't hesitate to tell it—I found the most pious of the d
	irectors the least accessible\; as to old Glentworth\, he actually talked 
	to me as if I was recommending the committal of some horrid sin. I'm afrai
	d I shall be set down by him as a rabid Abolitionist\, I got so warm on th
	e subject. I've cherished as strong prejudices against coloured people as 
	any one\; but I tell you\, seeing how contemptible it makes others appear\
	, has gone a great way towards eradicating it in me. I found myself oblige
	d to use the same arguments against it that are used by the Abolitionists\
	, and in endeavouring to convince others of the absurdity of their prejudi
	ces\, I convinced myself.\"\n\n\"I'd set my heart upon it\,\" said Mrs. Bi
	rd\, in a tone of regret\; \"but I suppose I'll have to give it up. Charli
	e don't know I've made application for his admission\, and has been asking
	 me to let him go. A great many of the boys who attend there have become a
	cquainted with him\, and it was only yesterday that Mr. Glentworth's sons 
	were teasing me to consent to his beginning there the next term. The boys\
	,\" concluded she\, \"have better hearts than their parents.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I
	 begin to believe it's all sham\, this prejudice\; I'm getting quite disgu
	sted with myself for having had it—or rather thinking I had it. As for s
	aying it is innate\, or that there is any natural antipathy to that class\
	, it's all perfect folly\; children are not born with it\, or why shouldn'
	t they shrink from a black nurse or playmate? It's all bosh\,\" concluded 
	he\, indignantly\, as he brought his cane down with a rap.\n\n\"Charlie's 
	been quite a means of grace to you\,\" laughingly rejoined Mrs.\nBird\, am
	used at his vehemence of manner. \"Well\, I'm going to send him to\nSabbat
	h-school next Sunday\; and\, if there is a rebellion against his\nadmissio
	n there\, I shall be quite in despair.\"\n\nIt is frequently the case\, th
	at we are urged by circumstances to the advocacy of a measure in which we 
	take but little interest\, and of the propriety of which we are often very
	 sceptical\; but so surely as it is just in itself\, in our endeavours to 
	convert others we convince ourselves\; and\, from lukewarm apologists\, we
	 become earnest advocates. This was just Mr. Whately's case: he had begun 
	to canvass for the admission of Charlie with a doubtful sense of its propr
	iety\, and in attempting to overcome the groundless prejudices of others\,
	 he was convicted of his own.\n\nHappily\, in his case\, conviction was fo
	llowed by conversion\, and as he walked home from Mrs. Bird's\, he made up
	 his mind that\, if they attempted to exclude Charlie from the Sabbath-sch
	ool\, he would give them a piece of his mind\, and then resign his superin
	tendency of it.\n\nOn arriving at home\, he found waiting for him a young 
	lady\, who was formerly a member of his class in the Sabbath-school. \"I'v
	e come\,\" said she\, \"to consult you about forming an adult class in our
	 school for coloured persons. We have a girl living with us\, who would be
	 very glad to attend\, and she knows two or three others. I'll willingly t
	ake the class myself. I've consulted the pastor and several others\, and n
	o one seems to anticipate any objections from the scholars\, if we keep th
	em on a separate bench\, and do not mix them up with the white children.\"
	\n\n\"I'm delighted to hear you propose it\,\" answered Mr. Whately\, quit
	e overjoyed at the opening it presented\, \"the plan meets my warmest appr
	oval. I decidedly agree with you in the propriety of our making some effor
	t for the elevation and instruction of this hitherto neglected class—any
	 aid I can render——\"\n\n\"You astonish me\,\" interrupted Miss Cass\,
	 \"though I must say very agreeably. You were the last person from whom I 
	thought of obtaining any countenance. I did not come to you until armed wi
	th the consent of almost all the parties interested\, because from you I a
	nticipated considerable opposition\,\" and in her delight\, the young girl
	 grasped Mr. Whately's hand\, and shook it very heartily.\n\n\"Oh\, my opi
	nions relative to coloured people have lately undergone considerable modif
	ication\; in fact\,\" said he\, with some little confusion\, \"quite a tho
	rough revolution. I don't\, think we have quite done our duty by these peo
	ple. Well\, well\, we must make the future atone for the past.\"\n\nMiss C
	ass had entered upon her project with all the enthusiasm of youth\, and be
	ing anxious that her class\, \"in point of numbers\,\" should make a prese
	ntable appearance\, had drafted into it no less a person than Aunt Comfort
	.\n\nAunt Comfort was a personage of great importance in the little villag
	e of Warmouth\, and one whose services were called into requisition on alm
	ost every great domestic occasion.\n\nAt births she frequently officiated\
	, and few young mothers thought themselves entirely safe if the black good
	-humoured face of Aunt Comfort was not to be seen at their bedside. She ha
	d a hand in the compounding of almost every bridecake\, and had been known
	 to often leave houses of feasting\, to prepare weary earth-worn traveller
	s for their final place of rest. Every one knew\, and all liked her\, and 
	no one was more welcome at the houses of the good people of Warmouth than 
	Aunt Comfort.\n\nBut whilst rendering her all due praise for her domestic 
	acquirements\, justice compels us to remark that Aunt Comfort was not a li
	terary character. She could get up a shirt to perfection\, and made irrepr
	oachable chowder\, but she was not a woman of letters. In fact\, she had a
	rrived at maturity at a time when negroes and books seldom came in familia
	r contact\; and if the truth must be told\, she cared very little about th
	e latter. \"But jist to 'blege Miss Cass\,\" she consented to attend her c
	lass\, averring as she did so\, \"that she didn't 'spect she was gwine to 
	larn nothin' when she got thar.\"\n\nMiss Cass\, however\, was of the cont
	rary opinion\, and anticipated that after a few Sabbaths\, Aunt Comfort wo
	uld prove to be quite a literary phenomenon. The first time their class as
	sembled the white children well-nigh dislocated their necks\, in their end
	eavours to catch glimpses of the coloured scholars\, who were seated on a 
	backless bench\, in an obscure corner of the room.\n\nProminent amongst th
	em shone Aunt Comfort\, who in honour of this extraordinary occasion\, had
	 retrimmed her cap\, which was resplendent with bows of red ribbon as larg
	e as peonies. She had a Sunday-school primer in her hand\, and was repeati
	ng the letters with the utmost regularity\, as Miss Cass pronounced them. 
	They got on charmingly until after crossing over the letter O\, as a matte
	r of course they came to P and Q.\n\n\"Look here\,\" said Aunt Comfort\, w
	ith a look of profound erudition\, \"here's anoder O. What's de use of hav
	ing two of 'em?\"\n\n\"No\, no\, Aunt Comfort—that's Q—the letter Q.\"
	\n\n\"Umph\,\" grunted the old woman\, incredulously\, \"what's de use of 
	saying dat's a Q\, when you jest said not a minute ago 'twas O?\"\n\n\"Thi
	s is not the same\,\" rejoined the teacher\, \"don't you see the little ta
	il at the bottom of it?\"\n\nAunt Comfort took off her silver spectacles\,
	 and gave the glasses of them a furious rub\, then after essaying another 
	look\, exclaimed\, \"What\, you don't mean dat 'ere little speck down at t
	he bottom of it\, does yer?\"\n\n\"Yes\, Aunt Comfort\, that little speck\
	, as you call it\, makes all the difference—it makes O into Q.\"\n\n\"Oh
	\, go 'way\, child\,\" said she\, indignantly\, \"you isn't gwine to fool 
	me dat ar way. I knows you of old\, honey—you's up to dese 'ere things
	—you know you allus was mighty 'chevious\, and I isn't gwine to b'lieve 
	dat dat ar little speck makes all the difference—no such thing\, case it
	 don't—deys either both O's or both Q's. I'm clar o' dat—deys either o
	ne or tother.\"\n\nKnowing by long experience the utter futility of attemp
	ting to convince Aunt Comfort that she was in the wrong\, by anything shor
	t of a miracle\, the teacher wisely skipped over the obnoxious letter\, th
	en all went smoothly on to the conclusion of the alphabet.\n\nThe lesson h
	aving terminated\, Miss Cass looked up and discovered standing near her a 
	coloured boy\, who she correctly surmised was sent as an addition to her c
	lass. \"Come here\, and sit down\,\" said she\, pointing to a seat next Au
	nt Comfort. \"What is your name?\"\n\nCharlie gave his name and residence\
	, which were entered in due form on the teacher's book. \"Now\, Charles\,\
	" she continued\, \"do you know your letters?\"\n\n\"Yes\, ma'am\,\" was t
	he answer.\n\n\"Can you spell?\" she inquired. To this also Charlie gave a
	n affirmative\, highly amused at the same time at being asked such a quest
	ion.\n\nMiss Cass inquired no further into the extent of his acquirements\
	, it never having entered her head that he could do more than spell. So ha
	nding him one of the primers\, she pointed out a line on which to begin. T
	he spirit of mischief entered our little friend\, and he stumbled through 
	b-l-a bla—b-l-i bli—b-l-o blo—b-l-u blu\, with great gravity and slo
	wness.\n\n\"You spell quite nicely\, particularly for a little coloured bo
	y\,\" said Miss Cass\, encouragingly\, as he concluded the line\; \"take t
	his next\,\" she continued\, pointing to another\, \"and when you have lea
	rned it\, I will hear you again.\"\n\nIt was the custom of the superintend
	ent to question the scholars upon a portion of Bible history\, given out t
	he Sabbath previous for study during the week. It chanced that upon the da
	y of which we write\, the subject for examination was one with which Charl
	ie was quite familiar.\n\nAccordingly\, when the questions were put to the
	 school\, he answered boldly and quickly to many of them\, and with an acc
	uracy that astonished his fellow scholars.\n\n\"How did you learn the answ
	ers to those questions—you can't read?\" said\nMiss Cass.\n\n\"Yes\, but
	 I can read\,\" answered Charlie\, with a merry twinkle in his eye.\n\n\"W
	hy didn't you tell me so before?\" she asked.\n\n\"Because you didn't ask 
	me\,\" he replied\, suppressing a grin.\n\nThis was true enough\, so Miss 
	Cass\, having nothing farther to say\, sat and listened\, whilst he answer
	ed the numerous and sometimes difficult questions addressed to the scholar
	s.\n\nNot so\, Aunt Comfort. She could not restrain her admiration of this
	 display of talent on the part of one of her despised race\; she was conti
	nually breaking out with expressions of wonder and applause. \"Jis' hear d
	at—massy on us—only jis' listen to de chile\,\" said she\, \"talks jis
	' de same as if he was white. Why\, boy\, where you learn all dat?\"\n\n\"
	Across the Red Sea\,\" cried Charlie\, in answer to a question from the de
	sk of the superintendent.\n\n\"'Cross de Red Sea! Umph\, chile\, you been 
	dere?\" asked Aunt Comfort\, with a face full of wonder.\n\n\"What did you
	 say?\" asked Charlie\, whose attention had been arrested by the last ques
	tion.\n\n\"Why I asked where you learned all dat 'bout de children of Isra
	el.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I learned that at Philadelphia\,\" was his reply\; \"I lea
	rned it at school with the rest of the boys.\"\n\n\"You did!\" exclaimed s
	he\, raising her hands with astonishment. \"Is dere many more of 'em like 
	you?\"\n\nCharlie did not hear this last question of Aunt Comfort's\, ther
	efore she was rather startled by his replying in a loud tone\, \"Immense h
	osts.\"\n\n\"Did I ever—jis' hear dat\, dere's ''mense hostes' of 'em je
	st like him! only think of it. Is dey all dere yet\, honey?\"\n\n\"They we
	re all drowned.\"\n\n\"Oh\, Lordy\, Lordy\,\" rejoined she\, aghast with h
	orror\; for Charlie's reply to a question regarding the fate of Pharaoh's 
	army\, had been by her interpreted as an answer to her question respecting
	 his coloured schoolmates at Philadelphia.\n\n\"And how did you 'scape\, h
	oney\,\" continued she\, \"from drowning 'long wid the rest of 'em?\"\n\n\
	"Why I wasn't there\, it was thousands of years ago.\"\n\n\"Look here. Wha
	t do you mean?\" she whispered\; \"didn't you say jest now dat you went to
	 school wid 'em?\"\n\nThis was too much for Charlie\, who shook all over w
	ith suppressed laughter\; nor was Miss Cass proof against the contagion—
	she was obliged to almost suffocate herself with her handkerchief to avoid
	 a serious explosion.\n\n\"Aunt Comfort\, you are mistaking him\,\" said s
	he\, as soon as she could recover her composure\; \"he is answering the qu
	estions of the superintendent—not yours\, and very well he has answered 
	them\, too\,\" continued she. \"I like to see little boys aspiring: I am g
	lad to see you so intelligent—you must persevere\, Charlie.\"\n\n\"Yes\,
	 you must\, honey\,\" chimed in Aunt Comfort. \"I'se very much like Miss C
	ass\; I likes to see children—'specially children of colour—have expir
	ing minds.\"\n\nCharlie went quite off at this\, and it was only by repeat
	ed hush—hushes\, from Miss Cass\, and a pinch in the back from Aunt Comf
	ort\, that he was restored to a proper sense of his position.\n\nThe quest
	ioning being now finished\, Mr. Whately came to Charlie\, praised him high
	ly for his aptness\, and made some inquiries respecting his knowledge of t
	he catechism\; also whether he would be willing to join the class that was
	 to be catechised in the church during the afternoon. To this\, Charlie re
	adily assented\, and\, at the close of the school\, was placed at the foot
	 of the class\, preparatory to going into the Church.\n\nThe public catech
	izing of the scholars was always an event in the village\; but now a novel
	ty was given it\, by the addition of a black lamb to the flock\, and\, as 
	a matter of course\, a much greater interest was manifested. Had a lion en
	tered the doors of St. Stephen's church\, he might have created greater co
	nsternation\, but he could not have attracted more attention than did our 
	little friend on passing beneath its sacred portals. The length of the ais
	le seemed interminable to him\, and on his way to the altar he felt oppres
	sed by the scrutiny of eyes through which he was compelled to pass. Mr. Du
	ral\, the pastor\, looked kindly at him\, as he stood in front of the chan
	cel\, and Charlie took heart from his cheering smile.\n\nNow\, to Aunt Com
	fort (who was the only coloured person who regularly attended the church) 
	a seat had been assigned beside the organ\; which elevated position had be
	en given her that the congregation might indulge in their devotions withou
	t having their prejudices shocked by a too close contemplation of her ebon
	y countenance.\n\nBut Aunt Comfort\, on this occasion\, determined to get 
	near enough to hear all that passed\, and\, leaving her accustomed seat\, 
	she planted herself in one of the aisles of the gallery overlooking the al
	tar\, where she remained almost speechless with wonder and astonishment at
	 the unprecedented sight of a woolly head at the foot of the altar.\n\nCha
	rlie got on very successfully until called upon to repeat the Lord's Praye
	r\; and\, strange to say\, at this critical juncture\, his memory forsook 
	him\, and he was unable to utter a word of it: for the life of him he coul
	d not think of anything but \"Now I lay me down to sleep\"—and confused 
	and annoyed he stood unable to proceed. At this stage of affairs\, Aunt Co
	mfort's interest in Charlie's success had reached such a pitch that her cu
	stomary awe of the place she was in entirely departed\, and she exclaimed\
	, \"I'll give yer a start—'Our Farrer\,'\"—then overwhelmed by the con
	sciousness that she had spoken out in meeting\, she sank down behind a pew
	-door\, completely extinguished. At this there was an audible titter\, tha
	t was immediately suppressed\; after which\, Charlie recovered his memory\
	, and\, started by the opportune prompting of Aunt Comfort\, he recited it
	 correctly. A few questions more terminated the examination\, and the chil
	dren sat down in front of the altar until the conclusion of the service.\n
	\nMrs. Bird\, highly delighted with the debut of her protege\, bestowed no
	 end of praises upon him\, and even made the coachman walk home\, that Cha
	rlie might have a seat in the carriage\, as she alleged she was sure he mu
	st be much fatigued and overcome with the excitement of the day\; then tak
	ing the reins into her own hands\, she drove them safely home.\n\nCHAPTER 
	XXV.\nThe Heir.\n\nWe must now return to Philadelphia\, and pay a visit to
	 the office of Mr. Balch. We shall find that gentleman in company with Mr.
	 Walters: both look anxious\, and are poring over a letter which is outspr
	ead before them.\n\n\"It was like a thunder-clap to me\,\" said Mr. Balch:
	 \"the idea of there being another heir never entered my brain—I didn't 
	even know he had a living relative.\"\n\n\"When did you get the letter?\" 
	asked Walters.\n\n\"Only this morning\, and I sent for you immediately! Le
	t us read it again—we'll make another attempt to decipher this incompreh
	ensible name. Confound the fellow! why couldn't he write so that some one 
	besides himself could read it! We must stumble through it\,\" said he\, as
	 he again began the letter as follows:—\n\n\"Dear Sir\,—Immediately on
	 receipt of your favour\, I called upon Mr. Thurston\, to take the necessa
	ry steps for securing the property of your late client. To my great surpri
	se\, I found that another claimant had started up\, and already taken the 
	preliminary measures to entering upon possession. This gentleman\, Mr.
	——\n\n\"Now\, what would you call that name\, Walters?—to me it look
	s like\nStimmens\, or Stunners\, or something of the kind!\"\n\n\"Never mi
	nd the name\,\" exclaimed Walters—\"skip that—let me hear the rest of 
	the letter\; we shall find out who he is soon enough\, in all conscience.\
	"\n\n\"Well\, then\,\" resumed Mr. Balch—\"This gentleman\, Mr.——\, 
	is a resident in your city\; and he will\, no doubt\, take an early opport
	unity of calling on you\, in reference to the matter. It is my opinion\, t
	hat without a will in their favour\, these children cannot oppose his clai
	m successfully\, if he can prove his consanguinity to Mr. Garie. His lawye
	r here showed me a copy of the letters and papers which are to be used as 
	evidence\, and\, I must say\, they are entirely without flaw. He proves hi
	mself\, undoubtedly\, to be the first cousin of Mr. Garie. You are\, no do
	ubt\, aware that these children being the offspring of a slave-woman\, can
	not inherit\, in this State (except under certain circumstances)\, the pro
	perty of a white father. I am\, therefore\, very much afraid that they are
	 entirely at his mercy.\"\n\n\"Well\, then\,\" said Walters\, when Mr. Bal
	ch finished reading the letter\, \"it is clear there is an heir\, and his 
	claim must be well sustained\, if such a man as Beckley\, the first lawyer
	 in the State\, does not hesitate to endorse it\; and as all the property 
	(with the exception of a few thousands in my hands) lies in Georgia\, I'm 
	afraid the poor children will come off badly\, unless this new heir prove 
	to be a man of generosity—at all events\, it seems we are completely at 
	his mercy.\"\n\n\"We must hope for the best\,\" rejoined Mr. Balch. \"If h
	e has any heart\, he certainly will make some provision for them. The disa
	ppearance of that will is to me most unaccountable! I am confident it was 
	at his house. It seemed so singular that none of his papers should be miss
	ing\, except that—there were a great many others\, deeds\, mortgages\, &
	amp\;c. scattered over the floor\, but no will!\"\n\nThe gentlemen were th
	us conversing\, when they heard a tap at the door.\n\"Come in!\" cried Mr.
	 Balch\; and\, in answer to the request\, in walked Mr.\nGeorge Stevens.\n
	\nMr. Walters and Mr. Balch bowed very stiffly\, and the latter inquired w
	hat had procured him the honour of a visit.\n\n\"I have called upon you in
	 reference to the property of the late Mr. Garie.\" \"Oh! you are acting i
	n behalf of this new claimant\, I suppose?\" rejoined Mr. Balch.\n\n\"Sir!
	\" said Mr. Stevens\, looking as though he did not thoroughly understand h
	im.\n\n\"I said\,\" repeated Mr. Balch\, \"that I presumed you called in b
	ehalf of this new-found heir to Mr. Garie's property.\"\n\nMr. Stevens loo
	ked at him for a moment\, then drawing himself up\, exclaimed\,\n\"I AM TH
	E HEIR!\"\n\n\"You!—you the heir!\" cried both the gentlemen\, almost si
	multaneously.\n\n\"Yes\, I am the heir!\" coolly repeated Mr. Stevens\, wi
	th an assured look. \"I am the first cousin of Mr. Garie!\"\n\n\"You his f
	irst cousin?—it is impossible!\" said Walters.\n\n\"You'll discover it i
	s not only possible\, but true—I am\, as I said\, Mr.\nGarie's first cou
	sin!\"\n\n\"If you are that\, you are more\,\" said Walters\, fiercely—\
	"you're his murderer!\" At this charge Mr. Stevens turned deathly pale. \"
	Yes\,\" continued Walters\; \"you either murdered him\, or instigated othe
	rs to do so! It was you who directed the rioters against both him and me
	—I have proof of what I say and can produce it. Now your motive is clear
	 as day—you wanted his money\, and destroyed him to obtain it! His blood
	 is on your hands!\" hissed Walters through his clenched teeth.\n\nIn the 
	excitement consequent upon such a charge\, Mr. Stevens\, unnoticed by hims
	elf\, had overturned a bottle of red ink\, and its contents had slightly s
	tained his hands. When Walters charged him with having Mr. Garie's blood u
	pon them\, he involuntarily looked down and saw his hands stained with red
	. An expression of intense horror flitted over his face when he observed i
	t\; but quickly regaining his composure\, he replied\, \"It's only a littl
	e ink.\"\n\n\"Yes\, I know that is ink\,\" rejoined Walters\, scornfully\;
	 \"look at him\,\nBalch\,\" he continued\, \"he doesn't dare to look eithe
	r of us in the face.\"\n\n\"It's false\,\" exclaimed Stevens\, with an eff
	ort to appear courageous\; \"it's as false as hell\, and any man that char
	ges me with it is a liar.\"\n\nThe words had scarcely passed his lips\, wh
	en Walters sprang upon him with the ferocity of a tiger\, and seizing him 
	by the throat\, shook and whirled him about as though he were a plaything.
	\n\n\"Stop\, stop! Walters\,\" cried Mr. Balch\, endeavouring to loose his
	 hold upon the throat of Mr. Stevens\, who was already purple in the face\
	; \"let him go\, this violence can benefit neither party. Loose your hold.
	\" At this remonstrance\, Walters dashed Stevens from him into the farthes
	t corner of the room\, exclaiming\, \"Now\, go and prosecute me if you dar
	e\, and I'll tell for what I chastised you\; prosecute me for an assault\,
	 if you think you can risk the consequences.\"\n\nMr. Balch assisted him f
	rom the floor and placed him in a chair\, where he sat holding his side\, 
	and panting for breath. When he was able to speak\, he exclaimed\, with a 
	look of concentrated malignity\, \"Remember\, we'll be even some day\; I n
	ever received a blow and forgot it afterwards\, bear that in mind.\"\n\n\"
	This will never do\, gentlemen\,\" said Mr. Balch\, soothingly: \"this con
	duct is unworthy of you. You are unreasonable both of you. When you have c
	ooled down we will discuss the matter as we should.\"\n\n\"You'll discuss 
	it alone then\,\" said Stevens\, rising\, and walking to the door: \"and w
	hen you have any further communication to make\, you must come to me.\"\n\
	n\"Stop\, stop\, don't go\,\" cried Mr. Balch\, following him out at the d
	oor\, which they closed behind them\; \"don't go away in a passion\, Mr. S
	tevens. You and Walters are both too hasty. Come in here and sit down\,\" 
	said he\, opening the door of a small adjoining room\, \"wait here one mom
	ent\, I'll come back to you.\"\n\n\"This will never do\, Walters\,\" said 
	he\, as he re-entered his office\; \"the fellow has the upper hand of us\,
	 and we must humour him\; we should suppress our own feelings for the chil
	dren's sake. You are as well aware as I am of the necessity of some compro
	mise—we are in his power for the present\, and must act as circumstances
	 compel us to.\"\n\n\"I can't discuss the matter with him\,\" interrupted 
	Walters\, \"he's an unmitigated scoundrel. I couldn't command my temper in
	 his presence for five minutes. If you can arrange anything with him at al
	l advantageous to the children\, I shall be satisfied\, it will be more th
	an I expect\; only bear in mind\, that what I have in my hands belonging t
	o Garie we must retain\, he knows nothing of that.\"\n\n\"Very well\,\" re
	joined Mr. Balch\, \"depend upon it I'll do my best\;\" and closing the do
	or\, he went back to Mr. Stevens.\n\n\"Now\, Mr. Stevens\,\" said he\, dra
	wing up a chair\, \"we will talk over this matter dispassionately\, and tr
	y and arrive at some amicable arrangement: be kind enough to inform me wha
	t your claims are.\"\n\n\"Mr. Balch\, you are a gentleman\,\" began Mr. St
	evens\, \"and therefore I'm willing to discuss the matter thoroughly with 
	you. You'll find me disposed to do a great deal for these children: but I 
	wish it distinctly understood at the beginning\, that whatever I may give 
	them\, I bestow as a favour. I concede nothing to them as a right\, legall
	y they have not the slightest claim upon me\; of that you\, who are an exc
	ellent lawyer\, must be well aware.\"\n\n\"We won't discuss that point at 
	present\, Mr. Stevens. I believe you intimated you would be kind enough to
	 say upon what evidence you purposed sustaining your claims?\"\n\n\"Well\,
	 to come to the point\, then\,\" said Stevens\; \"the deceased Mr. Garie w
	as\, as I before said\, my first cousin. His father and my mother were bro
	ther and sister. My mother married in opposition to her parents' desires\;
	 they cut her off from the family\, and for years there was no communicati
	on between them. At my father's death\, my mother made overtures for a rec
	onciliation\, which were contemptuously rejected\, at length she died. I w
	as brought up in ignorance of who my grandparents were\; and only a few mo
	nths since\, on the death of my father's sister\, did I make the discovery
	. Here\,\" said he\, extending the packet of letters which\, the reader wi
	ll remember once agitated\, him so strangely\, \"here are the letters that
	 passed between my mother and her father.\"\n\nMr. Balch took up one and r
	ead:—\n\n\"Savannah\, 18—\n\n\"MADAM\,—Permit me to return this lett
	er (wherein you declare yourself the loving and repentant daughter of Bern
	ard Garie) and at the same time inform you\, that by your own. acts you ha
	ve deprived yourself of all claim to that relation. In opposition to my wi
	shes\, and in open defiance of my express commands\, you chose to unite yo
	ur fortune with one in every respect your inferior. If that union has not 
	resulted as happily as you expected\, you must sustain yourself by the ref
	lection that you are the author of your own misfortunes and alone to blame
	 for your present miserable condition.—Respectfully yours\,\n\n\"BERNARD
	 GARIE.\"\nMr. Balch read\, one after another\, letters of a similar purpo
	rt—in fact\, a long correspondence between Bernard Garie and the mother 
	of Mr. Stevens. When he had finished\, the latter remarked\, \"In addition
	 to those\, I can produce my mother's certificate of baptism\, her marriag
	e certificate\, and every necessary proof of my being her son. If that doe
	s not suffice to make a strong case\, I am at a loss to imagine what will.
	\"\n\nMr. Balch pondered a few moments\, and then inquired\, looking stead
	ily at\nMr. Stevens\, \"How long have you known of this relationship?\"\n\
	n\"Oh\, I've known it these three years.\"\n\n\"Three years! why\, my dear
	 sir\, only a few moments ago you said a few months.\"\n\n\"Oh\, did I?\" 
	said Mr. Stevens\, very much confused\; \"I meant\, or should have said\, 
	three years.\"\n\n\"Then\, of course you were aware that Mr. Garie was you
	r cousin when he took the house beside you?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes—that is—
	yes—yes\; I was aware of it.\"\n\n\"And did you make any overtures of a 
	social character?\" asked Mr. Balch.\n\n\"Well\, yes—that is to say\, my
	 wife did.\"\n\n\"Where were you the night of the murder?\"\n\nMr. Stevens
	 turned pale at this question\, and replied\, hesitatingly\, \"Why\, at ho
	me\, of course.\"\n\n\"You were at home\, and saw the house of your cousin
	s assaulted\, and made no effort to succour them or their children. The ne
	xt morning you are one of the coroner's inquest\, and hurry through the pr
	oceedings\, never once saying a word of your relationship to them\, nor ye
	t making any inquiry respecting the fate of the children. It is very singu
	lar.\"\n\n\"I don't see what this cross-questioning is to amount to\; it h
	as nothing to do with my claim as heir.\"\n\n\"We are coming to that\,\" r
	ejoined Mr. Balch. \"This\, as I said\, is very singular\; and when I coup
	le it with some other circumstances that have come to my knowledge\, it is
	 more than singular—it is suspicious. Here are a number of houses assaul
	ted by a mob. Two or three days before the assault takes place\, a list in
	 your handwriting\, and which is headed\, 'Places to be attacked\,' is fou
	nd\, under circumstances that leave no doubt that it came directly from yo
	u. Well\, the same mob that attacks these places—marked out by you—tra
	verse a long distance to reach the house of your next-door neighbour. They
	 break into it\, and kill him\; and you\, who are aware at the time that h
	e is your own cousin\, do not attempt to interpose to prevent it\, althoug
	h it can be proved that you were all-powerful with the marauders. No! you 
	allow him to be destroyed without an effort to save him\, and immediately 
	claim his property. Now\, Mr. Stevens\, people disposed to be suspicions
	—seeing how much you were to be the gainer by his removal\, and knowing 
	you had some connection with this mob—might not scruple to say that you 
	instigated the attack by which he lost his life\; and I put it to you—no
	w don't you think that\, if it was any one else\, you would say that the t
	hing looked suspicious?\"\n\nMr. Stevens winced at this\, but made no effo
	rt to reply.\n\nMr. Balch continued\, \"What I was going to remark is simp
	ly this. As we are in possession of these facts\, and able to prove them b
	y competent witnesses\, we should not be willing to remain perfectly silen
	t respecting it\, unless you made what we regarded as a suitable provision
	 for the children.\"\n\n\"I'm willing\, as I said before\, to do something
	\; but don't flatter yourself I'll do any more than I originally intended 
	from any fear of disclosures from you. I'm not to be frightened\,\" said M
	r. Stevens.\n\n\"I'm not at all disposed to attempt to frighten you: howev
	er\, you know how far a mere statement of these facts would go towards ren
	dering your position in society more agreeable. A person who has been arre
	sted on suspicion of murder is apt to be shunned and distrusted. It can't 
	be helped\; people are so very squeamish—they will draw back\, you know\
	, under such circumstances.\"\n\n\"I don't see how such a suspicion can at
	tach itself to me\,\" rejoined\nStevens\, sharply.\n\n\"Oh\, well\, we won
	't discuss that any further: let me hear what you will do for the children
	.\"\n\nMr. Balch saw\, from the nervous and embarrassed manner of Mr. Stev
	ens\, that the indirect threat of exposing him had had considerable effect
	\; and his downcast looks and agitation rather strengthened in his mind th
	e suspicions that had been excited by the disclosures of Mr. Walters.\n\nA
	fter a few moments' silence\, Mr. Stevens said\, \"I'll settle three thous
	and dollars on each of the children. Now I think that is treating them lib
	erally.\"\n\n\"Liberally!\" exclaimed Balch\, in a tone of contempt—\"li
	berally! You acquire by the death of their father property worth one hundr
	ed and fifty thousand dollars\, and you offer these children\, who are the
	 rightful heirs\, three thousand dollars! That\, sir\, won't suffice.\" \"
	I think it should\, then\,\" rejoined Stevens. \"By the laws of Georgia th
	ese children\, instead of being his heirs\, are my slaves. Their mother wa
	s a slave before them\, and they were born slaves\; and if they were in Sa
	vannah\, I could sell them both to-morrow. On the whole\, I think I've mad
	e you a very fair offer\, and I'd advise you to think of it.\"\n\n\"No\, M
	r. Stevens\; I shall accept no such paltry sum. If you wish a quick and pe
	aceful possession of what you are pleased to regard as your rights\, you m
	ust tender something more advantageous\, or I shall feel compelled to brin
	g this thing into court\, even at the risk of loss\; and there\, you know\
	, we should be obliged to make a clear statement of everything connected w
	ith this business. It might be advantageous to us to bring the thing fully
	 before the court and public—but I'm exceedingly doubtful whether it wou
	ld advance your interest.\"\n\nStevens winced at this\, and asked\, \"What
	 would you consider a fair offer?\"\n\n\"I should consider all a just offe
	r\, half a fair one\, and a quarter as little as you could have the consci
	ence to expect us to take.\"\n\n\"I don't see any use in this chaffering\,
	 Mr. Balch\,\" said Stephens\; \"you can't expect me to give you any such 
	sums as you propose. Name a sum that you can reasonably expect to get.\"\n
	\n\"Well\,\" said Mr. Balch\, rising\, \"you must give us fifteen thousand
	 dollars\, and you should think yourself well off then. We could commence 
	a suit\, and put you to nearly that expense to defend it\; to say nothing 
	of the notoriety that the circumstance would occasion you. Both Walters an
	d I are willing to spend both money and time in defence of these children'
	s rights\; I assure you they are not friendless.\"\n\n\"I'll give twelve t
	housand\, and not a cent more\, if I'm hung for it\,\" said\nMr. Stevens\,
	 almost involuntarily.\n\n\"Who spoke of hanging?\" asked Mr. Balch.\n\n\"
	Oh!\" rejoined Stevens\, \"that is only my emphatic way of speaking.\" \"O
	f course\, you meant figuratively\,\" said Mr. Balch\, in a tone of irony\
	; mentally adding\, \"as I hope you may be one day literally.\"\n\nMr. Ste
	vens looked flushed and angry\, but Mr. Balch continued\, without appearin
	g to notice him\, and said: \"I'll speak to Walters. Should he acquiesce i
	n your proposal\, I am willing to accept it\; however\, I cannot definitel
	y decide without consulting him. To-morrow I will inform you of the result
	.\"\n\nCHAPTER XXVI.\nHome Again.\n\nTo Charlie the summer had been an exc
	eedingly short one—time had flown so pleasantly away. Everything that co
	uld be done to make the place agreeable Mrs. Bird had effected. Amongst th
	e number of her acquaintances who had conceived a regard for her young pro
	tege was a promising artist to whom she had been a friend and patroness. C
	harlie paid him frequent visits\, and would sit hour after hour in his stu
	dio\, watching the progress of his work. Having nothing else at the time t
	o amuse him\, he one day asked the artist's permission to try his hand at 
	a sketch. Being supplied with the necessary materials\, he commenced a cop
	y of a small drawing\, and was working assiduously\, when the artist came 
	and looked over his shoulder.\n\n\"Did you ever draw before?\" he asked\, 
	with a start of surprise.\n\n\"Never\,\" replied Charlie\, \"except on my 
	slate at school. I sometimes used to sketch the boys' faces.\"\n\n\"And yo
	u have never received any instructions?\"\n\n\"Never—not even a hint\,\"
	 was the answer.\n\n\"And this is the first time you have attempted a sket
	ch upon paper?\"\n\n\"Yes\; the very first.\"\n\n\"Then you are a little p
	rodigy\,\" said the artist\, slapping him upon the shoulder. \"I must take
	 you in hand. You have nothing else to do\; come here regularly every day\
	, and I'll teach you. Will you come?\"\n\n\"Certainly\, if you wish it. Bu
	t now\, tell me\, do you really think that drawing good?\" \"Well\, Charli
	e\, if I had done it\, it would be pronounced very bad for me\; but\, comi
	ng from your hands\, it's something astonishing.\"\n\n\"Really\, now—you
	're not joking me?\"\n\n\"No\, Charlie\, I'm in earnest—I assure you I a
	m\; it is drawn with great spirit\, and the boy that you have put in by th
	e pump is exceedingly well done.\"\n\nThis praise served as a great incent
	ive to our little friend\, who\, day after day thenceforth\, was found at 
	the studio busily engaged with his crayons\, and making rapid progress in 
	his new art.\n\nHe had been thus occupied some weeks\, and one morning was
	 hurrying to the breakfast-table\, to get through his meal\, that he might
	 be early at the studio\, when he found Mrs. Bird in her accustomed seat l
	ooking very sad.\n\n\"Why\, what is the matter?\" he asked\, on observing 
	the unusually grave face of his friend.\n\n\"Oh\, Charlie\, my dear! I've 
	received very distressing intelligence from\nPhiladelphia. Your father is 
	quite ill.\"\n\n\"My father ill!\" cried he\, with a look of alarm.\n\n\"Y
	es\, my dear! quite sick—so says my letter. Here are two for you.\"\n\nC
	harlie hastily broke the seal of one\, and read as follows:—\n\n\"MY DEA
	R LITTLE BROTHER\,—We are all in deep distress in consequence of the mis
	fortunes brought upon us by the mob. Our home has been destroyed\; and\, w
	orse than all\, our poor father was caught\, and so severely beaten by the
	 rioters that for some days his life was entirely despaired of. Thank God!
	 he is now improving\, and we have every reasonable hope of his ultimate r
	ecovery. Mother\, Caddy\, and I\, as you may well suppose\, are almost pro
	strated by this accumulation of misfortunes\, and but for the kindness of 
	Mr. Walters\, with whom we are living\, I do not know what would have beco
	me of us. Dear Mr. and Mrs. Garie—[Here followed a passage that was so s
	cored and crossed as to be illegible. After a short endeavour to decipher 
	it\, he continued:] We would like to see you very much\, and mother grows 
	every day more anxious for your return. I forgot to add\, in connection wi
	th the mob\, that Mr. Walters's house was also attacked\, but unsuccessful
	ly\, the rioters having met a signal repulse. Mother and Caddy send a worl
	d of love to you. So does Kinch\, who comes every day to see us and is\, o
	ften extremely useful. Give our united kind regards to Mrs. Bird\, and tha
	nk her in our behalf for her great kindness to you.—Ever yours\,\n\n\"ES
	THER.\n\"P.S.—Do try and manage to come home soon.\"\n\nThe tears trickl
	ed down Charlie's cheek as he perused the letter\, which\, when he had fin
	ished reading\, he handed to Mrs. Bird\, and then commenced the other. Thi
	s proved to be from Kinch\, who had spent all the spare time at his dispos
	al since the occurrence of the mob in preparing it.\n\n\"To MR. CHARLES EL
	LIS\, ESQ.\, at MRS. BIRD'S.\n\n\"Philadelphia.\n\n\"DEAR SIR AND HONNORED
	 FRIEND.—I take This chance To Write To you To tell You that I am Well\,
	 And that we are all well Except Your father\, who Is sick\; and I hope yo
	u are Enjoying the same Blessin. We had An Awful fight\, And I was There\,
	 and I was One of The Captings. I had a sord on\; and the next Mornin we h
	ad a grate Brekfast. But nobody Eat anything but me\, And I was obliged to
	 eat\, Or the Wittles would have spoiled. The Mob had Guns as Big as Cannu
	n\; And they Shot them Off\, and the holes Are in The Shutter yet\; And wh
	en You come Back\, I will show them to You. Your Father is very bad\; And 
	I Have gone back to school\, And I am Licked every day because I don't Kno
	w my Lesson. A great big boy\, with white woolly hair and Pinkish Grey eye
	s\, has got Your seat. I Put a Pin under him one Day\, And he told On me\;
	 and We Are to Have a fight tomorrow. The boys Call Him 'Short and Dirty\,
	' because he ain't tall\, and never washes His Face. We Have got a new Tea
	cher for the 5th Division. He's a Scorcher\, And believes in Rat Tan. I am
	 to Wear My new Cloths Next Sunday. Excuse This long letter. Your Friend t
	ill death\,\n\n\"KINCH SANDERS DE YOUNGE.\n[Illustration: skull and cross 
	bones]\n\n\"P.S. This it the best Skull and Cross-bones That\nI can make. 
	Come home soon\, Yours &amp\;c.\,\n\n\"K. S. DE YOUNGE\, ESQ.\"\nCharlie c
	ould not but smile through his tears\, as he read this curious epistle\, w
	hich was not more remarkable for its graceful composition than its wonderf
	ul chirography. Some of the lines were written in blue ink\, some in red\,
	 and others in that pale muddy black which is the peculiar colour of ink a
	fter passing through the various experiments of school-boys\, who generall
	y entertain the belief that all foreign substances\, from molasses-candy t
	o bread-crumbs\, necessarily improve the colour and quality of that import
	ant liquid.\n\n\"Why every other word almost is commenced with a capital\;
	 and I declare he's even made some in German text\,\" cried Charlie\, runn
	ing his finger mirthfully along the lines\, until he came to \"Your father
	 is very bad.\" Here the tears came welling up again—the shower had retu
	rned almost before the sun had departed\; and\, hiding his face in his han
	ds\, he leant sobbing on the table.\n\n\"Cheer up\, Charlie!—cheer up\, 
	my little man! all may go well yet.\"\n\n\"Mrs. Bird\,\" he sobbed\, \"you
	've been very kind to me\; yet I want to go home. I must see mother and fa
	ther. You see what Esther writes\,—they want me to come home\; do let me
	 go.\"\n\n\"Of course you shall go\, if you wish. Yet I should like you to
	 remain with me\, if you will.\"\n\n\"No\, no\, Mrs. Bird\, I mustn't stay
	\; it wouldn't be right for me to remain here\, idle and enjoying myself\,
	 and they so poor and unhappy at home. I couldn't stay\,\" said he\, risin
	g from the table\,—\"I must go.\"\n\n\"Well\, my dear\, you can't go now
	. Sit down and finish your breakfast\, or you will have a head-ache.\"\n\n
	\"I'm not hungry—I can't eat\,\" he replied\; \"my appetite has all gone
	.\" And stealing away from the room\, he went up into his chamber\, threw 
	himself on the bed\, and wept bitterly.\n\nMrs. Bird was greatly distresse
	d at the idea of losing her little favourite. He had been so much with her
	 that she had become strongly attached to him\, and therefore looked forwa
	rd to his departure with unfeigned regret. But Charlie could not be persua
	ded to stay\; and reluctantly Mrs. Bird made arrangements for his journey 
	home. Even the servants looked a little sorry when they heard of his inten
	ded departure\; and Reuben the coachman actually presented him with a jack
	-knife as a token of his regard.\n\nMrs. Bird accompanied him to the steam
	er\, and placed him under the special care of the captain\; so that he was
	 most comfortably provided for until his arrival in New York\, where he to
	ok the cars direct for home.\n\nNot having written to inform them on what 
	day he might be expected\, he anticipated giving them a joyful surprise\, 
	and\, with this end in view\, hastened in the direction of Mr. Walters's. 
	As he passed along\, his eye was attracted by a figure before him which he
	 thought he recognized\, and on closer inspection it proved to be his sist
	er Caddy.\n\nFull of boyish fun\, he crept up behind her\, and clasped his
	 hands over her eyes\, exclaiming\, in an assumed voice\, \"Now\, who am I
	?\"\n\n\"Go away\, you impudent\, nasty thing!\" cried Caddy\, plunging vi
	olently.\nCharlie loosed his hold\; she turned\, and beheld her brother.\n
	\n\"Oh! Charlie\, Charlie! is it you? Why\, bless you\, you naughty fellow
	\, how you frightened me!\" said she\, throwing her arms round his neck\, 
	and kissing him again and again. \"When did you come? Oh\, how delighted m
	other and Ess will be!\" \"I only arrived about half an hour ago. How are 
	mother and father and Esther?\"\n\n\"Mother and Ess are well\, and father 
	better. But I'm so glad to see you\,\" she cried\, with a fresh burst of t
	ears and additional embraces.\n\n\"Why\, Cad\,\" said he\, endeavouring to
	 suppress some watery sensations of his own\, \"I'm afraid you're not a bi
	t pleased at my return—you're actually crying about it.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I'm 
	so glad to see you that I can't help it\,\" she replied\, as she fell to c
	rying and kissing him more furiously than before.\n\nCharlie became much c
	onfused at these repeated demonstrations of joyful affection in the crowde
	d street\, and\, gently disengaging her\, remarked\, \"See\, Caddy\, every
	body is looking at us\; let us walk on.\"\n\n\"I had almost forgot I was s
	ent on an errand—however\, it's not of much consequence—I'll go home a
	gain with you\;\" and taking his hand\, they trudged on together.\n\n\"How
	 did you say father was?\" he asked again.\n\n\"Oh\, he's better bodily\; 
	that is\, he has some appetite\, sits up every day\, and is gradually gett
	ing stronger\; but he's all wrong here\,\" said she\, tapping her forehead
	. \"Sometimes he don't know any of us—and it makes us all feel so bad.\"
	 Here the tears came trickling down again\, as she continued: \"Oh\, Charl
	ie! what those white devils will have to answer for! When I think of how m
	uch injury they have done us\, I hate them! I know it's wrong to hate anyb
	ody—but I can't help it\; and I believe God hates them as much as I do!\
	"\n\nCharlie looked gloomy\; and\, as he made no rejoinder\, she continued
	\, \"We didn't save a thing\, not even a change of clothes\; they broke an
	d burnt up everything\; and then the way they beat poor father was horribl
	e—horrible! Just think—they chopped his fingers nearly all off\, so th
	at he has only the stumps left. Charlie\, Charlie!\" she cried\, wringing 
	her hands\, \"it's heart-rending to see him—he can't even feed himself\,
	 and he'll never be able to work again!\"\n\n\"Don't grieve\, Cad\,\" said
	 Charlie\, with an effort to suppress his own tears\; \"I'm almost a man n
	ow\,\" continued he\, drawing himself up—\"don't be afraid\, I'll take c
	are of you all!\"\n\nThus conversing\, they reached Mr. Walters's. Caddy w
	anted Charlie to stop and look at the damage effected by the mob upon the 
	outside of the house\, but he was anxious to go in\, and ran up the steps 
	and gave the bell a very sharp pull. The servant who opened the door was a
	bout to make some exclamation of surprise\, and was only restrained by a w
	arning look from Charlie. Hurrying past them\, Caddy led the way to the ro
	om where her mother and Esther were sitting. With a cry of joy Mrs. Ellis 
	caught him in her arms\, and\, before he was aware of their presence\, he 
	found himself half smothered by her and Esther.\n\nThey had never been sep
	arated before his trip to Warmouth\; and their reunion\, under such circum
	stances\, was particularly affecting. None of them could speak for a few m
	oments\, and Charlie clung round his mother's neck as though he would neve
	r loose his hold. \"Mother\, mother!\" was all he could utter\; yet in tha
	t word was comprised a world of joy and affection.\n\nEsther soon came in 
	for her share of caresses\; then Charlie inquired\,\n\"Where's father?\"\n
	\n\"In here\,\" said Mrs. Ellis\, leading the way to an adjoining room. \"
	I don't think he will know you—perhaps he may.\"\n\nIn one corner of the
	 apartment\, propped up in a large easy chair by a number of pillows\, sat
	 poor Mr. Ellis\, gazing vacantly about the room and muttering to himself.
	 His hair had grown quite white\, and his form was emaciated in the extrem
	e\; there was a broad scar across his forehead\, and his dull\, lustreless
	 eyes were deeply sunken in his head. He took no notice of them as they ap
	proached\, but continued muttering and looking at his hands.\n\nCharlie wa
	s almost petrified at the change wrought in his father. A few months befor
	e he had left him in the prime of healthful manhood\; now he was bent and 
	spectrelike\, and old in appearance as if the frosts of eighty winters had
	 suddenly fallen on him. Mrs. Ellis laid her hand gently upon his shoulder
	\, and said\, \"Husband\, here's Charlie.\" He made no reply\, but continu
	ed muttering and examining his mutilated hands. \"It's Charlie\,\" she rep
	eated.\n\n\"Oh\, ay! nice little boy!\" he replied\, vacantly\; \"whose so
	n is he?\"\n\nMrs. Ellis's voice quivered as she reiterated\, \"It's Charl
	ie—our\nCharlie!—don't you know him?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes! nice little bo
	y—nice little boy. Oh!\" he continued\, in a suppressed and hurried tone
	\, as a look of alarm crossed his face\; \"run home quick\, little boy! an
	d tell your mother they're coming\, thousands of them\; they've guns\, and
	 swords\, and clubs. Hush! There they come—there they come!\" And he bur
	ied his face in the shawl\, and trembled in an agony of fright.\n\n\"Oh\, 
	mother\, this is dreadful!\" exclaimed Charlie. \"Don't he know any of you
	?\"\n\n\"Yes\; sometimes his mind comes back—very seldom\, though—only
	 for a very little while. Come away: talking to him sometimes makes him wo
	rse.\" And slowly and sorrowfully the two left the apartment.\n\nThat even
	ing\, after Mr. Ellis had been safely bestowed in bed\, the family gathere
	d round the fire in the room of Mrs. Ellis\, where Charlie entertained the
	m with a description of Warmouth and of the manner in which he had passed 
	the time whilst there. He was enthusiastic respecting Mrs. Bird and her ki
	ndness. \"Mother\, she is such a dear old lady: if I'd been as white as sn
	ow\, and her own son\, she couldn't have been kinder to me. She didn't wan
	t me to come away\, and cried ever so much. Let me show you what she gave 
	me!\" Charlie thrust his hand into his pocket\, and drew out a small walle
	t\, from which he counted out four ten-dollar bills\, two fives\, and a tw
	o dollar and a half gold piece\, \"Ain't I rich!\" said he\, as\, with the
	 air of a millionaire\, he tossed the money upon a table. \"Now\,\" he con
	tinued\, \"do you know what I'm about to do?\" Not receiving any answer fr
	om his wondering sisters or mother\, he added\, \"Why\, just this!—here\
	, mother\, this is yours\,\" said he\, placing the four ten-dollar bills b
	efore her\; \"and here are five apiece for Esther and Cad\; the balance is
	 for your humble servant. Now\, then\,\" he concluded\, \"what do you thin
	k of that?\"\n\nMrs. Ellis looked fondly at him\, and\, stroking his head\
	, told him that he was a good son\; and Esther and Caddy declared him to b
	e the best brother in town.\n\n\"Now\, girls\,\" said he\, with the air of
	 a patriarch\, \"what do you intend to do with your money?\"\n\n\"Mine wil
	l go towards buying me a dress\, and Esther will save hers for a particula
	r purpose\,\" said Caddy. \"I'll tell you something about her and Mr. Walt
	ers\,\" continued she\, with a mischievous look at her sister.\n\n\"Oh\, C
	addy—don't! Ain't you ashamed to plague me so?\" asked Esther\, blushing
	 to the roots of her hair. \"Mother\, pray stop her\,\" cried she\, pleadi
	ngly.\n\n\"Hush\, Caddy!\" interposed her mother\, authoritatively\; \"you
	 shall do no such thing.\"\n\n\"Well\,\" resumed Caddy\, \"mother says I m
	ustn't tell\; but I can say this much——\"\n\nEsther here put her hand 
	over her sister's mouth and effectually prevented any communication she wa
	s disposed to make.\n\n\"Never mind her\, Ess!\" cried Charlie\; \"you'll 
	tell me all in good time\, especially if it's anything worth knowing.\"\n\
	nEsther made no reply\, but\, releasing her sister\, hurried out of the ro
	om\, and went upstairs to Charlie's chamber\, where he found her on retiri
	ng for the night.\n\n\"I'm glad you're here\, Ess\,\" said he\, \"you'll i
	ndulge me. Here is the key—open my trunk and get me out a nightcap\; I'm
	 too tired\, or too lazy\, to get it for myself.\" Esther stooped down\, o
	pened the trunk\, and commenced searching for the article of head-gear in 
	question. \"Come\, Ess\,\" said Charles\, coaxingly\, \"tell me what this 
	is about you and Mr. Walters.\"\n\nShe made no reply at first\, but fumble
	d about in the bottom of the trunk\, professedly in search of the nightcap
	 which she at that moment held in her hand. \"Can't you tell me?\" he agai
	n asked.\n\n\"Oh\, there's nothing to tell\, Charlie!\" she answered.\n\n\
	"There must be something\, Ess\, or you wouldn't have blushed up so when C
	ad was about to speak of it. Do\,\" said he\, approaching her\, and puttin
	g his arm round her neck—\"do tell me all about it—I am sure there is 
	some secret!\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, Charlie—there is no secret\; it's only t
	his——\" Here she stopped\, and\, blushing\, turned her head away.\n\n\
	"Ess\, this is nonsense\,\" said Charlie\, impatiently: \"if it's anything
	 worth knowing\, why can't you tell a fellow? Come\,\" said he\, kissing h
	er\, \"tell me\, now\, like a dear old Ess as you are.\"\n\n\"Well\, Charl
	ie\,\" said she\, jerking the words out with an effort\, \"Mr.—Mr.\nWalt
	ers has asked me to marry him!\"\n\n\"Phew—gemini! that is news!\" excla
	imed Charlie. \"And are you going to accept him Ess?\"\n\n\"I don't know\,
	\" she answered.\n\n\"Don't know!\" repeated Charlie\, in a tone of surpri
	se. \"Why\, Ess\, I'm astonished at you—such a capital fellow as he is! 
	Half the girls of our acquaintance would give an eye for the chance.\"\n\n
	\"But he is so rich!\" responded Esther.\n\n\"Well\, now\, that's a great 
	objection\, ain't it! I should say\, all the better on that account\,\" re
	joined Charlie.\n\n\"The money is the great stumbling-block\,\" continued 
	she\; \"everybody would say I married him for that.\"\n\n\"Then everybody 
	would lie\, as everybody very often does! If I was you\, Ess\, and loved h
	im\, I shouldn't let his fortune stand in the way. I wish\,\" continued he
	\, pulling up his shirt-collar\, \"that some amiable young girl with a for
	tune of a hundred thousand dollars\, would make me an offer—I'd like to 
	catch myself refusing her!\"\n\nThe idea of a youth of his tender years ma
	rrying any one\, seemed so ludicrous to Esther\, that she burst into a hea
	rty fit of laughter\, to the great chagrin of our hero\, who seemed decide
	dly of the opinion that his sister had not a proper appreciation of his ye
	ars and inches.\n\n\"Don't laugh\, Ess\; but tell me—do you really inten
	d to refuse him?\"\n\n\"I can't decide yet\, Charlie\,\" answered she seri
	ously\; \"if we were situated as we were before—were not such absolute p
	aupers—I wouldn't hesitate to accept him\; but to bring a family of comp
	arative beggars upon him—I can't make up my mind to do that.\"\n\nCharli
	e looked grave as Esther made this last objection\; boy as he was\, he fel
	t its weight and justice. \"Well\, Ess\,\" rejoined he\, \"I don't know wh
	at to say about it—of course I can't advise. What does mother say?\"\n\n
	\"She leaves it entirely to me\,\" she answered. \"She says I must act jus
	t as\nI feel is right.\"\n\n\"I certainly wouldn't have him at all\, Ess\,
	 if I didn't love him\; and if I did\, I shouldn't let the money stand in 
	the way—so\, good night!\"\n\nCharlie slept very late the next morning\,
	 and was scarcely dressed when Esther knocked at his door\, with the cheer
	ful tidings that her father had a lucid interval and was waiting to see hi
	m.\n\nDressing himself hastily\, he followed her into their father's room.
	 When he entered\, the feeble sufferer stretched out his mutilated arms to
	wards him and clasped him round the neck\, \"They tell me\,\" said he\, \"
	that you came yesterday\, and that I didn't recognize you. I thought\, whe
	n I awoke this morning\, that I had a dim recollection of having seen some
	 dear face\; but my head aches so\, that I often forget—yes\, often forg
	et. My boy\,\" he continued\, \"you are all your mother and sisters have t
	o depend upon now\; I'm—I'm——\" here his voice faltered\, as he elev
	ated his stumps of hands—\"I'm helpless\; but you must take care of them
	. I'm an old man now\,\" said he despondingly.\n\n\"I will\, father\; I'll
	 try so hard\" replied Charlie.\n\n\"It was cruel in them\, wasn't it\, so
	n\,\" he resumed. \"See\, they've made me helpless for ever!\" Charlie res
	trained the tears that were forcing themselves up\, and rejoined\, \"Never
	 fear\, father! I'll do my best\; I trust I shall soon be able to take car
	e of you.\"\n\nHis father did not understand him—his mind was gone again
	\, and he was staring vacantly about him. Charlie endeavoured to recall hi
	s attention\, but failed\, for he began muttering about the mob and his ha
	nds\; they were compelled to quit the room\, and leave him to himself\, as
	 he always became quiet sooner by being left alone.\n\nCHAPTER XXVII.\nSud
	bury.\n\nWe must now admit our readers to a consultation that is progressi
	ng between Mr. Balch and Mr. Walters\, respecting the future of the two Ga
	rie children. They no doubt entered upon the conference with the warmest a
	nd most earnest desire of promoting the children's happiness\; but\, unfor
	tunately\, their decision failed to produce the wished-for result.\n\n\"I 
	scarcely thought you would have succeeded so well with him\,\" said Walter
	s\, \"he is such an inveterate scoundrel\; depend upon it nothing but the 
	fear of the exposure resulting from a legal investigation would ever have 
	induced that scamp to let twelve thousand dollars escape from his clutches
	. I am glad you have secured that much\; when we add it to the eight thous
	and already in my possession it will place them in very comfortable circum
	stances\, even if they never get any more.\"\n\n\"I think we have done ver
	y well\,\" rejoined Mr. Balch\; \"we were as much in his power as he was i
	n ours—not in the same way\, however\; a legal investigation\, no matter
	 how damaging it might have been to his reputation\, would not have placed
	 us in possession of the property\, or invalidated his claim as heir. I th
	ink\, on the whole\, we may as well be satisfied\, and trust in Providence
	 for the future. So now\, then\, we will resume our discussion of that mat
	ter we had under consideration the other day. I cannot but think that my p
	lan is best adapted to secure the boy's happiness.\"\n\n\"I'm sorry I cann
	ot agree with you\, Mr. Balch. I have tried to view your plan in the most 
	favourable light\, yet I cannot rid myself of a presentiment that it will 
	result in the ultimate discovery of his peculiar position\, and that most 
	probably at some time when his happiness is dependent upon its concealment
	. An undetected forger\, who is in constant fear of being apprehended\, is
	 happy in comparison with that coloured man who attempts\, in this country
	\, to hold a place in the society of whites by concealing his origin. He m
	ust live in constant fear of exposure\; this dread will embitter every enj
	oyment\, and make him the most miserable of men.\"\n\n\"You must admit\,\"
	 rejoined Mr. Balch\, \"that I have their welfare at heart. I have thought
	 the matter over and over\, and cannot\, for the life of me\, feel the wei
	ght of your objections. The children are peculiarly situated\; everything 
	seems to favour my views. Their mother (the only relative they had whose A
	frican origin was distinguishable) is dead\, and both of them are so excee
	dingly fair that it would never enter the brain of any one that they were 
	connected with coloured people by ties of blood. Clarence is old enough to
	 know the importance of concealing the fact\, and Emily might be kept with
	 us until her prudence also might be relied upon. You must acknowledge tha
	t as white persons they will be better off.\"\n\n\"I admit\,\" answered Mr
	. Walters\, \"that in our land of liberty it is of incalculable advantage 
	to be white\; that is beyond dispute\, and no one is more painfully aware 
	of it than I. Often I have heard men of colour say they would not be white
	 if they could—had no desire to change their complexions\; I've written 
	some down fools\; others\, liars. Why\,\" continued he\, with a sneering e
	xpression of countenance\, \"it is everything to be white\; one feels that
	 at every turn in our boasted free country\, where all men are upon an equ
	ality. When I look around me\, and see what I have made myself in spite of
	 circumstances\, and think what I might have been with the same heart and 
	brain beneath a fairer skin\, I am almost tempted to curse the destiny tha
	t made me what I am. Time after time\, when scraping\, toiling\, saving\, 
	I have asked myself. To what purpose is it all?—perhaps that in the futu
	re white men may point at and call me\, sneeringly\, 'a nigger millionaire
	\,' or condescend to borrow money of me. Ah! often\, when some negro-hatin
	g white man has been forced to ask a loan at my hands\, I've thought of Sh
	ylock and his pound of flesh\, and ceased to wonder at him. There's no dou
	bt\, my dear sir\, but what I fully appreciate the advantage of being whit
	e. Yet\, with all I have endured\, and yet endure from day to day\, I este
	em myself happy in comparison with that man\, who\, mingling in the societ
	y of whites\, is at the same time aware that he has African blood in his v
	eins\, and is liable at any moment to be ignominiously hurled from his pos
	ition by the discovery of his origin. He is never safe. I have known insta
	nces where parties have gone on for years and years undetected\; but some 
	untoward circumstance brings them out at last\, and down they fall for eve
	r.\"\n\n\"Walters\, my dear fellow\, you will persist in looking upon his 
	being discovered as a thing of course: I see no reason for the anticipatio
	n of any such result. I don't see how he is to be detected—it may never 
	occur. And do you feel justified in consigning them to a position which yo
	u know by painful experience to be one of the most disagreeable that can b
	e endured. Ought we not to aid their escape from it if we can?\"\n\nMr. Wa
	lters stood reflectively for some moments\, and then exclaimed\, \"I'll ma
	ke no farther objection\; I would not have the boy say to me hereafter\, '
	But for your persisting in identifying me with a degraded people\, I might
	 have been better and happier than I am.' However\, I cannot but feel that
	 concealments of this kind are productive of more misery than comfort.\"\n
	\n\"We will agree to differ about that\, Walters\; and now\, having your c
	onsent\, I shall not hesitate to proceed in the matter\, with full relianc
	e that the future will amply justify my choice.\"\n\n\"Well\, well! as I s
	aid before\, I will offer no further objection. Now let me hear the detail
	s of your plan.\"\n\n\"I have written\,\" answered Mr. Balch\, \"to Mr. Eu
	stis\, a friend of mine living at Sudbury\, where there is a large prepara
	tory school for boys. At his house I purpose placing Clarence. Mr. Eustis 
	is a most discreet man\, and a person of liberal sentiments. I feel that I
	 can confide everything to him without the least fear of his ever divulgin
	g a breath of it. He is a gentleman in the fullest sense of the term\, and
	 at his house the boy will have the advantage of good society\, and will a
	ssociate with the best people of the place.\"\n\n\"Has he a family?\" aske
	d Mr. Walters.\n\n\"He is a widower\,\" answered Mr. Balch\; \"a maiden si
	ster of his wife's presides over his establishment\; she will be kind to C
	larence\, I am confident\; she has a motherly soft heart\, and is remarkab
	ly fond of children. I have not the least doubt but that he will be very h
	appy and comfortable there. I think it very fortunate\, Walters\,\" he con
	tinued\, \"that he has so few coloured acquaintances—no boyish intimacie
	s to break up\; and it will be as well to send him away before he has an o
	pportunity of forming them. Besides\, being here\, where everything will b
	e so constantly reviving the remembrance of his recent loss\, he may grow 
	melancholy and stupid. I have several times noticed his reserve\, so unusu
	al in a child. His dreadful loss and the horrors that attended it have mad
	e\, a deep impression—stupified him\, to a certain extent\, I think. Wel
	l\, well! we will get him off\, and once away at school\, and surrounded b
	y lively boys\, this dulness will soon wear off.\"\n\nThe gentlemen having
	 fully determined upon his being sent\, it was proposed to bring him in im
	mediately and talk to him relative to it. He was accordingly sent for\, an
	d came into the room\, placing himself beside the chair of Mr. Walters.\n\
	nClarence had altered very much since the death of his parents. His face h
	ad grown thin and pale\, and he was much taller than when he came to Phila
	delphia: a shade of melancholy had overspread his face\; there was now in 
	his eyes that expression of intense sadness that characterized his mother'
	s. \"You sent for me?\" he remarked\, inquiringly\, to Mr. Walters.\n\n\"Y
	es\, my boy\,\" he rejoined\, \"we sent for you to have a little talk abou
	t school. Would you like to go to school again?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes!\" answere
	d Clarence\, his face lighting up with pleasure\; \"I should like it of al
	l things\; it would be much better than staying at home all day\, doing no
	thing\; the days are so long\,\" concluded he\, with a sigh.\n\n\"Ah! we w
	ill soon remedy that\,\" rejoined Mr. Balch\, \"when you go to\nSudbury.\"
	\n\n\"Sudbury!\" repeated Clarence\, with surprise\; \"where is that? I th
	ought you meant\, to go to school here.\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\, my dear\,\" said 
	Mr. Balch\, \"I don't know of any good school here\, such as you would lik
	e\; we wish to send you to a place where you will enjoy yourself finely\
	,—where you will have a number of boys for companions in your studies an
	d pleasures.\"\n\n\"And is Em going with me?\" he asked.\n\n\"Oh\, no\, th
	at is not possible\; it is a school for boys exclusively\; you can't take 
	your sister there\,\" rejoined Mr. Walters.\n\n\"Then I don't want to go\,
	\" said Clarence\, decidedly\; \"I don't want to go where I can't take Em 
	with me.\"\n\nMr. Balch exchanged glances with Mr. Walters\, and looked qu
	ite perplexed at this new opposition to his scheme. Nothing daunted\, howe
	ver\, by this difficulty\, he\, by dint of much talking and persuasion\, b
	rought Clarence to look upon the plan with favour\, and to consent relucta
	ntly to go without his sister.\n\nBut the most delicate part of the whole 
	business was yet to come—they must\nimpress upon the child the necessity
	 of concealing the fact that he was of\nAfrican origin. Neither seemed to 
	know how to approach the subject.\nClarence\, however\, involuntarily made
	 an opening for them by inquiring if\nEmily was to go to Miss Jordan's sch
	ool again.\n\n\"No\, my dear\,\" answered Mr. Balch\, \"Miss Jordan won't 
	permit her to attend school there.\"\n\n\"Why?\" asked Clarence.\n\n\"Beca
	use she is a coloured child\,\" rejoined Mr. Balch. \"Now\, Clarence\,\" h
	e continued\, \"you are old enough\, I presume\, to know the difference th
	at exists between the privileges and advantages enjoyed by the whites\, an
	d those that are at the command of the coloured people. White boys can go 
	to better schools\, and they can enter college and become professional men
	\, lawyers\, doctors\, &amp\;c\, or they may be merchants—in fact\, they
	 can be anything they please. Coloured people can enjoy none of these adva
	ntages\; they are shut out from them entirely. Now which of the two would 
	you rather be—coloured or white?\"\n\n\"I should much rather be white\, 
	of course\,\" answered Clarence\; \"but I am coloured\, and can't help mys
	elf\,\" said he\, innocently.\n\n\"But\, my child\, we are going to send y
	ou where it is not known that you are coloured\; and you must never\, neve
	r tell it\, because if it became known\, you would be expelled from the sc
	hool\, as you were from Miss Jordan's.\"\n\n\"I didn't know we were expell
	ed\,\" rejoined Clarence. \"I know she sent us home\, but I could not unde
	rstand what it was for. I'm afraid they will send me from the other school
	. Won't they know I am coloured?\"\n\n\"No\, my child\, I don't think they
	 will discover it unless you should be foolish enough to tell it yourself\
	, in which case both Mr. Walters and myself would be very much grieved.\"\
	n\n\"But suppose some one should ask me\,\" suggested Clarence.\n\n\"No on
	e will ever ask you such a question\,\" said Mr. Balch\, impatiently\; \"a
	ll you have to do is to be silent yourself on the subject. Should any of y
	our schoolmates ever make inquiries respecting your parents\, all you have
	 to answer is\, they were from Georgia\, and you are an orphan.\"\n\nClare
	nce's eyes began to moisten as Mr. Balch spoke of his parents\, and after 
	a few moments he asked\, with some hesitation\, \"Am I never to speak of m
	other? I love to talk of mother.\"\n\n\"Yes\, my dear\, of course you can 
	talk of your mother\,\" answered Mr. Balch\, with great embarrassment\; \"
	only\, you know\, my child\, you need not enter into particulars as regard
	s her appearance\; that is\, you—ah!—need not say she was a coloured w
	oman. You must not say that\; you understand?\"\n\n\"Yes\, sir\,\" answere
	d Clarence.\n\n\"Very well\, then\; bear that in mind. You must know\, Cla
	rence\,\" continued he\, \"that this concealment is necessary for your wel
	fare\, or we would not require it\; and you must let me impress it upon yo
	u\, that it is requisite that you attend strictly to our directions.\"\n\n
	Mr. Walters remained silent during most of this conversation. He felt a re
	pugnance to force upon the child a concealment the beneficial results of w
	hich were the reverse of obvious\, so he merely gave Clarence some useful 
	advice respecting his general conduct\, and then permitted him to leave th
	e room.\n\nThe morning fixed upon for their departure for Sudbury turned o
	ut to be cold and cheerless\; and Clarence felt very gloomy as he sat besi
	de his sister at their early breakfast\, of which he was not able to eat a
	 morsel. \"Do eat something\, Clary\,\" said she\, coaxingly\; \"only look
	 what nice buckwheat cakes these are\; cook got up ever so early on purpos
	e to bake them for you.\"\n\n\"No\, sis\,\" he replied\, \"I can't eat. I 
	feel so miserable\, everything chokes me.\"\n\n\"Well\, eat a biscuit\, th
	en\,\" she continued\, as she buttered it and laid it on his plate\; \"do 
	eat it\, now.\"\n\nMore to please her than from a desire to eat\, he force
	d down a few mouthfuls of it\, and drank a little tea\; then\, laying his 
	arm round her neck\, he said\, \"Em\, you must try hard to learn to write 
	soon\, so that I may hear from you at least once a week.\"\n\n\"Oh! I shal
	l soon know how\, I'm in g's and h's now. Aunt Esther—she says I may cal
	l her Aunt Esther—teaches me every day. Ain't I getting on nicely?\"\n\n
	\"Oh\, yes\, you learn very fast\,\" said Esther\, encouragingly\, as she 
	completed the pile of sandwiches she was preparing for the young traveller
	\; then\, turning to look at the timepiece on the mantel\, she exclaimed\,
	 \"Quarter to seven—how time flies! Mr. Balch will soon be here. You mus
	t be all ready\, Clarence\, so as not to keep him waiting a moment.\"\n\nC
	larence arose from his scarcely tasted meal\, began slowly to put on his o
	vercoat\, and make himself ready for the journey. Em tied on the warm wool
	len neck-comforter\, kissing him on each cheek as she did so\, and whilst 
	they were thus engaged\, Mr. Balch drove up to the door.\n\nCharlie\, who 
	had come down to see him off\, tried (with his mouth full of buckwheat cak
	e) to say something consolatory\, and gave it as his experience\, \"that a
	 fellow soon got over that sort of thing\; that separations must occur som
	etimes\,\" &amp\;c.—and\, on the whole\, endeavoured to talk in a very m
	anly and philosophical strain\; but his precepts and practice proved to be
	 at utter variance\, for when the moment of separation really came and he 
	saw the tearful embrace of Em and her brother\, he caught the infection of
	 grief\, and cried as heartily as the best of them. There was but little t
	ime\, however\, to spare for leave-takings\, and the young traveller and h
	is guardian were soon whirling over the road towards New York.\n\nBy a sin
	gular chance\, Clarence found himself in the same car in which he had form
	erly rode when they were on their way to Philadelphia: he recognized it by
	 some peculiar paintings on the panel of the door\, and the ornamental bor
	der of the ceiling. This brought back a tide of memories\, and he began co
	ntrasting that journey with the present. Opposite was the seat on which hi
	s parents had sat\, in the bloom of health\, and elate with\; joyous antic
	ipations\; he remembered—oh! so well—his father's pleasant smile\, his
	 mother's soft and gentle voice. Both now were gone. Death had made rigid 
	that smiling face—her soft voice was hushed for ever—and the cold snow
	 was resting on their bosoms in the little churchyard miles away. Truly th
	e contrast between now and then was extremely saddening\, and the child bo
	wed his head upon the seat\, and sobbed in bitter grief.\n\n\"What is the 
	matter?\" asked Mr. Balch\; \"not crying again\, I hope. I thought you wer
	e going to be a man\, and that we were not to have any more tears. Come!\"
	 continued he\, patting him encouragingly on the back\, \"cheer up! You ar
	e going to a delightful place\, where you will find a number of agreeable 
	playmates\, and have a deal of fun\, and enjoy yourself amazingly.\"\n\n\"
	But it won't be home\,\" replied Clarence.\n\n\"True\,\" replied Mr. Balch
	\, a little touched\, \"it won't seem so at first\; but you'll soon like i
	t\, I'll guarantee that.\"\n\nClarence was not permitted to indulge his gr
	ief to any great extent\, for Mr. Balch soon succeeded in interesting him 
	in the various objects that they passed on the way.\n\nOn the evening of t
	he next day they arrived at their destination\, and Clarence alighted from
	 the cars\, cold\, fatigued\, and spiritless. There had been a heavy fall 
	of snow a few days previous\, and the town of Sudbury\, which was built up
	on the hill-side\, shone white and sparkling in the clear winter moonlight
	.\n\nIt was the first time that Clarence had ever seen the ground covered 
	with snow\, and he could not restrain his admiration at the novel spectacl
	e it presented to him. \"Oh\, look!—oh\, do look! Mr. Balch\,\" he excla
	imed\, \"how beautifully white it looks\; it seems as if the town was buil
	t of salt.\"\n\nIt was indeed a pretty sight. Near them stood a clump of f
	antastic-shaped trees\, their gnarled limbs covered with snow\, and brilli
	ant with the countless icicles that glistened like precious stones in the 
	bright light that was reflected upon them from the windows of the station.
	 A little farther on\, between them and the town\, flowed a small stream\,
	 the waters of which were dimpling and sparkling in the moonlight. Beside 
	its banks arose stately cotton-mills\, and from their many windows hundred
	s of lights were shining. Behind them\, tier above tier\, were the houses 
	of the town\; and crowning the hill was the academy\, with its great dome 
	gleaming on its top like a silver cap upon a mountain of snow. The merry s
	leigh-bells and the crisp tramp of the horses upon the frozen ground were 
	all calculated to make a striking impression on one beholding such a scene
	 for the first time.\n\nClarence followed Mr. Balch into the sleigh\, deli
	ghted and bewildered with the surrounding objects. The driver whipped up h
	is horses\, they clattered over the bridge\, dashed swiftly through the to
	wn\, and in a very short period arrived at the dwelling of Mr. Eustis.\n\n
	The horses had scarcely stopped\, when the door flew open\, and a stream o
	f light from the hall shone down the pathway to the gate. Mr. Eustis came 
	out on the step to welcome them. After greeting Mr. Balch warmly\, he took
	 Clarence by the hand\, and led him into the room where his sister was sit
	ting.\n\n\"Here is our little friend\,\" said he to her\, as she arose and
	 approached them\; \"try and get him warm\, Ada—his hands are like ice.\
	"\n\nMiss Ada Bell welcomed Clarence in the most affectionate manner\, ass
	isted him to remove his coat\, unfastened his woollen neck-tie\, and smoot
	hed down his glossy black hair\; then\, warming a napkin\, she wrapped it 
	round his benumbed hands\, and held them in her own until the circulation 
	was restored and they were supple and comfortable again.\n\nMiss Ada Bell 
	appeared to be about thirty-five. She had good regular features\, hazel ey
	es\, and long chestnut curls: a mouth with the sweetest expression\, and a
	 voice so winning and affectionate in its tone that it went straight to th
	e hearts of all that listened to its music.\n\n\"Had you a pleasant journe
	y?\" she asked.\n\n\"It was rather cold\,\" answered Clarence\, \"and I am
	 not accustomed to frosty weather.\"\n\n\"And did you leave all your frien
	ds well?\" she continued\, as she chafed his hands.\n\n\"Quite well\, I th
	ank you\,\" he replied.\n\n\"I hear you have a little sister\; were you no
	t sorry to leave her behind?\"\n\nThis question called up the tearful face
	 of little Em and her last embrace. He could not answer\; he only raised h
	is mournful dark eyes to the face of Miss Ada\, and as he looked at her th
	ey grew moist\, and a tear sparkled on his long lashes. Miss Ada felt that
	 she had touched a tender chord\, so she stooped down and kissed his foreh
	ead\, remarking\, \"You have a good face\, Clarence\, and no doubt an equa
	lly good heart\; we shall get on charmingly together\, I know.\" Those kin
	d words won the orphan's heart\, and from that day forth. Clarence loved h
	er. Tea was soon brought upon the table\, and they all earnestly engaged i
	n the discussion of the various refreshments that Miss Ada's well-stocked 
	larder afforded. Everything was so fresh and nicely flavoured that both th
	e travellers ate very heartily\; then\, being much fatigued with their two
	 days' journey\, they seized an early opportunity to retire.\n\n* * * * *\
	n\nHere we leave Clarence for many years\; the boy will have become a man 
	ere we re-introduce him\, and\, till then\, we bid him adieu.\n\nCHAPTER X
	XVIII.\nCharlie seeks Employment.\n\nCharlie had been at borne some weeks\
	, comparatively idle\; at least he so considered himself\, as the little h
	e did in the way of collecting rents and looking up small accounts for Mr.
	 Walters he regarded as next to nothing\, it not occupying half his time. 
	A part of each day he spent in attendance on his father\, who seemed bette
	r satisfied with his ministrations than with those of his wife and daughte
	rs. This proved to be very fortunate for all parties\, as it enabled the g
	irls to concentrate their attention on their sewing—of which they had a 
	vast deal on hand.\n\nOne day\, when Esther and Charlie were walking out t
	ogether\, the latter remarked: \"Ess\, I wish I could find some regular an
	d profitable employment\, or was apprenticed to some good trade that would
	 enable me to assist mother a little\; I'd even go to service if I could d
	o no better—anything but being idle whilst you are all so hard at work. 
	It makes me feel very uncomfortable.\"\n\n\"I would be very glad if you co
	uld procure some suitable employment. I don't wish you to go to service ag
	ain\, that is out of the question. Of whom have you made inquiry respectin
	g a situation.\"\n\n\"Oh\, of lots of people\; they can tell me of any num
	ber of families who are in want of a footman\, but no one appears to know 
	of a 'person who is willing to receive a black boy as an apprentice to a r
	espectable calling. It's too provoking\; I really think\, Ess\, that the m
	ajority of white folks imagine that we are only fit for servants\, and inc
	apable of being rendered useful in any other capacity. If that terrible mi
	sfortune had not befallen father\, I should have learned his trade.\"\n\n\
	"Ah!\" sighed Esther\, \"but for that we should all have been happier. But
	\, Charlie\,\" she added\, \"how do you know that you cannot obtain any ot
	her employment than that of a servant? Have you ever applied personally to
	 any one?\"\n\n\"No\, Esther\, I haven't\; but you know as well as I that 
	white masters won't receive coloured apprentices.\"\n\n\"I think a great d
	eal of that is taken for granted\,\" rejoined Esther\, \"try some one your
	self.\"\n\n\"I only wish I knew of any one to try\,\" responded Charlie\, 
	\"I'd hazard the experiment at any rate.\"\n\n\"Look over the newspaper in
	 the morning\,\" advised Esther\; \"there are always a great many wants ad
	vertised—amongst them you may perhaps find something suitable.\"\n\n\"We
	ll\, I will Ess—now then we won't talk about that any more—pray tell m
	e\, if I'm not too inquisitive\, what do you purpose buying with your mone
	y—a wedding-dress\, eh?\" he asked\, with a merry twinkle in his eye.\n\
	nEsther blushed and sighed\, as she answered: \"No\, Charlie\, that is all
	 over for the present. I told him yesterday I could not think of marrying 
	now\, whilst we are all so unsettled. It grieved me to do it\, Charlie\, b
	ut I felt that it was my duty. Cad and I are going to add our savings to m
	other's\; that\, combined with what we shall receive for father's tools\, 
	good-will\, &amp\;c\, will be sufficient to furnish another house\; and as
	 soon as we can succeed in that\, we will leave Mr. Walters\, as it is emb
	arrassing to remain under present circumstances.\"\n\n\"And what is to bec
	ome of little Em?—she surely won't remain alone with him?\"\n\n\"Mr. Wal
	ters has proposed that when we procure a house she shall come and board wi
	th us. He wants us to take one of his houses\, and offers some fabulous su
	m for the child's board\, which it would be unreasonable in us to take. De
	ar\, good man\, he is always complaining that we are too proud\, and won't
	 let him assist us when he might. If we find a suitable house I shall be d
	elighted to have her. I love the child for her mother's sake and her own.\
	"\n\n\"I wonder if they will ever send her away\, as they did Clarence?\" 
	asked\nCharlie.\n\n\"I do not know\,\" she rejoined. \"Mr. Balch told me t
	hat he should not insist upon it if the child was unwilling.\"\n\nThe next
	 day Charlie purchased all the morning papers he could obtain\, and sat do
	wn to look over the list of wants. There were hungry people in want of pro
	fessed cooks\; divers demands for chamber-maids\, black or white\; special
	 inquiries for waiters and footmen\, in which the same disregard of colour
	 was observable\; advertisements for partners in all sorts of businesses\,
	 and for journeymen in every department of mechanical operations\; then th
	ere were milliners wanted\, sempstresses\, and even theatrical assistants\
	, but nowhere in the long columns could he discover: \"Wanted\, a boy.\" C
	harlie searched them over and over\, but the stubborn fact stared him in t
	he face—there evidently were no boys wanted\; and he at length concluded
	 that he either belonged to a very useless class\, or that there was an un
	accountable prejudice existing in the city against the rising generation.\
	n\nCharlie folded up the papers with a despairing sigh\, and walked to the
	 post-office to mail a letter to Mrs. Bird that he had written the previou
	s evening. Having noticed a number of young men examining some written not
	ices that were posted up\, he joined the group\, and finding it was a list
	 of wants he eagerly read them over.\n\nTo his great delight he found ther
	e was one individual at least\, who thought boys could be rendered useful 
	to society\, and who had written as follows: \"Wanted\, a youth of about t
	hirteen years of age who writes a good hand\, and is willing to make himse
	lf useful in an office.—Address\, Box No. 77\, Post-office.\"\n\n\"I'm t
	heir man!\" said Charlie to himself\, as he finished perusing it—\"I'm j
	ust the person. I'll go home and write to them immediately\;\" and accordi
	ngly he hastened back to the house\, sat down\, and wrote a reply to the a
	dvertisement. He then privately showed it to Esther\, who praised the writ
	ing and composition\, and pronounced the whole very neatly done.\n\nCharli
	e then walked down to the post-office to deposit his precious reply\; and 
	after dropping it into the brass mouth of the mail-box\, he gazed in after
	 it\, and saw it glide slowly down into the abyss below.\n\nHow many more 
	had stopped that day to add their contributions to the mass which Charlie'
	s letter now joined? Merchants on the brink of ruin had deposited missives
	 whose answer would make or break them\; others had dropped upon the swell
	ing heap tidings that would make poor men rich—rich men richer\; maidens
	 came with delicately written notes\, perfumed and gilt-edged\, eloquent w
	ith love—and cast them amidst invoices and bills of lading. Letters of c
	ondolence and notes of congratulation jostled each other as they slid down
	 the brass throat\; widowed mothers' tender epistles to wandering sons\; t
	he letters of fond wives to absent husbands\; erring daughters' last appea
	ls to outraged parents\; offers of marriage\; invitations to funerals\; ho
	pe and despair\; joy and sorrow\; misfortune and success—had glided in o
	ne almost unbroken stream down that ever-distended and insatiable brass th
	roat.\n\nCharlie gave one more look at the opening\, then sauntered homewa
	rd\, building by the way houses of fabulous dimensions\, with the income h
	e anticipated from the situation if he succeeded in procuring it. Througho
	ut the next day he was in a state of feverish anxiety and expectation\, an
	d Mrs. Ellis two or three times inquired the meaning of the mysterious whi
	sperings and glances that were exchanged between him and Esther. The day w
	ore away\, and yet no answer—the next came and passed\, still no communi
	cation\; and Charlie had given up in despair\, when he was agreeably surpr
	ised by the following:——\n\n\"Messrs. Twining\, Western\, and Twining 
	will be much obliged to Charles Ellis\, if he will call at their office\, 
	567\, Water-street\, to-morrow morning at eleven o'clock\, as they would l
	ike to communicate further with him respecting a situation in their establ
	ishment.\"\n\nCharlie flew up stairs to Esther's room\, and rushing in pre
	cipitately\, exclaimed\, \"Oh! Ess—I've got it\, I've got it—see here\
	,\" he shouted\, waving the note over his head\; \"Hurrah! Hurrah! Just re
	ad it\, Ess\, only just read it!\"\n\n\"How can I\, Charlie?\" said she\, 
	with a smile\, \"if you hold it in your hand and dance about in that frant
	ic style—give it me. There now—keep quiet a moment\, and let me read i
	t.\" After perusing it attentively\, Esther added\, \"Don't be too sanguin
	e\, Charlie. You see by the tenor of the note that the situation is not pr
	omised you\; they only wish to see you respecting it. You may not secure i
	t\, after all—some obstacle may arise of which we are not at present awa
	re.\"\n\n\"Go on\, old raven—croak away!\" said Charlie\, giving her at 
	the same time a facetious poke.\n\n\"There's many a slip between the cup a
	nd the lip\,\" she added.\n\n\"Oh\, Ess!\" he rejoined\, \"don't throw col
	d water on a fellow in that style—don't harbour so many doubts. Do you t
	hink they would take the trouble to write if they did not intend to give m
	e the situation? Go away\, old raven\,\" concluded he\, kissing her\, \"an
	d don't let us have any more croaking.\"\n\nCharlie was bounding from the 
	room\, when he was stopped by his sister\, who begged him not to say anyth
	ing to their mother respecting it\, but wait until they knew the issue of 
	the interview\; and\, if he secured the situation\, it would be a very agr
	eeable surprise to her.\n\nWe will now visit\, in company with the reader\
	, the spacious offices of Messrs. Twining\, Western\, and Twining\, where 
	we shall find Mr. Western about consigning to the waste-paper basket a lar
	ge pile of letters. This gentleman was very fashionably dressed\, of dark 
	complexion\, with the languid air and drawling intonation of a Southerner.
	\n\nAt an adjoining desk sat an elderly sharp-faced gentleman\, who was lo
	oking over his spectacles at the movements of his partner. \"What a mass o
	f letters you are about to destroy\,\" he remarked.\n\nMr. Western took fr
	om his month the cigar he was smoking\, and after puffing from between his
	 lips a thin wreath of smoke\, replied: \"Some of the most atwocious scwaw
	ls that man ever attempted to pewuse\,—weplies to the advertisement. Out
	 of the whole lot there wasn't more than a dozen amongst them that were we
	ally pwesentable. Here is one wemawkably well witten: I have desiwed the w
	iter to call this morning at eleven. I hope he will make as favouwable an 
	impwession as his witing has done. It is now almost eleven—I pwesume he 
	will be here soon.\"\n\nScarcely had Mr. Western finished speaking\, ere t
	he door opened\, and Esther entered\, followed by Charlie. Both the gentle
	men rose\, and Mr. Twining offered her a chair.\n\nEsther accepted the pro
	ffered seat\, threw up her veil\, and said\, in a slightly embarrassed ton
	e\, \"My brother here\, took the liberty of replying to an advertisement o
	f yours\, and you were kind enough to request him to call at eleven to-day
	.\"\n\n\"We sent a note to your brother?\" said Mr. Twining\, in a tone of
	 surprise.\n\n\"Yes\, sir\, and here it is\,\" said she\, extending it to 
	him.\n\nMr. Twining glanced over it\, and remarked\, \"This is your writin
	g\, Western\;\" then taking Charlie's letter from the desk of Mr. Western\
	, he asked\, in a doubting tone\, \"Is this your own writing and compositi
	on?\"\n\n\"My own writing and composing\,\" answered Charlie.\n\n\"And it 
	is vewy cweditable to you\, indeed\,\" said Mr. Western.\n\nBoth the gentl
	emen looked at the note again\, then at Charlie\, then at Esther\, and las
	tly at each other\; but neither seemed able to say anything\, and evident 
	embarrassment existed on both sides.\n\n\"And so you thought you would twy
	 for the situation\,\" at last remarked Mr.\nWestern to Charlie.\n\n\"Yes\
	, sir\,\" he answered. \"I was and am very anxious to obtain some employme
	nt.\" \"Have you a father?\" asked Mr. Twining.\n\n\"Yes\, sir\; but he wa
	s badly injured by the mob last summer\, and will never be able to work ag
	ain.\"\n\n\"That's a pity\,\" said Western\, sympathisingly\; \"and what h
	ave you been doing?\"\n\n\"Nothing very recently. I broke my arm last spri
	ng\, and was obliged to go into the country for my health. I have not long
	 returned.\"\n\n\"Do your pawents keep house?\"\n\n\"Not at present. We ar
	e staying with a friend. Our house was burned down by the rioters.\"\n\nTh
	is conversation recalled so vividly their past trials\, that Esther's eyes
	 grew watery\, and she dropped her veil to conceal a tear that was trembli
	ng on the lid.\n\n\"How vewy unfortunate!\" said Mr. Western\, sympathisin
	gly\; \"vewy twying\, indeed!\" then burying his chin in his hand\, he sat
	 silently regarding them for a moment or two.\n\n\"Have you come to any de
	cision about taking him?\" Esther at last ventured to ask of Mr. Twining.\
	n\n\"Taking him!—oh\, dear me\, I had almost forgot. Charles\, let me se
	e you write something—here\, take this seat.\"\n\nCharlie sat down as di
	rected\, and dashed off a few lines\, which he handed to Mr. Twining\, who
	 looked at it over and over\; then rising\, he beckoned to his partner to 
	follow him into an adjoining room.\n\n\"Well\, what do you say?\" asked We
	stern\, after they had closed the door behind them. \"Don't you think we h
	ad better engage him?\"\n\n\"Engage him!\" exclaimed Twining—\"why\, you
	 surprise me\, Western—the thing's absurd\; engage a coloured boy as und
	er clerk! I never heard of such a thing.\"\n\n\"I have often\,\" drawled W
	estern\; \"there are the gweatest number of them in\nNew Orleans.\"\n\n\"A
	h\, but New Orleans is a different place\; such a thing never occurred in\
	nPhiladelphia.\"\n\n\"Well\, let us cweate a pwecedent\, then. The boy wit
	es wemarkably well\, and will\, no doubt\, suit us exactly. It will be a c
	hawity to take him. We need not care what others say—evewybody knows who
	 we are and what we are?\"\n\n\"No\, Western\; I know the North better tha
	n you do\; it wouldn't answer at all here. We cannot take the boy—it is 
	impossible\; it would create a rumpus amongst the clerks\, who would all f
	eel dreadfully insulted by our placing a nigger child on an equality with 
	them. I assure you the thing is out of the question.\"\n\n\"Well\, I must 
	say you Northern people are perfectly incompwehensible. You pay taxes to h
	ave niggers educated\, and made fit for such places—and then won't let t
	hem fill them when they are pwepared to do so. I shall leave you\, then\, 
	to tell them we can't take him. I'm doosed sowwy for it—I like his looks
	.\"\n\nWhilst Mr. Western and his partner were discussing in one room\, Ch
	arlie and\nEsther were awaiting with some anxiety their decision in the ot
	her.\n\n\"I think they are going to take me\,\" said Charlie\; \"you saw h
	ow struck they appeared to be with the writing.\"\n\n\"They admired it\, I
	 know\, my dear\; but don't be too sanguine.\"\n\n\"I feel sure they are g
	oing to take me\,\" repeated he with a hopeful countenance.\n\nEsther made
	 no reply\, and they remained in silence until Mr. Twining returned to the
	 room.\n\nAfter two or three preparatory ahems\, he said to Esther\; \"I s
	hould like to take your brother very much\; but you see\, in consequence o
	f there being so much excitement just now\, relative to Abolitionism and k
	indred subjects\, that my partner and myself—that is\, I and Mr. Weste
	rn—think—or rather feel—that just now it would be rather awkward for
	 us to receive him. We should like to take him\; but his colour\, miss—h
	is complexion is a fatal objection. It grieves me to be obliged to tell yo
	u this\; but I think\, under the circumstances\, it would be most prudent 
	for us to decline to receive him. We are very sorry—but our clerks are a
	ll young men\, and have a great deal of prejudice\, and I am sure he would
	 be neither comfortable nor happy with them. If I can serve you in any oth
	er way—\"\n\n\"There is nothing that you can do that I am aware of\,\" s
	aid Esther\, rising\;\n\"I thank you\, and am sorry that we have occupied 
	so much of your time.\"\n\n\"Oh\, don't mention it\,\" said Mr. Twining\, 
	evidently happy to get rid of them\; and\, opening the door\, he bowed the
	m out of the office.\n\nThe two departed sadly\, and they walked on for so
	me distance in silence. At last Esther pressed his hand\, and\, in a choki
	ng voice\, exclaimed\, \"Charlie\, my dear boy\, I'd give my life if it wo
	uld change your complexion—if it would make you white! Poor fellow! your
	 battle of life will be a hard one to fight!\"\n\n\"I know it\, Ess\; but 
	I shouldn't care to be white if I knew I would not have a dear old Ess lik
	e you for a sister\,\" he answered\, pressing her hand affectionately. \"I
	 don't intend to be conquered\,\" he continued\; \"I'll fight it out to th
	e last—this won't discourage me. I'll keep on trying\,\" said he\, deter
	minedly—\"if one won't\, perhaps another will.\"\n\nFor two or three day
	s Charlie could hear of nothing that would be at all suitable for him. At 
	last\, one morning he saw an advertisement for a youth to learn the engrav
	er's business—one who had some knowledge of drawing preferred\; to apply
	 at Thomas Blatchford's\, bank-note engraver. \"Thomas Blatchford\,\" repe
	ated Mr. Walters\, as Charlie read it over—\"why that is the Mr. Blatchf
	ord\, the Abolitionist. I think you have some chance there most decidedl
	y—I would advise you to take those sketches of yours and apply at once.\
	"\n\nCharlie ran upstairs\, and selecting the best-executed of his drawing
	s\, put them in a neat portfolio\, and\, without saying anything to Esther
	 or his mother\, hastened away to Mr. Blatchford's. He was shown into a ro
	om where a gentleman was sitting at a table examining some engraved plates
	. \"Is this Mr. Blatchford's?\" asked Charlie.\n\n\"That is my name\, my l
	ittle man—do you want to see me\,\" he kindly inquired.\n\n\"Yes\, sir. 
	You advertised for a boy to learn the engraving business\, I believe.\"\n\
	n\"Well\; and what then?\"\n\n\"I have come to apply for the situation.\"\
	n\n\"You—you apply?\" said he\, in a tone of surprise.\n\n\"Yes\, sir\,\
	" faltered Charlie\; \"Mr. Walters recommended me to do so.\"\n\n\"Ah\, yo
	u know Mr. Walters\, then\,\" he rejoined.\n\n\"Yes\, sir\; he is a great 
	friend of my father's—we are living with him at present.\"\n\n\"What hav
	e you in your portfolio\, there?\" enquired Mr. Blatchford. Charlie spread
	 before him the sketches he had made during the summer\, and also some orn
	amental designs suitable for the title-pages of books. \"Why\, these are e
	xcellently well done\,\" exclaimed he\, after examining them attentively\;
	 \"who taught you?\"\n\nCharlie hereupon briefly related his acquaintance 
	with the artist\, and his efforts to obtain employment\, and their results
	\, besides many other circumstances connected with himself and family. Mr.
	 Blatchford became deeply interested\, and\, at the end of a long conversa
	tion\, delighted Charlie by informing him that if he and his mother could 
	agree as to terms he should be glad to receive him as an apprentice.\n\nCh
	arlie could scarcely believe the evidence of his own ears\, and leaving hi
	s portfolio on the table was hastening away.\n\n\"Stop! stop!\" cried Mr. 
	Blatchford\, with a smile\; \"you have not heard all I wish to say. I woul
	d be much obliged to your mother if she would call at my house this evenin
	g\, and then we can settle the matter definitely.\"\n\nCharlie seemed to t
	read on air as he walked home. Flying up to Esther—his usual confidant
	—be related to her the whole affair\, and gave at great length his conve
	rsation with Mr. Blatchford.\n\n\"That looks something like\,\" said she\;
	 \"I am delighted with the prospect that is opening to you. Let us go and 
	tell mother\,\"—and\, accordingly\, off they both started\, to carry the
	 agreeable intelligence to Mrs. Ellis.\n\nThat\, evening Charlie\, his mot
	her\, and Mr. Walters went to the house of Mr. Blatchford. They were most\
	, kindly received\, and all the arrangements made for Charlie's apprentice
	ship. He was to remain one month on trial\; and if\, at the end of that pe
	riod\, all parties were satisfied\, he was to be formally indentured.\n\nC
	harlie looked forward impatiently to the following Monday\, on which day h
	e was to commence his apprenticeship. In the intervening time he held dail
	y conferences with Kinch\, as he felt their intimacy would receive a sligh
	t check after he entered upon his new pursuit.\n\n\"Look here\, old fellow
	\,\" said Charlie\; \"it won't do for you to be lounging on the door-steps
	 of the office\, nor be whistling for me under the windows. Mr. Blatchford
	 spoke particularly against my having playmates around in work hours\; eve
	nings I shall always be at home\, and then you can come and see me as ofte
	n as you like.\"\n\nSince his visit to Warmouth\, Charlie had been much mo
	re particular respecting his personal appearance\, dressed neater\, and wa
	s much more careful of his clothes. He had also given up marbles\, and tri
	ed to persuade Kinch to do the same.\n\n\"I'd cut marbles\, Kinch\,\" said
	 he to him one evening\, when they were walking together\, \"if I were you
	\; it makes one such a fright—covers one with chalk-marks and dirt from 
	head to foot. And another thing\, Kinch\; you have an abundance of good cl
	othes—do wear them\, and try and look more like a gentleman.\"\n\n\"Dear
	 me!\" said Kinch\, rolling up the white of his eyes—\"just listen how w
	e are going on! Hadn't I better get an eye-glass and pair of light kid glo
	ves?\"\n\n\"Oh\, Kinch!\" said Charlie\, gravely\, \"I'm not joking—I me
	an what I say. You don't know how far rough looks and an untidy person go 
	against one. I do wish you would try and keep yourself decent.\" \"Well\, 
	there then—I will\,\" answered Kinch. \"But\, Charlie\, I'm afraid\, wit
	h your travelling and one thing or other\, you will forget your old playma
	te by-and-by\, and get above him.\"\n\nCharlie's eyes moistened\; and\, wi
	th a boy's impulsiveness\, he threw his arm over Kinch's shoulder\, and ex
	claimed with emphasis\, \"Never\, old fellow\, never—not as long as my n
	ame is Charlie Ellis! You mustn't be hurt at what I said\, Kinch—I think
	 more of these things than I used to—I see the importance of them. I fin
	d that any one who wants to get on must be particular in little things as 
	well great\, and I must try and be a man now—for you know things don't g
	lide on as smoothly with us as they used. I often think of our fun in the 
	old house—ah\, perhaps we'll have good times in another of our own yet
	!\"—and with this Charlie and his friend separated for the night.\n\nCHA
	PTER XXIX.\nClouds and Sunshine.\n\nThe important Monday at length arrived
	\, and Charlie hastened to the office of Mr. Blatchford\, which he reached
	 before the hour for commencing labour. He found some dozen or more journe
	ymen assembled in the work-room\; and noticed that upon his entrance there
	 was an interchange of significant glances\, and once or twice he overhear
	d the whisper of \"nigger.\"\n\nMr. Blatchford was engaged in discussing s
	ome business matter with a gentleman\, and did not observe the agitation t
	hat Charlie's entrance had occasioned. The conversation having terminated\
	, the gentleman took up the morning paper\, and Mr. Blatchford\, noticing 
	Charlie\, said\, \"Ah! you have come\, and in good time\, too. Wheeler\,\"
	 he continued\, turning to one of the workmen\, \"I want you to take this 
	boy under your especial charge: give him a seat at your window\, and overl
	ook his work.\"\n\nAt this there was a general uprising of the workmen\, w
	ho commenced throwing off their caps and aprons. \"What is all this for?\"
	 asked Mr. Blatchford in astonishment—\"why this commotion?\"\n\n\"We wo
	n't work with niggers!\" cried one\; \"No nigger apprentices!\" cried anot
	her\; and \"No niggers—no niggers!\" was echoed from all parts of the ro
	om.\n\n\"Silence!\" cried Mr. Blatchford\, stamping violently—\"silence\
	, every one of you!\" As soon as partial order was restored\, he turned to
	 Wheeler\, and demanded\, \"What is the occasion of all this tumult—what
	 does it mean?\"\n\n\"Why\, sir\, it means just this: the men and boys dis
	covered that you intended to take a nigger apprentice\, and have made up t
	heir minds if you do they will quit in a body.\"\n\n\"It cannot be possibl
	e\,\" exclaimed the employer\, \"that any man or boy in my establishment h
	as room in his heart for such narrow contemptible prejudices. Can it be th
	at you have entered into a conspiracy to deprive an inoffensive child of a
	n opportunity of earning his bread in a respectable manner? Come\, let me 
	persuade you—the boy is well-behaved and educated!\"\n\n\"Damn his behav
	iour and education!\" responded a burly fellow\; \"let him be a barber or 
	shoe-black—that is all niggers are good for. If he comes\, we go—that'
	s so\, ain't it\, boys?\"\n\nThere was a general response of approval to t
	his appeal\; and Mr. Blatchford\, seeing the utter uselessness of further 
	parleying\, left the room\, followed by Charlie and the gentleman with who
	m he had been conversing.\n\nMr. Blatchford was placed in a most disagreea
	ble position by this revolt on the part of his workmen\; he had just recei
	ved large orders from some new banks which were commencing operations\, an
	d a general disruption of his establishment at that moment would have ruin
	ed him. To accede to his workmen's demands he must do violence to his own 
	conscience\; but he dared not sacrifice his business and bring ruin on him
	self and family\, even though he was right.\n\n\"What would you do\, Burre
	ll?\" he asked of the gentleman who had followed them out.\n\n\"There is n
	o question as to what you must do. You mustn't ruin yourself for the sake 
	of your principles. You will have to abandon the lad\; the other alternati
	ve is not to be thought of for a moment.\"\n\n\"Well\, Charles\, you see h
	ow it is\,\" said Mr. Blatchford\, reluctantly. Charlie had been standing 
	intently regarding the conversation that concerned him so deeply. His face
	 was pale and his lips quivering with agitation.\n\n\"I'd like to keep you
	\, my boy\, but you see how I'm situated\, I must either give up you or my
	 business\; the latter I cannot afford to do.\" With a great effort Charli
	e repressed his tears\, and bidding them good morning in a choking voice\,
	 hastened from the room.\n\n\"It's an infernal shame!\" said Mr. Blatchfor
	d\, indignantly\; \"and I shall think meanly of myself for ever for submit
	ting to it\; but I can't help myself\, and must make the best of it.\"\n\n
	Charlie walked downstairs with lingering steps\, and took the direction of
	 home. \"All because I'm coloured\,\" said he\, bitterly\, to himself—\"
	all because I'm coloured! What will mother and Esther say? How it will dis
	tress them—they've so built upon it! I wish\,\" said he\, sadly\, \"that
	 I was dead!\" No longer able to repress the tears that were welling up\, 
	he walked towards the window of a print-store\, where he pretended to be d
	eeply interested in some pictures whilst he stealthily wiped his eyes. Eve
	ry time he turned to leave the window\, there came a fresh flood of tears\
	; and at last he was obliged to give way entirely\, and sobbed as if his h
	eart would break.\n\nHe was thus standing when he felt a hand laid familia
	rly on his shoulder\, and\, on turning round\, he beheld the gentleman he 
	had left in Mr. Blatchford's office. \"Come\, my little man\,\" said he\, 
	\"don't take it so much to heart. Cheer up—you may find some other perso
	n willing to employ you. Come\, walk on with me—where do you live?\" Cha
	rlie dried his eyes and gave him his address as they walked on up the stre
	et together.\n\nMr. Burrell talked encouragingly\, and quite succeeded in 
	soothing him ere they separated. \"I shall keep a look out for you\,\" sai
	d he\, kindly\; \"and if I hear of anything likely to suit you\, I shall l
	et you know.\"\n\nCharlie thanked him and sauntered slowly home. When he a
	rrived\, and they saw his agitated looks\, and his eyes swollen from the e
	ffect of recent tears\, there was a general inquiry of \"What has happened
	? Why are you home so early\; are you sick?\"\n\nCharlie hereupon related 
	all that had transpired at the office—his great disappointment and the o
	ccasion of it—to the intense indignation and grief of his mother and sis
	ters. \"I wish there were no white folks\,\" said Caddy\, wrathfully\; \"t
	hey are all\, I believe\, a complete set of villains and everything else t
	hat is bad.\"\n\n\"Don't be so sweeping in your remarks\, pray don't\, Cad
	dy\,\" interposed Esther\; \"you have just heard what Charlie said of Mr. 
	Blatchford—his heart is kindly disposed\, at any rate\; you see he is tr
	ammelled by others.\"\n\n\"Oh! well\, I don't like any of them—I hate th
	em all!\" she continued bitterly\, driving her needle at the same time int
	o the cloth she was sewing\, as if it was a white person she had in her la
	p and she was sticking pins in him. \"Don't cry\, Charlie\,\" she added\; 
	\"the old white wretches\, they shouldn't get a tear out of me for fifty t
	rades!\" But Charlie could not be comforted\; he buried his head in his mo
	ther's lap\, and wept over his disappointment until he made himself sick.\
	n\nThat day\, after Mr. Burrell had finished his dinner\, he remarked to h
	is wife\, \"I saw something this morning\, my dear\, that made a deep impr
	ession on me. I haven't been able to get it out of my head for any length 
	of time since\; it touched me deeply\, I assure you.\"\n\n\"Why\, what cou
	ld it have been? Pray tell me what it was.\"\n\nThereupon\, he gave his wi
	fe a graphic account of the events that had transpired at Blatchford's in 
	the morning\; and in conclusion\, said\, \"Now\, you know\, my dear\, that
	 no one would call me an Abolitionist\; and I suppose I have some little p
	rejudice\, as well as others\, against coloured people\; but I had no idea
	 that sensible men would have carried it to that extent\, to set themselve
	s up\, as they did\, in opposition to a little boy anxious to earn his bre
	ad by learning a useful trade.\"\n\nMrs. Burrell was a young woman of abou
	t twenty-two\, with a round good-natured face and plump comfortable-lookin
	g figure\; she had a heart overflowing with kindness\, and was naturally m
	uch affected by what he related. \"I declare it's perfectly outrageous\,\"
	 exclaimed she\, indignantly\; \"and I wonder at Blatchford for submitting
	 to it. I wouldn't allow myself to be dictated to in that manner—and he 
	such an Abolitionist too! Had I been him\, I should have stuck to my princ
	iples at any risk. Poor little fellow! I so wonder at Blatchford\; I reall
	y don't think he has acted manly.\"\n\n\"Not so fast\, my little woman\, i
	f you please—that is the way with almost all of you\, you let your heart
	s run away with your heads. You are unjust to Blatchford\; he could not he
	lp himself\, he was completely in their power. It is almost impossible at 
	present to procure workmen in our business\, and he is under contract to f
	inish a large amount of work within a specified time\; and if he should fa
	il to fulfil his agreement it would subject him to immense loss—in fact\
	, it would entirely ruin him. You are aware\, my dear\, that I am thorough
	ly acquainted with the state of his affairs\; he is greatly in debt from u
	nfortunate speculations\, and a false step just now would overset him comp
	letely\; he could not have done otherwise than he has\, and do justice to 
	himself and his family. I felt that he could not\; and in fact advised him
	 to act as he did.\"\n\n\"Now\, George Burrell\, you didn't\,\" said she\,
	 reproachfully.\n\n\"Yes I did\, my dear\, because I thought of his family
	\; I really believe though\, had I encouraged him\, he would have made the
	 sacrifice.\"\n\n\"And what became of the boy?\"\n\n\"Oh\; poor lad\, he s
	eemed very much cut down by it—I was quite touched by his grief. When I 
	came out\, I found him standing by a shop window crying bitterly. I tried 
	to pacify him\, and told him I would endeavour to obtain a situation for h
	im somewhere—and I shall.\"\n\n\"Has he parents?\" asked Mrs. Burrell.\n
	\n\"Yes\; and\, by the way\, don't you remember whilst the mob was raging 
	last summer\, we read an account of a man running to the roof of a house t
	o escape from the rioters? You remember they chopped his hands off and thr
	ew him over?\"\n\n\"Oh\, yes\, dear\, I recollect\; don't—don't mention 
	it\,\" said she\, with a shudder of horror. \"I remember it perfectly.\"\n
	\n\"Well\, this little fellow is his son\,\" continued Mr. Burrell.\n\n\"I
	ndeed! and what has become of his father—did he die?\"\n\n\"No\, he part
	ially recovered\, but is helpless\, and almost an idiot. I never saw a chi
	ld\, apparently so anxious to get work\; he talked more like a man with a 
	family dependent upon him for support\, than a youth. I tell you what\, I 
	became quite interested in him\; he was very communicative\, and told me a
	ll their circumstances\; their house was destroyed by the mob\, and they a
	re at present residing with a friend.\"\n\nJust then the cry of a child wa
	s heard in the adjoining room\, and Mrs. Burrell rushed precipitately away
	\, and soon returned with a fat\, healthy-looking boy in her arms\, which\
	, after kissing\, she placed in her husband's lap. He was their first-born
	 and only child\, and\, as a matter of course\, a great pet\, and regarded
	 by them as a most wonderful boy\; in consequence\, papa sat quite still\,
	 and permitted him to pull the studs out of his shirt\, untie his cravat\,
	 rumple his hair\, and take all those little liberties to which babies are
	 notoriously addicted.\n\nMrs. Burrell sat down on a stool at her husband'
	s feet\, and gazed at him and the child in silence for some time.\n\n\"Wha
	t's the matter\, Jane\; what has made you so grave?\"\n\n\"I was trying to
	 imagine\, Burrell\, how I should feel if you\, I\, and baby were coloured
	\; I was trying to place myself in such a situation. Now we know that our 
	boy\, if he is honest and upright—is blest with great talent or genius
	—may aspire to any station in society that he wishes to obtain. How diff
	erent it would be if he were coloured!—there would be nothing bright in 
	the prospective for him. We could hardly promise him a living at any respe
	ctable calling. I think\, George\, we treat coloured people with great inj
	ustice\, don't you?\"\n\nMr. Burrell hemmed and ha'd at this direct query\
	, and answered\, \"Well\, we don't act exactly right toward them\, I must 
	confess.\"\n\nMrs. Burrell rose\, and took the vacant knee of her husband\
	, and toying with the baby\, said\, \"Now\, George Burrell\, I want to ask
	 a favour of you. Why can't you take this boy ?\" \"I take him! why\, my d
	ear\, I don't want an apprentice.\"\n\n\"Yes\, but you must make a want. Y
	ou said he was a bright boy\, and sketched well. Why\, I should think that
	 he's just what you ought to have. There is no one at your office that wou
	ld oppose it. Cummings and Dalton were with your father before you\, they 
	would never object to anything reasonable that you proposed. Come\, dear! 
	do now make the trial—won't you?\"\n\nMr. Burrell was a tender-hearted\,
	 yielding sort of an individual\; and what was more\, his wife was fully a
	ware of it\; and like a young witch as she was\, she put on her sweetest l
	ooks\, and begged so imploringly\, that he was almost conquered. But when 
	she took up the baby\, and made him put his chubby arms round his father's
	 neck\, and say \"pese pop-pop\,\" he was completely vanquished\, and surr
	endered at discretion.\n\n\"I'll see what can be done\,\" said he\, at las
	t.\n\n\"And will you do it afterwards?\" she asked\, archly.\n\n\"Yes\, I 
	will\, dear\, I assure you\,\" he rejoined.\n\n\"Then I know it will be do
	ne\,\" said she\, confidently\; \"and none of us will be the worse off for
	 it\, I am sure.\"\n\nAfter leaving home\, Mr. Burrell went immediately to
	 the office of Mr. Blatchford\; and after having procured Charlie's portfo
	lio\, he started in the direction of his own establishment. He did not by 
	any means carry on so extensive a business as Mr. Blatchford\, and employe
	d only two elderly men as journeymen. After he had sat down to work\, one 
	of them remarked\, \"Tucker has been here\, and wants some rough cuts exec
	uted for a new book. I told him I did not think you would engage to do the
	m\; that you had given up that description of work.\"\n\n\"I think we lose
	 a great deal\, Cummings\, by being obliged to give up those jobs\,\" rejo
	ined Mr. Burrell.\n\n\"Why don't you take an apprentice then\,\" he sugges
	ted\; \"it's just the kind of work for them to learn upon.\"\n\n\"Well I'v
	e been thinking of that\,\" replied he\, rising and producing the drawings
	 from Charlie's portfolio. \"Look here\,\" said he\, \"what do you think o
	f these as the work of a lad of twelve or fourteen\, who has never had mor
	e than half a dozen lessons?\"\n\n\"I should say they were remarkably well
	 done\,\" responded Cummings. \"Shouldn't you say so\, Dalton?\" The party
	 addressed took the sketches\, and examined them thoroughly\, and gave an 
	approving opinion of their merits.\n\n\"Well\,\" said Mr. Burrell\, \"the 
	boy that executed those is in want of a situation\, and I should like to t
	ake him\; but I thought I would consult you both about it first. I met wit
	h him under very singular circumstances\, and I'll tell you all about it.\
	" And forthwith he repeated to them the occurrences of the morning\, dwell
	ing upon the most affecting parts\, and concluding by putting the question
	 to them direct\, as to whether they had any objections to his taking him.
	\n\n\"Why no\, none in the world\,\" readily answered Cummings. \"Laws me!
	 colour is nothing after all\; and black fingers can handle a graver as we
	ll as white ones\, I expect.\"\n\n\"I thought it best to ask you\, to avoi
	d any after difficulty. You have both been in the establishment so long\, 
	that I felt that you ought to be consulted.\"\n\n\"You needn't have taken 
	that trouble\,\" said Dalton. \"You might have known that anything done by
	 your father's son\, would be satisfactory to us. I never had anything to 
	do with coloured people\, and haven't anything against them\; and as long 
	as you are contented I am.\"\n\n\"Well\, we all have our little prejudices
	 against various things\; and as I did not know how you both would feel\, 
	I thought I wouldn't take any decided steps without consulting you\; but n
	ow I shall consider it settled\, and will let the lad know that I will tak
	e him.\"\n\nIn the evening\, he hastened home at an earlier hour than usua
	l\, and delighted his wife by saying—\"I have succeeded to a charm\, my 
	dear—there wasn't the very slightest objection. I'm going to take the bo
	y\, if he wishes to come.\" \"Oh\, I'm delighted\,\" cried she\, clapping 
	her hands. \"Cry hurrah for papa!\" said she to the baby\; \"cry hurrah fo
	r papa!\"\n\nThe scion of the house of Burrell gave vent to some scarcely 
	intelligible sounds\, that resembled \"Hoo-rogler pop-pop!\" which his mot
	her averred was astonishingly plain\, and deserving of a kiss\; and\, snat
	ching him up\, she gave him two or three hearty ones\, and then planted hi
	m in his father's lap again.\"\n\n\"My dear\,\" said her husband\, \"I tho
	ught\, as you proposed my taking this youth\, you might like to have the p
	leasure of acquainting him with his good fortune. After tea\, if you are d
	isposed\, we will go down there\; the walk will do you good.\"\n\n\"Oh\, G
	eorge Burrell\,\" said she\, her face radiant with pleasure\, \"you are ce
	rtainly trying to outdo yourself. I have been languishing all day for a wa
	lk! What a charming husband you are! I really ought to do something for yo
	u. Ah\, I know what—I'll indulge you\; you may smoke all the way there a
	nd back. I'll even go so far as to light the cigars for you myself.\"\n\n\
	"That is a boon\,\" rejoined her husband with a smile\; \"really 'virtue r
	ewarded\,' I declare.\"\n\nTea over\, the baby kissed and put to bed\, Mrs
	. Burrell tied on the most bewitching of bonnets\, and donning her new fur
	-trimmed cloak\, declared herself ready for the walk\; and off they starte
	d. Mr. Burrell puffed away luxuriously as they walked along\, stopping now
	 and then at her command\, to look into such shop-windows as contained art
	icles adapted to the use of infants\, from india-rubber rings and ivory ra
	ttles\, to baby coats and shoes.\n\nAt length they arrived at the door of 
	Mr. Walters\, and on\, looking up at the house\, he exclaimed\, \"This is 
	257\, but it can't be the place\; surely coloured people don't live in as 
	fine an establishment as this.\" Then\, running up the steps\, he examined
	 the plate upon the door. \"The name corresponds with the address given me
	\,\" said he\; \"I'll ring. Is there a lad living here by the name of Char
	les Ellis?\" he asked of the servant who opened the door.\n\n\"Yes\, sir\,
	\" was the reply. \"Will you walk in?\"\n\nWhen they were ushered into the
	 drawing-room\, Mr. Burrell said\,—\"Be kind enough to say that a gentle
	man wishes to see him.\"\n\nThe girl departed\, closing the door behind he
	r\, leaving them staring about the room. \"How elegantly it is furnished!\
	" said she. \"I hadn't an idea that there were any coloured people living 
	in such style.\"\n\n\"Some of them are very rich\,\" remarked her husband.
	\n\n\"But you said this boy was poor.\"\n\n\"So he is. I understand they a
	re staying with the owner of this house.\"\n\nWhilst they were thus conver
	sing the door opened\, and Esther entered. \"I am sorry\,\" said she\, \"t
	hat my brother has retired. He has a very severe head-ache\, and was unabl
	e to remain up longer. His mother is out: I am his sister\, and shall be m
	ost happy to receive any communication for him.\"\n\n\"I regret to hear of
	 his indisposition\,\" replied Mr. Burrell\; \"I hope it is not consequent
	 upon his disappointment this morning?\"\n\n\"I fear it is. Poor fellow! h
	e took it very much to heart. It was a disappointment to us all. We were c
	ongratulating ourselves on having secured him an eligible situation.\"\n\n
	\"I assure you the disappointment is not all on one side\; he is a very pr
	omising boy\, and the loss of his prospective services annoying. Nothing b
	ut stern necessity caused the result.\"\n\n\"Oh\, we entirely acquit you\,
	 Mr. Blatchford\, of all blame in the matter. We are confident that what h
	appened was not occasioned by any indisposition on your part to fulfil you
	r agreement.\"\n\n\"My dear\,\" interrupted Mrs. Burrell\, \"she thinks yo
	u are Mr. Blatchford.\"\n\n\"And are you not?\" asked Esther\, with some s
	urprise.\n\n\"Oh\, no\; I'm an intimate friend of his\, and was present th
	is morning when the affair happened.\" \"Oh\, indeed\,\" responded Esther.
	\n\n\"Yes\; and he came home and related it all to me\,—the whole affair
	\,\" interrupted Mrs. Burrell. \"I was dreadfully provoked\; I assure you\
	, I sympathized with him very much. I became deeply interested in the whol
	e affair\; I was looking at my little boy\,—for I have a little boy\,\" 
	said she\, with matronly dignity\,—\"and I thought\, suppose it was my l
	ittle boy being treated so\, how should I like it? So bringing the matter 
	home to myself in that way made me feel all the more strongly about it\; a
	nd I just told George Burrell he must take him\, as he is an engraver\; an
	d I and the baby gave him no rest until he consented to do so. He will tak
	e him on the same terms offered by Mr. Blatchford\; and then we came down 
	to tell you\; and—and\,\" said she\, quite out of breath\, \"that is all
	 about it.\"\n\nEsther took the little woman's plump hand in both her own\
	, and\, for a moment\, seemed incapable of even thanking her. At last she 
	said\, in a husky voice\, \"You can't think what a relief this is to us. M
	y brother has taken his disappointment so much to heart—I can't tell you
	 how much I thank you. God will reward you for your sympathy and kindness.
	 You must excuse me\,\" she continued\, as her voice faltered\; \"we have 
	latterly been so unaccustomed to receive such sympathy and kindness from p
	ersons of your complexion\, that this has quite overcome me.\"\n\n\"Oh\, n
	ow\, don't! I'm sure it's no more than our duty\, and I'm as much pleased 
	as you can possibly be—it has given me heartfelt gratification\, I assur
	e you.\"\n\nEsther repeated her thanks\, and followed them to the door\, w
	here she shook hands with Mrs. Burrell\, who gave her a pressing invitatio
	n to come and see her baby.\n\n\"How easy it is\, George Burrell\,\" said 
	the happy little woman\, \"to make the hearts of others as light as our ow
	n-mine feels like a feather\,\" she added\, as she skipped along\, clingin
	g to his arm. \"What a nice\, lady-like girl his sister is—is her brothe
	r as handsome as she ?\"\n\n\"Not quite\,\" he answered\; \"still\, he is 
	very good-looking\, I'll bring him home with me to-morrow at dinner\, and 
	then you can see him.\"\n\nChatting merrily\, they soon arrived at home. M
	rs. Burrell ran straightway upstairs to look at that \"blessed baby\;\" sh
	e found him sleeping soundly\, and looking as comfortable and happy as it 
	is possible for a sleeping baby to look—so she bestowed upon him a perfe
	ct avalanche of kisses\, and retired to her own peaceful pillow.\n\nAnd no
	w\, having thus satisfactorily arranged for our young friend Charlie\, we 
	will leave him for a few years engaged in his new pursuits.\n\nCHAPTER XXX
	.\nMany Years After.\n\nOld Father Time is a stealthy worker. In youth we 
	are scarcely able to appreciate his efforts\, and oftentimes think him an 
	exceedingly slow and limping old fellow. When we ripen into maturity\, and
	 are fighting our own way through the battle of life\, we deem him swift e
	nough of foot\, and sometimes rather hurried\; but when old age comes on\,
	 and death and the grave are foretold by trembling limbs and snowy locks\,
	 we wonder that our course has been so swiftly run\, and chide old Time fo
	r a somewhat hasty and precipitate individual.\n\nThe reader must imagine 
	that many years have passed away since the events narrated in the precedin
	g chapters transpired\, and permit us to re-introduce the characters forme
	rly presented\, without any attempt to describe how that long period has b
	een occupied.\n\nFirst of all\, let us resume our acquaintance with Mr. St
	evens. To effect this\, we must pay that gentleman a visit at his luxuriou
	s mansion in Fifth Avenue\, the most fashionable street of New York—the 
	place where the upper ten thousand of that vast\, bustling city most do co
	ngregate. As he is an old acquaintance (we won't say friend)\, we will dis
	regard ceremony\, and walk boldly into the library where that gentleman is
	 sitting.\n\nHe is changed—yes\, sadly changed. Time has been hard at wo
	rk with him\, and\, dissatisfied with what his unaided agency could produc
	e\, has called in conscience to his aid\, and their united efforts have le
	ft their marks upon him. He looks old—aye\, very old. The bald spot on h
	is head has extended its limits until there is only a fringe of thin white
	 hair above the ears. There are deep wrinkles upon his forehead\; and the 
	eyes\, half obscured by the bushy grey eyebrows\, are bloodshot and sunken
	\; the jaws hollow and spectral\, and his lower lip drooping and flaccid. 
	He lifts his hand to pour out another glass of liquor from the decanter at
	 his side\, when his daughter lays her hand upon it\, and looks appealingl
	y in his face.\n\nShe has grown to be a tall\, elegant woman\, slightly th
	in\, and with a careworn and fatigued expression of countenance. There is\
	, however\, the same sweetness in her clear blue eyes\, and as she moves h
	er head\, her fair flaxen curls float about her face as dreamily and delic
	iously as ever they did of yore. She is still in black\, wearing mourning 
	for her mother\, who not many months before had been laid in a quiet nook 
	on the estate at Savanah.\n\n\"Pray\, papa\, don't drink any more\,\" said
	 she\, persuasively—\"it makes you nervous\, and will bring on one of th
	ose frightful attacks again.\"\n\n\"Let me alone\,\" he remonstrated harsh
	ly—\"let me alone\, and take your hand off the glass\; the doctor has fo
	rbidden laudanum\, so I will have brandy instead—take off your hand and 
	let me drink\, I say.\"\n\nLizzie still kept her hand upon the decanter\, 
	and continued gently: \"No\, no\, dear pa—you promised me you would only
	 drink two glasses\, and you have already taken three—it is exceedingly 
	injurious. The doctor insisted upon it that you should decrease the quanti
	ty—and you are adding to it instead.\"\n\n\"Devil take the doctor!\" exc
	laimed he roughly\, endeavouring to disengage her hold—\"give me the liq
	uor\, I say.\"\n\nHis daughter did not appear the least alarmed at this vi
	olence of manner\, nor suffer her grasp upon the neck of the decanter to b
	e relaxed\; but all the while spoke soothing words to the angry old man\, 
	and endeavoured to persuade him to relinquish his intention of drinking an
	y more.\n\n\"You don't respect your old father\,\" he cried\, in a whining
	 tone—\"you take advantage of my helplessness\, all of you—you ill-tre
	at me and deny me the very comforts of life! I'll tell—I'll tell the doc
	tor\,\" he continued\, as his voice subsided into an almost inaudible tone
	\, and he sank back into the chair in a state of semi-stupor.\n\nRemoving 
	the liquor from his reach\, his daughter rang the bell\, and then walked t
	owards the door of the room.\n\n\"Who procured that liquor for my father?\
	" she asked of the servant who entered.\n\n\"I did\, miss\,\" answered the
	 man\, hesitatingly.\n\n\"Let this be the last time you do such a thing\,\
	" she rejoined\, eyeing him sternly\, \"unless you wish to be discharged. 
	I thought you all fully understood that on no consideration was my father 
	to have liquor\, unless by the physician's or my order—it aggravates his
	 disease and neutralizes all the doctor's efforts—and\, unless you wish 
	to be immediately discharged\, never repeat the same offence. Now\, procur
	e some assistance—it is time my father was prepared for bed.\"\n\nThe ma
	n bowed and left the apartment\; but soon returned\, saying there was a pe
	rson in the hall who had forced his way into the house\, and who positivel
	y refused to stir until he saw Mr. Stevens.\n\n\"He has been here two or t
	hree times\,\" added the man\, \"and he is very rough and impudent.\"\n\n\
	"This is most singular conduct\,\" exclaimed Miss Stevens. \"Did he give h
	is name?\"\n\n\"Yes\, miss\; he calls himself McCloskey.\"\n\nAt the utter
	ance of this well-known name\, Mr. Stevens raised his head\, and stared at
	 the speaker with a look of stupid fright\, and inquired\, \"Who here—wh
	at name is that?—speak louder—what name?\"\n\n\"McCloskey\,\" answered
	 the man\, in a louder tone.\n\n\"What! he—he!\" cried Mr. Stevens\, wit
	h a terrified look. \"Where—where is he?\" he continued\, endeavouring t
	o rise—\"where is he?\"\n\n\"Stop\, pa\,\" interposed his daughter\, ala
	rmed at his appearance and manner. \"Do stop—let me go\,\" \"No—no!\" 
	said the old man wildly\, seizing her by the dress to detain her—\"you m
	ust not go—that would never do! He might tell her\,\" he muttered to him
	self—\"No\, no—I'll go!\"—and thus speaking\, he made another ineffe
	ctual attempt to reach the door.\n\n\"Dear father! do let me go!\" she rep
	eated\, imploringly. \"You are incapable of seeing any one—let me inquir
	e what he wants!\" she added\, endeavouring to loose his hold upon her dre
	ss.\n\n\"No—you shall not!\" he replied\, clutching her dress still tigh
	ter\, and endeavouring to draw her towards him.\n\n\"Oh\, father!\" she as
	ked distractedly\, \"what can this mean? Here\,\" said she\, addressing th
	e servant\, who stood gazing in silent wonder on this singular scene\, \"h
	elp my father into his chair again\, and then tell this strange man to wai
	t awhile.\"\n\nThe exhausted man\, having been placed in his chair\, motio
	ned to his daughter to close the door behind the servant\, who had just re
	tired.\n\n\"He wants money\,\" said he\, in a whisper—\"he wants money! 
	He'll make beggars of us all—and yet I'll have to give him some. Quick! 
	give me my cheque-book—let me give him something before he has a chance 
	to talk to any one—quick! quick!\"\n\nThe distracted girl wrung her hand
	s with grief at what she imagined was a return of her father's malady\, an
	d exclaimed\, \"Oh! if George only would remain at home—it is too much f
	or me to have the care of father whilst he is in such a state.\" Then pret
	ending to be in search of the cheque-book\, she turned over the pamphlets 
	and papers upon his desk\, that she might gain time\, and think how it was
	 best to proceed.\n\nWhilst she was thus hesitating\, the door of the room
	 was suddenly opened\, and a shabbily dressed man\, bearing a strong odour
	 of rum about him\, forced his way into the apartment\, saying\, \"I will 
	see him. D——n it\, I don't care haporth how sick he is—let me go\, o
	r by the powers I'll murther some of yes.\" The old man's face was almost 
	blanched with terror when he heard the voice and saw the abrupt entry of t
	he intruder. He sprang from the chair with a great effort\, and then\, una
	ble to sustain himself\, sunk fainting on the floor.\n\n\"Oh\, you have ki
	lled my father—you have killed my father! Who are you\, and what do you 
	want\, that you dare thrust yourself upon him in this manner?\" said she\,
	 stooping to assist in raising him\; \"cannot you see he is entirely unfit
	 for any business?\"\n\nMr. Stevens was replaced in his chair\, and water 
	thrown in his face to facilitate his recovery.\n\nMeanwhile\, McCloskey ha
	d poured himself out a glass of brandy and water\, which he stood sipping 
	as coolly as if everything in the apartment was in a state of the most per
	fect composure. The singular terror of her father\, and the boldness and a
	ssurance of the intruder\, were to Miss Stevens something inexplicable—s
	he stood looking from one to the other\, as though seeking an explanation\
	, and on observing symptoms of a return to consciousness on the part of he
	r parent\, she turned to McCloskey\, and said\, appealingly: \"You see how
	 your presence has agitated my father. Pray let me conjure you—go. Be yo
	ur errand what it may\, I promise you it shall have the earliest attention
	. Or\,\" said she\, \"tell me what it is\; perhaps I can see to it—I att
	end a great deal to father's business. Pray tell me!\"\n\n\"No\, no!\" exc
	laimed the old man\, who had caught the last few words of his daughter. \"
	No\, no—not a syllable! Here\, I'm well—I'm well enough. I'll attend t
	o you. There\, there—that will do\,\" he continued\, addressing the serv
	ant\; \"leave the room. And you\,\" he added\, turning to his daughter\, \
	"do you go too. I am much better now\, and can talk to him. Go! go!\" he c
	ried\, impatiently\, as he saw evidences of a disposition to linger\, on h
	er part\; \"if I want you I'll ring. Go!—this person won't stay long.\"\
	n\n\"Not if I get what I came for\, miss\,\" said McCloskey\, insolently\;
	 \"otherwise\, there is no knowing how long I may stay.\" With a look of a
	pprehension\, Lizzie quitted the room\, and the murderer and his accomplic
	e were alone together.\n\nMr. Stevens reached across the table\, drew the 
	liquor towards him\, and recklessly pouring out a large quantity\, drained
	 the glass to the bottom—this seemed to nerve him up and give him courag
	e\, for he turned to McCloskey and said\, with a much bolder air than he h
	ad yet shown in addressing him\, \"So\, you're back again\, villain! are y
	ou? I thought and hoped you were dead\;\" and he leaned back in his chair 
	and closed his eyes as if to shut out some horrid spectre.\n\n\"I've been 
	divilish near it\, squire\, but Providence has preserved me\, ye see—jis
	t to be a comfort to ye in yer old age. I've been shipwrecked\, blown up i
	n steamboats\, and I've had favers and choleray and the divil alone knows 
	what—but I've been marcifully presarved to ye\, and hope ye'll see a goo
	d dale of me this many years to come.\"\n\nMr. Stevens glared at him fierc
	ely for a few seconds\, and then rejoined\, \"You promised me solemnly\, f
	ive years ago\, that you would never trouble me again\, and I gave you mon
	ey enough to have kept you in comfort—ay\, luxury—for the remainder of
	 your life. Where is it all now?\"\n\n\"That's more than I can tell you\, 
	squire. I only know how it comes. I don't trouble myself how it goes—tha
	t's your look out. If ye are anxious on that score you'd better hire a boo
	kkeeper for me—he shall send yer honour a quarterly account\, and then i
	t won't come on ye so sudden when it's all out another time.\"\n\n\"Insole
	nt!\" muttered Mr. Stevens.\n\nMcCloskey gave Mr. Stevens an impudent look
	\, but beyond that took no farther notice of his remark\, but proceeded wi
	th the utmost coolness to pour out another glass of brandy—after which h
	e drew his chair closer to the grate\, and placed his dirty feet upon the 
	mantelpiece in close proximity to an alabaster clock.\n\n\"You make yourse
	lf very much at home\,\" said Stevens\, indignantly.\n\n\"Why shouldn't I?
	\" answered his tormentor\, in a tone of the most perfect good humour. \"W
	hy shouldn't I—in the house of an ould acquaintance and particular fri
	end—just the place to feel at home\, eh\, Stevens?\" then folding his ar
	ms and tilting back his chair\, he asked\, coolly: \"You haven't a cigar\,
	 have ye?\"\n\n\"No\,\" replied Stevens\, surlily\; \"and if I had\, you s
	hould not have it. Your insolence is unbearable\; you appear\,\" continued
	 he\, with some show of dignity\, \"to have forgotten who I am\, and who y
	ou are.\"\n\n\"Ye're mistaken there\, squire. Divil a bit have I. I'm McCl
	oskey\, and you are Slippery George—an animal that's known over the 'var
	sal world as a Philadelphia lawyer—a man that's chated his hundreds\, an
	d if he lives long enough\, he'll chate as many more\, savin' his friend M
	r. McCloskey\, and him he'll not be afther chating\, because he won't be a
	ble to get a chance\, although he'd like to if he could—divil a doubt of
	 that.\"\n\n\"It's false—I never tried to cheat you\,\" rejoined Stevens
	\, courageously\, for the liquor was beginning to have a very inspiriting 
	effect. \"It's a lie—I paid you all I agreed upon\, and more besides\; b
	ut you are like a leech—never satisfied. You have had from me altogether
	 nearly twenty thousand dollars\, and you'll not get much more—now\, min
	d I tell you.\"\n\n\"The divil I won't\,\" rejoined he\, angrily\; \"that 
	is yet to be seen. How would you like to make yer appearance at court some
	 fine morning\, on the charge of murther\, eh?\" Mr. Stevens gave a percep
	tible shudder\, and looked round\, whereupon McCloskey said\, with a malev
	olent grin\, \"Ye see I don't stick at words\, squire\; I call things by t
	heir names.\"\n\n\"So I perceive\,\" answered Stevens. \"You were not so b
	old once.\"\n\n\"Ha\, ha!\" laughed McCloskey. \"I know that as well as yo
	u—then I was under the thumb—that was before we were sailing in the on
	e boat\; now ye see\, squire\, the boot is on the other leg.\" Mr. Stevens
	 remained quiet for a few moments\, whilst his ragged visitor continued to
	 leisurely sip his brandy and contemplate the soles of his boots as they w
	ere reflected in the mirror above—they were a sorry pair of boots\, and 
	looked as if there would soon be a general outbreak of his toes—so thin 
	and dilapidated did the soles appear.\n\n\"Look at thim boots\, and me sui
	t ginerally\, and see if your conscience won't accuse ye of ingratitude to
	 the man who made yer fortune—or rather lets ye keep it\, now ye have it
	. Isn't it a shame now for me\, the best friend you've got in the world\, 
	to be tramping the streets widdout a penny in his pocket\, and ye livin' i
	n clover\, with gold pieces as plenty as blackberries. It don't look right
	\, squire\, and mustn't go on any longer.\"\n\n\"What do you want—whatev
	er will satisfy you?\" asked Stevens. \"If I give you ever so much now\, w
	hat guarantee have I that you'll not return in a month or so\, and want as
	 much more?\"\n\n\"I'll pledge ye me honour\,\" said McCloskey\, grandly.\
	n\n\"Your honour!\" rejoined Stevens\, \"that is no security.\"\n\n\"Secur
	ity or no security\,\" said McCloskey\, impatiently\, \"you'll have to giv
	e me the money—it's not a bit of use now this disputin\, bekase ye see I
	'm bound to have it\, and ye are wise enough to know ye'd better give it t
	o me. What if ye have give me thousands upon thousands\,\" continued he\, 
	his former good-humoured expression entirely vanishing\; \"it's nothing mo
	re than you ought to do for keeping yer secrets for ye—and as long as ye
	 have money\, ye may expect to share it with me: so make me out a good hea
	vy cheque\, and say no more about it.\"\n\n\"What do you call a heavy cheq
	ue?\" asked Stevens\, in a despairing tone.\n\n\"Five or six thousand\,\" 
	coolly answered his visitor.\n\n\"Five or six thousand!\" echoed Mr. Steve
	ns\, \"it is impossible.\"\n\n\"It had better not be\,\" said McCloskey\, 
	looking angry\; \"it had better not be—I'm determined not to be leading 
	a beggar's life\, and you to be a rolling in wealth.\"\n\n\"I can't give i
	t\, and won't give it—if it must come to that\,\" answered Stevens\, des
	perately. \"It is you that have the fortune—I am only your banker at thi
	s rate. I can't give it to you—I haven't got that much money.\"\n\n\"You
	 must find it then\, and pretty quick at that\,\" said McCloskey. \"I'm no
	t to be fooled with—I came here for money\, and I must and will have it.
	\"\n\n\"I am willing to do what is reasonable\,\" rejoined Mr. Stevens\, i
	n a more subdued tone. \"You talk of thousands as most men do of hundreds.
	 I really haven't got it.\"\n\n\"Oh\, bother such stuff as that\,\" interr
	upted McCloskey\, incredulously. \"I don't believe a word of it—I've ask
	ed them that know\, and every one says you've made a mint of money by spec
	ulation—that since ye sold out in the South and came here to live\, ther
	e's no end to the money ye've made\; so you see it don't do to be making a
	 poor mouth to me. I've come here for a check for five thousand dollars\, 
	and shan't go away without it\,\" concluded he\, in a loud and threatening
	 tone.\n\nDuring this conversation\, Lizzie Stevens had been standing at t
	he door\, momentarily expecting a recall to the apartment. She heard the l
	ow rumble of their voices\, but could not distinguish words. At length\, h
	earing McCloskey's raised to a higher key\, she could no longer restrain h
	er impatience\, and gently opening the door\, looked into the room. Both t
	heir faces were turned in the opposite direction\, so that neither noticed
	 the gentle intrusion of Lizzie\, who\, fearing to leave her father longer
	 alone\, ventured into the apartment.\n\n\"You need not stand looking at m
	e in that threatening manner. You may do as you please—go tell what you 
	like\; but remember\, when I fall\, so do you\; I have not forgotten that 
	affair in Philadelphia from which I saved you—don't place me in a situat
	ion that will compel me to recur to it to your disadvantage.\" \"Ah\, don'
	t trouble yerself about that\, squire\; I don't—that is entirely off my 
	mind\; for now Whitticar is dead\, where is yer witnesses?\"\n\n\"Whittica
	r dead!\" repeated Stevens.\n\n\"Yes\; and what's more\, he's buried—so 
	he's safe enough\, squire\; and I shouldn't be at all surprised if you'd b
	e glad to have me gone too.\"\n\n\"I would to God you had been\, before I 
	put myself in your power.\"\n\n\"'Twas your own hastiness. When it came to
	 the pinch\, I wasn't equal to the job\, so ye couldn't wait for another t
	ime\, but out with yer pistol\, and does it yerself.\" The wretched man sh
	uddered and covered his face\, as McCloskey coolly recounted his murder of
	 Mr. Garie\, every word of which was too true to be denied.\n\n\"And haven
	't I suffered\,\" said he\, shaking his bald head mournfully\; \"haven't I
	 suffered—look at my grey hairs and half-palsied frame\, decrepit before
	 I'm old—sinking into the tomb with a weight of guilt and sin upon me th
	at will crush me down to the lowest depth of hell. Think you\,\" he contin
	ued\, \"that because I am surrounded with all that money can buy\, that I 
	am happy\, or ever shall be\, with this secret gnawing at my heart\; every
	 piece of gold I count out\, I see his hands outstretched over it\, and he
	ar him whisper 'Mine!' He gives me no peace night or day\; he is always by
	 me\; I have no rest. And you must come\, adding to my torture\, and striv
	ing to tear from me that for which I bartered conscience\, peace\, soul\, 
	everything that would make life desirable. If there is mercy in you\, leav
	e me with what I give you\, and come back no more. Life has so little to o
	ffer\, that rather than bear this continued torment and apprehension I dai
	ly suffer\, I will cut my throat\, and then your game is over.\"\n\nLizzie
	 Stevens stood rooted to the spot whilst her father made the confession th
	at was wrung from him by the agony of the moment.\n\n\"Well\, well!\" said
	 McCloskey\, somewhat startled and alarmed at Stevens's threat of self-des
	truction—\"well\, I'll come down a thousand—make it four.\"\n\n\"That 
	I'll do\,\" answered the old man\, tremblingly\; and reaching over\, he dr
	ew towards him the cheque-book. After writing the order for the sum\, he w
	as placing it in the hand of McCloskey\, when\, hearing a faint moan\, he 
	looked towards the door\, and saw his daughter fall fainting to the ground
	.\n\nCHAPTER XXXI.\nThe Thorn rankles.\n\nWe left the quiet town of Sudbur
	y snow-clad and sparkling in all the glory of a frosty moonlight night\; w
	e now return to it\, and discover it decked out in its bravest summer garn
	iture. A short distance above the hill upon which it is built\, the water 
	of the river that glides along its base may be seen springing over the low
	 dam that obstructs its passage\, sparkling\, glistening\, dancing in the 
	sunlight\, as it falls splashing on the stones below\; and then\, as thoug
	h subdued by the fall and crash\, it comes murmuring on\, stopping now and
	 then to whirl and eddy round some rock or protruding stump\, and at last 
	glides gently under the arch of the bridge\, seemingly to pause beneath it
	s shadow and ponder upon its recent tumble from the heights above. Seated 
	here and there upon the bridge are groups of boys\, rod in hand\, endeavou
	ring\, with the most delicious-looking and persuasive of baits\, to inveig
	le finny innocents from the cool depths below.\n\nThe windows of the mills
	 are all thrown open\, and now and then the voices of some operatives\, si
	nging at their work\, steal forth in company with the whir and hum of the 
	spindles\, and mingle with the splash of the waterfall\; and the united vo
	ices of nature\, industry\, and man\, harmonize their swelling tones\, or 
	go floating upward on the soft July air. The houses upon the hill-side see
	m to be endeavouring to extricate themselves from bowers of full-leafed tr
	ees\; and with their white fronts\, relieved by the light green blinds\, l
	ook cool and inviting in the distance. High above them all\, as though loo
	king down in pride upon the rest\, stands the Academy\, ennobled in the co
	urse of years by the addition of extensive wings and a row of stately pill
	ars. On the whole\, the town looked charmingly peaceful and attractive\, a
	nd appeared just the quiet nook that a weary worker in cities would select
	 as a place of retirement after a busy round of toils or pleasure.\n\nTher
	e were little knots of idlers gathered about the railroad station\, as the
	re always is in quiet towns—not that they expect any one\; but that the 
	arrival and departure of the train is one of the events of the day\, and t
	hose who have nothing else particular to accomplish feel constrained to be
	 on hand to witness it. Every now and then one of them would look down the
	 line and wonder why the cars were not in sight.\n\nAmongst those seemingl
	y the most impatient was Miss Ada Bell\, who looked but little older than 
	when she won the heart of the orphan Clarence\, years before\, by that kin
	d kiss upon his childish brow. It was hers still—she bound it to her by 
	long years of affectionate care\, almost equalling in its sacrificing tend
	erness that which a mother would have bestowed upon her only child. Claren
	ce\, her adopted son\, had written to her\, that he was wretched\, heart-s
	ore\, and ill\, and longed to come to her\, his almost mother\, for sympat
	hy\, advice\, and comfort: so she\, with yearning heart\, was there to mee
	t him.\n\nAt last the faint scream of the steam-whistle was heard\, and so
	on the lumbering locomotive came puffing and snorting on its iron path\, d
	ashing on as though it could never stop\, and making the surrounding hills
	 echo with the unearthly scream of its startling whistle\, and arousing to
	 desperation every dog in the quiet little town. At last it stopped\, and 
	stood giving short and impatient snorts and hisses\, whilst the passengers
	 were alighting.\n\nClarence stepped languidly out\, and was soon in the e
	mbrace of Miss Ada.\n\n\"My dear boy\, how thin and pale you look!\" she e
	xclaimed\; \"come\, get into the carriage\; never mind your baggage\, Geor
	ge will look after that\; your hands are hot—very hot\, you must be feve
	rish.\"\n\n\"Yes\, Aunt Ada\,\" for so he had insisted on his calling her 
	\"I am ill—sick in heart\, mind\, and everything. Cut up the horses\,\" 
	said he\, with slight impatience of manner\; \"let us get home quickly. Wh
	en I get in the old parlour\, and let you bathe my head as you used to\, I
	 am sure I shall feel better. I am almost exhausted from fatigue and heat.
	\"\n\n\"Very well then\, dear\, don't talk now\,\" she replied\, not in th
	e least noticing his impatience of manner\; \"when you are rested\, and ha
	ve had your tea\, will be time enough.\"\n\nThey were soon in the old hous
	e\, and Clarence looked round with a smile of pleasure on the room where h
	e had spent so many happy hours. Good Aunt Ada would not let him talk\, bu
	t compelled him to remain quiet until he had rested himself\, and eaten hi
	s evening meal.\n\nHe had altered considerably in the lapse of years\, the
	re was but little left to remind one of the slight\, melancholy-looking bo
	y\, that once stood a heavy-hearted little stranger in the same room\, in 
	days gone by. His face was without a particle of red to relieve its unifor
	m paleness\; his eyes\, large\, dark\, and languishing\, were half hidden 
	by unusually long lashes\; his forehead broad\, and surmounted with cluste
	ring raven hair\; a glossy moustache covered his lip\, and softened down i
	ts fulness\; on the whole\, he was strikingly handsome\, and none would pa
	ss him without a second look.\n\nTea over\, Miss Ada insisted that he shou
	ld lie down upon the sofa again\, whilst she\, sat by and bathed his head.
	 \"Have you seen your sister lately?\" she asked.\n\n\"No\, Aunt Ada\,\" h
	e answered\, hesitatingly\, whilst a look of annoyance darkened his face f
	or a moment\; \"I have not been to visit her since last fall—almost a ye
	ar.\"\n\n\"Oh! Clarence\, how can you remain so long away?\" said she\, re
	proachfully.\n\n\"Well\, I can't go there with any comfort or pleasure\,\"
	 he answered\, apologetically\; \"I can't go there\; each year as I visit 
	the place\, their ways seem more strange and irksome to me. Whilst enjoyin
	g her company\, I must of course come in familiar contact with those by wh
	om she is surrounded. Sustaining the position that I do—passing as I am 
	for a white man—I am obliged to be very circumspect\, and have often bee
	n compelled to give her pain by avoiding many of her dearest friends when 
	I have encountered them in public places\, because of their complexion. I 
	feel mean and cowardly whilst I'm doing it\; but it is necessary—I can't
	 be white and coloured at the same time\; the two don't mingle\, and I mus
	t consequently be one or the other. My education\, habits\, and ideas\, al
	l unfit me for associating with the latter\; and I live in constant dread 
	that something may occur to bring me out with the former. I don't avoid co
	loured people\, because I esteem them my inferiors in refinement\, educati
	on\, or intelligence\; but because they are subjected to degradations that
	 I shall be compelled to share by too freely associating with them.\"\n\n\
	"It is a pity\,\" continued he\, with a sigh\, \"that I was not suffered t
	o grow up with them\, then I should have learnt to bear their burthens\, a
	nd in the course of time might have walked over my path of life\, bearing 
	the load almost unconsciously. Now it would crush me\, I know. It was a gr
	eat mistake to place me in my present false position\,\" concluded he\, bi
	tterly\; \"it has cursed me. Only a day ago I had a letter from Em\, repro
	aching me for my coldness\; yet\, God help me! What am I to do!\"\n\nMiss 
	Ada looked at him sorrowfully\, and continued smoothing down his hair\, an
	d inundating his temples with Cologne\; at last she ventured to inquire\, 
	\"How do matters progress with you and Miss Bates? Clary\, you have lost y
	our heart there!\"\n\n\"Too true\,\" he replied\, hurriedly\; \"and what i
	s more—little Birdie (I call her little Birdie) has lost hers too. Aunt 
	Ada\, we are engaged!\"\n\n\"With her parents' consent?\" she asked.\n\n\"
	Yes\, with her parents' consent\; we are to be married in the coming winte
	r.\"\n\n\"Then they know all\, of course—they know you are coloured?\" o
	bserved she.\n\n\"They know all!\" cried he\, starting up. \"Who said they
	 did—who told them?—tell me that\, I say! Who has dared to tell them I
	 am a coloured man?\"\n\n\"Hush\, Clarence\, hush!\" replied she\, attempt
	ing to soothe him. \"I do not know that any one has informed them\; I only
	 inferred so from your saying you were engaged. I thought you had informed
	 them yourself. Don't you remember you wrote that you should?—and I took
	 it for granted that you had.\"\n\n\"Oh! yes\, yes\; so I did! I fully int
	ended to\, but found myself too great a coward. I dare not—I cannot risk
	 losing her. I am fearful that if she knew it she would throw me off for e
	ver.\"\n\n\"Perhaps not\, Clarence—if she loves you as she should\; and 
	even if she did\, would it not be better that she should know it now\, tha
	n have it discovered afterwards\, and you both be rendered miserable for l
	ife.\"\n\n\"No\, no\, Aunt Ada—I cannot tell her! It must remain a secre
	t until after our marriage\; then\, if they find it out\, it will be to th
	eir interest to smooth the matter over\, and keep quiet about it.\"\n\n\"C
	lary\, Clary—that is not honourable!\"\n\n\"I know it—but how can I he
	lp it? Once or twice I thought of telling her\, but my heart always failed
	 me at the critical moment. It would kill me to lose her. Oh! I love her\,
	 Aunt Ada\,\" said he\, passionately—\"love her with all the energy and 
	strength of my father's race\, and all the doating tenderness of my mother
	's. I could have told her long ago\, before my love had grown to its prese
	nt towering strength\, but craft set a seal upon my lips\, and bid me be s
	ilent until her heart was fully mine\, and then nothing could part us\; ye
	t now even\, when sure of her affections\, the dread that her love would n
	ot stand the test\, compels me to shrink more than ever from the disclosur
	e.\"\n\n\"But\, Clarence\, you are not acting generously\; I know your con
	science does not approve your actions.\"\n\n\"Don't I know that?\" he answ
	ered\, almost fiercely\; \"yet I dare not tell—I must shut this secret i
	n my bosom\, where it gnaws\, gnaws\, gnaws\, until it has almost eaten my
	 heart away. Oh\, I've thought of that\, time and again\; it has kept me a
	wake night after night\, it haunts me at all hours\; it is breaking down m
	y health and strength—wearing my very life out of me\; no escaped galley
	-slave ever felt more than I do\, or lived in more constant fear of detect
	ion: and yet I must nourish this tormenting secret\, and keep it growing i
	n my breast until it has crowded out every honourable and manly feeling\; 
	and then\, perhaps\, after all my sufferings and sacrifice of candour and 
	truth\, out it will come at last\, when I least expect or think of it.\"\n
	\nAunt Ada could not help weeping\, and exclaimed\, commiseratingly\, \"My
	 poor\, poor boy\,\" as he strode up and down the room.\n\n\"The whole fam
	ily\, except her\, seem to have the deepest contempt for coloured people\;
	 they are constantly making them a subject of bitter jests\; they appear t
	o have no more feeling or regard for them than if they were brutes—and I
	\,\" continued he\, \"I\, miserable\, contemptible\, false-hearted knave\,
	 as I am\, I—I—yes\, I join them in their heartless jests\, and wonder
	 all the while my mother does not rise from her grave and curse me as I sp
	eak!\"\n\n\"Oh! Clarence\, Clarence\, my dear child!\" cried the terrified
	 Aunt Ada\, \"you talk deliriously\; you have brooded over this until it h
	as almost made you crazy. Come here—sit down.\" And seizing him by the a
	rm\, she drew him on the sofa beside her\, and began to bathe his hot head
	 with the Cologne again.\n\n\"Let me walk\, Aunt Ada\,\" said he after a f
	ew moments\,—\"let me walk\, I feel better whilst I am moving\; I can't 
	bear to be quiet.\" And forthwith he commenced striding up and down the ro
	om again with nervous and hurried steps. After a few moments he burst out 
	again——\n\n\"It seems as if fresh annoyances and complications beset m
	e every day. Em writes me that she is engaged. I was in hopes\, that\, aft
	er I had married\, I could persuade her to come and live with me\, and so 
	gradually break off her connection with\, coloured people\; but that hope 
	is extinguished now: she is engaged to a coloured man.\"\n\nAunt Ada could
	 see no remedy for this new difficulty\, and could only say\,\n\"Indeed!\"
	\n\n\"I thought something of the kind would occur when I was last at home\
	, and spoke to her on the subject\, but she evaded giving me any definite 
	answer\; I think she was afraid to tell me—she has written\, asking my c
	onsent.\"\n\n\"And will you give it?\" asked Aunt Ada.\n\n\"It will matter
	 but little if I don't\; Em has a will of her own\, and I have no means of
	 coercing her\; besides\, I have no reasonable objection to urge: it would
	 be folly in me to oppose it\, simply because he is a coloured man—for\,
	 what am I myself? The only difference is\, that his identity with coloure
	d people is no secret\, and he is not ashamed of it\; whilst I conceal my 
	origin\, and live in constant dread that some one may find it out.\" When 
	Clarence had finished\, he continued to walk up and down the room\, lookin
	g very careworn and gloomy.\n\nMiss Bell remained on the sofa\, thoughtful
	ly regarding him. At last\, she rose up and took his hand in hers\, as she
	 used to when he was a boy\, and walking beside him\, said\, \"The more I 
	reflect upon it\, the more necessary I regard it that you should tell this
	 girl and her parents your real position before you marry her. Throw away 
	concealment\, make a clean breast of it! you may not be rejected when they
	 find her heart is so deeply interested. If you marry her with this secret
	 hanging over you\, it will embitter your life\, make you reserved\, suspi
	cious\, and consequently ill-tempered\, and destroy all your domestic happ
	iness. Let me persuade you\, tell them ere it be too late. Suppose it reac
	hed them through some other source\, what would they then think of you?\"\
	n\n\"Who else would tell them? Who else knows it? You\, you\,\" said he su
	spiciously—\"you would not betray me! I thought you loved me\, Aunt Ada.
	\"\n\n\"Clarence\, my dear boy\,\" she rejoined\, apparently hurt by his h
	asty and accusing tone\, \"you will mistake me—I have no such intention.
	 If they are never to learn it except through me\, your secret is perfectl
	y safe. Yet I must tell you that I feel and think that the true way to pro
	mote her happiness and your own\, is for you to disclose to them your real
	 position\, and throw yourself upon their generosity for the result.\"\n\n
	Clarence pondered for a long time over Miss Bell's advice\, which she agai
	n and again repeated\, placing it each time before him in a stronger light
	\, until\, at last\, she extracted from him a promise that he would do it.
	 \"I know you are right\, Aunt Ada\,\" said he\; \"I am convinced of tha
	t—it is a question of courage with me. I know it would be more honourabl
	e for me to tell her now. I'll try to do it—I will make an effort\, and 
	summon up the courage necessary—God be my helper!\"\n\n\"That's a dear b
	oy!\" she exclaimed\, kissing him affectionately\; \"I know you will feel 
	happier when it is all over\; and even if she should break her engagement\
	, you will be infinitely better off than if it was fulfilled and your secr
	et subsequently discovered. Come\, now\,\" she concluded\, \"I am going to
	 exert my old authority\, and send you to bed\; tomorrow\, perhaps\, you m
	ay see this in a more hopeful light.\"\n\nTwo days after this\, Clarence w
	as again in New York\, amid the heat and dust of that crowded\, bustling c
	ity. Soon\, after his arrival\, he dressed himself\, and started for the m
	ansion of Mr. Bates\, trembling as he went\, for the result of the communi
	cation he was about to make.\n\nOnce on the way he paused\, for the though
	t had occurred to him that he would write to them\; then reproaching himse
	lf for his weakness and timidity\, he started on again with renewed determ
	ination.\n\n\"I'll see her myself\,\" he soliloquized. \"I'll tell little 
	Birdie all\, and know my fate from her own lips. If I must give her up\, I
	'll know the worst from her.\"\n\nWhen Clarence was admitted\, he would no
	t permit himself to be announced\, but walked tiptoe upstairs and gently o
	pening the drawing-room door\, entered the room. Standing by the piano\, t
	urning over the leaves of some music\, and merrily humming an air\, was a 
	young girl of extremely petite and delicate form. Her complexion was strik
	ingly fair\; and the rich curls of dark auburn that fell in clusters on he
	r shoulders\, made it still more dazzling by the contrast presented. Her e
	yes were grey\, inclining to black\; her features small\, and not over-rem
	arkable for their symmetry\, yet by no means disproportionate. There was t
	he sweetest of dimples on her small round chin\, and her throat white and 
	clear as the finest marble. The expression of her face was extremely child
	like\; she seemed more like a schoolgirl than a young woman of eighteen on
	 the eve of marriage. There was something deliriously airy and fairylike i
	n her motions\, and as she slightly moved her feet in time to the music sh
	e was humming\, her thin blue dress floated about her\, and undulated in h
	armony with her graceful motions.\n\nAfter gazing at her for a few moments
	\, Clarence called gently\, \"Little Birdie.\" She gave a timid joyous lit
	tle cry of surprise and pleasure\, and fluttered into his arms.\n\n\"Oh\, 
	Clary\, love\, how you startled me! I did not dream there was any one in t
	he room. It was so naughty in you\,\" said she\, childishly\, as he pushed
	 back the curls from her face and kissed her. \"When did you arrive?\"\n\n
	\"Only an hour ago\,\" he answered.\n\n\"And you came here at once? Ah\, t
	hat was so lover-like and kind\,\" she rejoined\, smiling.\n\n\"You look l
	ike a sylph to-night\, Anne\,\" said he\, as she danced about him. \"Ah\,\
	" he continued\, after regarding her for a few seconds with a look of inte
	nse admiration\, \"you want to rivet my chains the tighter\,—you look mo
	st bewitching. Why are you so much dressed to-night?—jewels\, sash\, and
	 satin slippers\,\" he continued\; \"are you going out?\"\n\n\"No\, Clary\
	,\" she answered. \"I was to have gone to the theatre\; but just at the la
	st moment I decided not to. A singular desire to stay at home came over me
	 suddenly. I had an instinctive feeling that I should lose some greater en
	joyment if I went\; so I remained at home\; and here\, love\, are you. But
	 what is the matter? you look sad and weary.\"\n\n\"I am a little fatigued
	\,\" said he\, seating himself and holding her hand in his: \"a little wea
	ry\; but that will soon wear off\; and as for the sadness\,\" concluded he
	\, with a forced smile\, \"that must depart now that I am with you\, Littl
	e Birdie.\"\n\n\"I feel relieved that you have returned safe and well\,\" 
	said she\, looking up into his face from her seat beside him\; \"for\, Cla
	ry\, love\, I had such a frightful dream\, such a singular dream about you
	. I have endeavoured to shake it out of my foolish little head\; but it wo
	n't go\, Clary\,—I can't get rid of it. It occurred after you left us at
	 Saratoga. Oh\, it was nothing though\,\" said she\, laughing and shaking 
	her curls\,—\"nothing\; and now you are safely returned\, I shall not th
	ink of it again. Tell me what you have seen since you went away\; and how 
	is that dear Aunt Ada of yours you talk so much about?\"\n\n\"Oh\, she is 
	quite well\,\" answered he\; \"but tell\, Anne\, tell me about that dream.
	 What was it\, Birdie?—come tell me.\"\n\n\"I don't care to\,\" she answ
	ered\, with a slight shudder\,—\"I don't want to\, love.\"\n\n\"Yes\, ye
	s\,—do\, sweet\,\" importuned he\; \"I want to hear it.\"\n\n\"Then if I
	 must\,\" said she\, \"I will. I dreamed that you and I were walking on a 
	road together\, and 'twas such a beautiful road\, with flowers and fruit\,
	 and lovely cottages on either side. I thought you held my hand\; I felt i
	t just as plain as I clasp yours now. Presently a rough ugly man overtook 
	us\, and bid you let me go\; and that you refused\, and held me all the ti
	ghter. Then he gave you a diabolical look\, and touched you on the face\, 
	and you broke out in loathsome black spots\, and screamed in such agony an
	d frightened me so\, that I awoke all in a shiver of terror\, and did not 
	get over it all the next day.\"\n\nClarence clutched her hand tighter as s
	he finished\, so tight indeed\, that she gave a little scream of pain and 
	looked frightened at him. \"What is the matter?\" she inquired\; \"your ha
	nd is like ice\, and you are paler than ever. You haven't let that triflin
	g dream affect you so? It is nothing.\"\n\n\"I am superstitious in regard 
	to dreams\,\" said Clarence\, wiping the perspiration from his forehead. \
	"Go\,\" he asked\, faintly\, \"play me an air\, love\,—something quick a
	nd lively to dispel this. I wish you had not told me.\"\n\n\"But you begge
	d me to\,\" said she\, pouting\, as she took her seat at the instrument.\n
	\n\"How ominous\,\" muttered he\,—\"became covered with black spots\; th
	at is a foreshadowing. How can I tell her\,\" he thought. \"It seems like 
	wilfully destroying my own happiness.\" And he sat struggling with himself
	 to obtain the necessary courage to fulfil the purpose of his visit\, and 
	became so deeply engrossed with his own reflections as to scarcely even he
	ar the sound of the instrument.\n\n\"It is too bad\,\" she cried\, as she 
	ceased playing: \"here I have performed some of your favourite airs\, and 
	that too without eliciting a word of commendation. You are inexpressibly d
	ull to-night\; nothing seems to enliven you. What is the matter?\"\n\n\"Oh
	\,\" rejoined he\, abstractedly\, \"am I? I was not aware of it.\"\n\n\"Ye
	s\, you are\,\" said Little Birdie\, pettishly\; \"nothing seems to engage
	 your attention.\" And\, skipping off to the table\, she took up the newsp
	aper\, and exclaimed\,—\"Let me read you something very curious.\"\n\n\"
	No\, no\, Anne dear\,\" interrupted he\; \"sit here by me. I want to say s
	omething serious to you—something of moment to us both.\"\n\n\"Then it's
	 something very grave and dull\, I know\,\" she remarked\; \"for that is t
	he way people always begin. Now I don't want to hear anything serious to-n
	ight\; I want to be merry. You look serious enough\; and if you begin to t
	alk seriously you'll be perfectly unbearable. So you must hear what I am g
	oing to read to you first.\" And the little tyrant put her finger on his l
	ip\, and looked so bewitching\, that he could not refuse her. And the impo
	rtant secret hung on his lips\, but was not spoken.\n\n\"Listen\,\" said s
	he\, spreading out the paper before her and running her tiny finger down t
	he column. \"Ah\, I have it\,\" she exclaimed at last\, and began:—\n\n\
	"'We learn from unimpeachable authority that the Hon. —— ——\, who 
	represents a district of our city in the State legislature\, was yesterday
	 united to the Quateroon daughter of the late Gustave Almont. She is said 
	to be possessed of a large fortune\, inherited from her father\; and they 
	purpose going to France to reside\,—a sensible determination\; as\, afte
	r such a mesalliance\, the honourable gentleman can no longer expect to re
	tain his former social position in our midst.—New Orleans Watchman.'\"\n
	\n\"Isn't it singular\,\" she remarked\, \"that a man in his position shou
	ld make such a choice?\"\n\n\"He loved her\, no doubt\,\" suggested Claren
	ce\; \"and she was almost white.\"\n\n\"How could he love her?\" asked she
	\, wonderingly. \"Love a coloured woman! I cannot conceive it possible\,\"
	 said she\, with a look of disgust\; \"there is something strange and unna
	tural about it.\"\n\n\"No\, no\,\" he rejoined\, hurriedly\, \"it was love
	\, Anne\,—pure love\; it is not impossible. I—I—\" \"am coloured\,\"
	 he would have said\; but he paused and looked full in her lovely face. He
	 could not tell her\,—the words slunk back into his coward heart unspoke
	n.\n\nShe stared at him in wonder and perplexity\, and exclaimed\,—\"Dea
	r Clarence\, how strangely you act! I am afraid you are not well. Your bro
	w is hot\,\" said she\, laying her hand on his forehead\; \"you have been 
	travelling too much for your strength.\"\n\n\"It is not that\,\" he replie
	d. \"I feel a sense of suffocation\, as if all the blood was rushing to my
	 throat. Let me get the air.\" And he rose and walked to the window. Anne 
	hastened and brought him a glass of water\, of which he drank a little\, a
	nd then declared himself better.\n\nAfter this\, he stood for a long time 
	with her clasped in his arms\; then giving her one or two passionate kisse
	s\, he strained her closer to him and abruptly left the house\, leaving Li
	ttle Birdie startled and alarmed by his strange behaviour.\n\nCHAPTER XXXI
	I.\nDear Old Ess again.\n\nLet us visit once more the room from which Mr. 
	Walters and his friends made so brave a defence. There is but little in it
	s present appearance to remind one of that eventful night\,—no reminisce
	nces of that desperate attack\, save the bullet-hole in the ceiling\, whic
	h Mr. Walters declares shall remain unfilled as an evidence of the marked 
	attention he has received at the hands of his fellow-citizens.\n\nThere ar
	e several noticeable additions to the furniture of the apartment\; amongst
	 them an elegantly-carved work-stand\, upon which some unfinished articles
	 of children's apparel are lying\; a capacious rocking-chair\, and grand p
	iano.\n\nThen opposite to the portrait of Toussaint is suspended another p
	icture\, which no doubt holds a higher position in the regard of the owner
	 of the mansion than the African warrior aforesaid. It is a likeness of th
	e lady who is sitting at the window\,—Mrs. Esther Walters\, nee Ellis. T
	he brown baby in the picture is the little girl at her side\,—the elder 
	sister of the other brown baby who is doing its best to pull from its moth
	er's lap the doll's dress upon which she is sewing. Yes\, that is \"dear o
	ld Ess\,\" as Charlie calls her yet\, though why he will persist in applyi
	ng the adjective we are at a loss to determine.\n\nEsther looks anything b
	ut old—a trifle matronly\, we admit—but old we emphatically say she is
	 not\; her hair is parted plainly\, and the tiniest of all tiny caps sits 
	at the back of her head\, looking as if it felt it had no business on such
	 raven black hair\, and ought to be ignominiously dragged off without one 
	word of apology. The face and form are much more round and full\, and the 
	old placid expression has been undisturbed in the lapse of years.\n\nThe c
	omplexion of the two children was a sort of compromise between the complex
	ions of their parents—chubby-faced\, chestnut-coloured\, curly-headed\, 
	rollicking little pests\, who would never be quiet\, and whose little blac
	k buttons of eyes were always peering into something\, and whose little pl
	ugs of fingers would\, in spite of every precaution to prevent\, be diving
	 into mother's work-box\, and various other highly inconvenient and inappr
	opriate places.\n\n\"There!\" said Esther\, putting the last stitch into a
	 doll she had been manufacturing\; \"now\, take sister\, and go away and p
	lay.\" But little sister\, it appeared\, did not wish to be taken\, and sh
	e made the best of her way off\, holding on by the chairs\, and tottering 
	over the great gulfs between them\, until she succeeded in reaching the mu
	sic-stand\, where she paused for a while before beginning to destroy the m
	usic. Just at this critical juncture a young lady entered the room\, and h
	eld up her hands in horror\, and baby hastened off as fast as her toddling
	 limbs could carry her\, and buried her face in her mother's lap in great 
	consternation.\n\nEmily Garie made two or three slight feints of an endeav
	our to catch her\, and then sat down by the little one's mother\, and gave
	 a deep sigh.\n\n\"Have you answered your brother's letter?\" asked Esther
	.\n\n\"Yes\, I have\,\" she replied\; \"here it is\,\"—and she laid the 
	letter in Esther's lap. Baby made a desperate effort to obtain it\, but su
	ffered a signal defeat\, and her mother opened it\, and read—\n\n\"DEAR 
	BROTHER\,—I read your chilling letter with deep sorrow. I cannot say tha
	t it surprised me\; it is what I have anticipated during the many months t
	hat I have been silent on the subject of my marriage. Yet\, when I read it
	\, I could not but feel a pang to which heretofore I have been a stranger.
	 Clarence\, you know I love you\, and should not make the sacrifice you de
	mand a test of my regard. True\, I cannot say (and most heartily I regret 
	it) that there exists between us the same extravagant fondness we cherishe
	d as children—but that is no fault of mine. Did you not return to me\, e
	ach year\, colder and colder—more distant and unbrotherly—until you dr
	ove back to their source the gushing streams of a sister's love that flowe
	d so strongly towards you? You ask me to resign Charles Ellis and come to 
	you. What can you offer me in exchange for his true\, manly affection?—t
	o what purpose drive from my heart a love that has been my only solace\, o
	nly consolation\, for your waning regard! We have grown up together—he h
	as been warm and kind\, when you were cold and indifferent—and now that 
	he claims the reward of long years of tender regard\, and my own heart is 
	conscious that he deserves it\, you would step between us\, and forbid me 
	yield the recompense that it will be my pride and delight to bestow. It gr
	ieves me to write it\; yet I must\, Clary—for between brother and sister
	 there is no need of concealments\; and particularly at such a time should
	 everything be open\, clear\, explicit. Do not think I wish to reproach yo
	u. What you are\, Clarence\, your false position and unfortunate education
	 have made you. I write it with pain—your demand seems extremely selfish
	. I fear it is not of me but of yourself you are thinking\, when you ask m
	e to sever\, at once and for ever\, my connection with a people who\, you 
	say\, can only degrade me. Yet how much happier am I\, sharing their degra
	dation\, than you appear to be! Is it regard for me that induces the desir
	e that I should share the life of constant dread that I cannot but feel yo
	u endure—or do you fear that my present connections will interfere with 
	your own plans for the future?\n\n\"Even did I grant it was my happiness a
	lone you had in view\, my objections would be equally strong. I could not 
	forego the claims of early friendship\, and estrange myself from those who
	 have endeared themselves to me by long years of care—nor pass coldly an
	d unrecognizingly by playmates and acquaintances\, because their complexio
	ns were a few shades darker than my own. This I could never do—to me it 
	seems ungrateful: yet I would not reproach you because you can—for the c
	ircumstances by which you have been surrounded have conspired to produce t
	hat result—and I presume you regard such conduct as necessary to sustain
	 you in your present position. From the tenor of your letter I should judg
	e that you entertained some fear that I might compromise you with your fut
	ure bride\, and intimate that my choice may deprive you of yours. Surely t
	hat need not be. She need not even know of my existence. Do not entertain 
	a fear that I\, or my future husband\, will ever interfere with your happi
	ness by thrusting ourselves upon you\, or endanger your social position by
	 proclaiming our relationship. Our paths lie so widely apart that they nee
	d never cross. You walk on the side of the oppressor—I\, thank God\, am 
	with the oppressed.\n\n\"I am happy—more happy\, I am sure\, than you co
	uld make me\, even by surrounding me with the glittering lights that shine
	 upon your path\, and which\, alas! may one day go suddenly out\, and leav
	e you wearily groping in the darkness. I trust\, dear brother\, my words m
	ay not prove a prophecy\; yet\, should they be\, trust me\, Clarence\, you
	 may come back again\, and a sister's heart will receive you none the less
	 warmly that you selfishly desired her to sacrifice the happiness of a lif
	etime to you. I shall marry Charles Ellis. I ask you to come and see us un
	ited—I shall not reproach you if you do not\; yet I shall feel strange w
	ithout a single relative to kiss or bless me in that most eventful hour of
	 a woman's life. God bless you\, Clary! I trust your union may be as happy
	 as I anticipate my own will be—and\, if it is not\, it will not be beca
	use it has lacked the earnest prayers of your neglected but still loving s
	ister.\"\n\n\"Esther\, I thought I was too cold in that—tell me\, do you
	 think so?\"\n\n\"No\, dear\, not at all\; I think it a most affectionate 
	reply to a cold\, selfish letter.\"\n\n\"Oh\, I'm glad to hear you say tha
	t. I can trust better to your tenderness of others' feelings than to my ow
	n heart. I felt strongly\, Esther\, and was fearful that it might be too h
	arsh or reproachful. I was anxious lest my feelings should be too striking
	ly displayed\; yet it was better to be explicit—don't you think so?\"\n\
	n\"Undoubtedly\,\" answered Esther\; and handing back the letter\, she too
	k up baby\, and seated herself in the rocking-chair.\n\nNow baby had a pre
	judice against caps\, inveterate and unconquerable\; and grandmamma\, nurs
	e\, and Esther were compelled to bear the brunt of her antipathies. We hav
	e before said that Esther's cap looked as though it felt itself in an inap
	propriate position—that it had got on the head of the wrong individual
	—and baby\, no doubt in deference to the cap's feelings\, tore it off\, 
	and threw it in the half-open piano\, from whence it was extricated with g
	reat detriment to the delicate lace.\n\nEmily took a seat near the window\
	, and drawing her work-table towards her\, raised the lid. This presenting
	 another opening for baby\, she slid down from her mother's lap\, and hast
	ened towards her. She just arrived in time to see it safely closed\, and t
	oddled back to her mother\, as happy as if she had succeeded in running ri
	ot over its contents\, and scattering them all over the floor.\n\nEmily ke
	pt looking down the street\, as though in anxious expectation of somebody\
	; and whilst she stood there\, there was an opportunity of observing how l
	ittle she had changed in the length of years. She is little Em magnified\,
	 with a trifle less of the child in her face. Her hair has a slight kink\,
	 is a little more wavy than is customary in persons of entire white blood\
	; but in no other way is her extraction perceptible\, only the initiated\,
	 searching for evidences of African blood\, would at all notice this sligh
	t peculiarity.\n\nHer expectation was no doubt about to be gratified\, for
	 a smile broke over her face\, as she left the window and skipped downstai
	rs\; when she re-entered\, she was accompanied by her intended husband. Th
	ere was great commotion amongst the little folk in consequence of this new
	 arrival. Baby kicked\, and screamed out \"Unker Char\,\" and went almost 
	frantic because her dress became entangled in the buckle of her mamma's be
	lt\, and her sister received a kiss before she could be extricated.\n\nCha
	rlie is greatly altered—he is tall\, remarkably athletic\, with a large\
	, handsomely-shaped head\, covered with close-cut\, woolly hair\; high for
	ehead\, heavy eyebrows\, large nose\, and a mouth of ordinary size\, fille
	d with beautifully white teeth\, which he displays at almost every word he
	 speaks\; chin broad\, and the whole expression of his face thoughtful and
	 commanding\, yet replete with good humour. No one would call him handsome
	\, yet there was something decidedly attractive in his general appearance.
	 No one would recognize him as the Charlie of old\, whose escapades had so
	 destroyed the comfort and harmony of Mrs. Thomas's establishment\; and on
	ly once\, when he held up the baby\, and threatened to let her tear the pa
	per ornaments from the chandelier\, was there a twinkle of the Charlie of 
	old looking out of his eyes.\n\n\"How are mother and father to-day?\" aske
	d Esther.\n\n\"Oh\, both well. I left them only a few minutes ago at the d
	inner table. I had to hurry off to go to the office.\"\n\n\"So I perceive\
	,\" observed Esther\, archly\, \"and of course\, coming here\, which is fo
	ur squares out of your way\, will get you there much sooner.\"\n\nEmily bl
	ushed\, and said\, smilingly\, Esther was \"a very impertinent person\;\" 
	and in this opinion Charlie fully concurred. They then walked to the windo
	w\, where they stood\, saying\, no doubt\, to each other those little tend
	er things which are so profoundly interesting to lovers\, and so exceeding
	ly stupid to every one else. Baby\, in high glee\, was seated on Charlie's
	 shoulder\, where she could clutch both hands in his hair and pull until t
	he tears almost started from his eyes.\n\n\"Emily and you have been talkin
	g a long while\, and I presume you have fully decided on what day you are 
	both to be rescued from your misery\, and when I am to have the exquisite 
	satisfaction of having my house completely turned upside down for your mut
	ual benefit\,\" said Esther. \"I trust it will be as soon as possible\, as
	 we cannot rationally expect that either of you will be bearable until it 
	is all over\, and you find yourselves ordinary mortals again. Come now\, o
	ut with it. When is it to be?\"\n\n\"I say next week\,\" cried Charlie.\n\
	n\"Next week\, indeed\,\" hastily rejoined Emily. \"I could not think of s
	uch a thing—so abrupt.\"\n\n\"So abrupt\,\" repeated Charlie\, with a la
	ugh. \"Why\, haven't I been courting you ever since I wore roundabouts\, a
	nd hasn't everybody been expecting us to be married every week within the 
	last two years. Fie\, Em\, it's anything but abrupt.\"\n\nEmily blushed st
	ill deeper\, and looked out of the window\, down the street and up the str
	eet\, but did not find anything in the prospect at either side that at all
	 assisted her to come to a decision\, so she only became more confused and
	 stared the harder\; at last she ventured to suggest that day two months.\
	n\n\"This day two months—outrageous!\" said Charlie. \"Come here\, dear 
	old Ess\, and help me to convince this deluded girl of the preposterous ma
	nner in which she is conducting herself.\"\n\n\"I must join her side if yo
	u will bring me into the discussion. I think she is right\, Charlie—ther
	e is so much to be done: the house to procure and furnish\, and numberless
	 other things that you hasty and absurd men know nothing about.\"\n\nBy di
	nt of strong persuasion from Charlie\, Emily finally consented to abate tw
	o weeks of the time\, and they decided that a family council should be hel
	d that evening at Mrs. Ellis's\, when the whole arrangements should be def
	initely settled.\n\nA note was accordingly despatched by Esther to her mot
	her—that she\, accompanied by Emily and the children\, would come to the
	m early in the afternoon\, and that the gentlemen would join them in the e
	vening at tea-time. Caddy was\, of course\, completely upset by the intell
	igence\; for\, notwithstanding that she and the maid-of-all-work lived in 
	an almost perpetual state of house-cleaning\, nothing appeared to her to b
	e in order\, and worse than all\, there was nothing to eat.\n\n\"Nothing t
	o eat!\" exclaimed Mrs. Ellis. \"Why\, my dear child\, there are all manne
	r of preserves\, plenty of fresh peaches to cut and sugar down\, and a lar
	ge pound-cake in the house\, and any quantity of bread can be purchased at
	 the baker's.\"\n\n\"Bread—plain bread!\" rejoined Caddy\, indignantly\,
	 quite astonished at her mother's modest idea of a tea—and a company-tea
	 at that. \"Do you think\, mother\, I'd set Mr. Walters down to plain brea
	d\, when we always have hot rolls and short-cake at their house? It is not
	 to be thought of for a moment: they must have some kind of hot cake\, be 
	the consequences what they may.\"\n\nCaddy bustled herself about\, and hur
	ried up the maid-of-all-work in an astonishing manner\, and before the com
	pany arrived had everything prepared\, and looked as trim and neat herself
	 as if she had never touched a rolling-pin\, and did not know what an oven
	 was used for.\n\nBehold them all assembled. Mrs. Ellis at the head of the
	 table with a grandchild on each side of her\, and her cap-strings pinned 
	upon the side next to baby. Esther sits opposite her husband\, who is grow
	n a little grey\, but otherwise is not in the least altered\; next to her 
	is her father\, almost buried in a large easy-chair\, where he sits shakin
	g his head from time to time\, and smiling vacantly at the children\; then
	 come Emily and Charlie at the foot\, and at his other hand Caddy and Kinc
	h—Kinch the invincible—Kinch the dirty—Kinch the mischievous\, now m
	etamorphosed into a full-blown dandy\, with faultless linen\, elegant vest
	\, and fashionably-cut coat. Oh\, Kinch\, what a change—from the most sh
	abby and careless of all boys to a consummate exquisite\, with heavy gold 
	watch and eye-glass\, and who has been known to dress regularly twice a da
	y!\n\nThere was a mighty pouring out of tea at Mrs. Ellis's end of the tab
	le\, and baby of course had to be served first with some milk and bread. B
	etween her and the cat intimate relations seemed to exist\, for by their u
	nited efforts the first cap was soon disposed of\, and baby was clamouring
	 for the second before the elder portions of the family had been once serv
	ed round with tea.\n\nCharlie and Emily ate little and whispered a great d
	eal\; but Kinch\, the voracity of whose appetite had not at all diminished
	 in the length of years\, makes up for their abstinence by devouring the d
	elicious round short-cakes with astonishing rapidity. He did not pretend t
	o make more than two bites to a cake\, and they slipped away down his thro
	at as if it was a railroad tunnel and they were a train of cars behind tim
	e.\n\nCaddy felt constrained to get up every few moments to look after som
	ething\, and to assure herself by personal inspection that the reserved su
	pplies in the kitchen were not likely to be exhausted. Esther occupied her
	self in attending upon her helpless father\, and fed him as tenderly and c
	arefully as if he was one of her babies.\n\n\"I left you ladies in council
	. What was decided?\" said Charlie\, \"don't be at all bashful as regards 
	speaking before Kinch\, for he is in the secret and has been these two mon
	ths. Kinch is to be groomsman\, and has had three tailors at work on his s
	uit for a fortnight past. He told me this morning that if you did not hurr
	y matters up\, his wedding coat would be a week out of fashion before he s
	hould get a chance to wear it.\"\n\n\"How delightful—Kinch to be groomsm
	an\,\" said Esther\, \"that is very kind in you\, Kinch\, to assist us to 
	get Charlie off our hands.\"\n\n\"And who is to be bridesmaid?\" asked Wal
	ters.\n\n\"Oh\, Caddy of course—I couldn't have any one but Caddy\,\" bl
	ushingly answered Emily.\n\n\"That is capital\,\" cried Charlie\, giving K
	inch a facetious poke\, \"just the thing\, isn't it\, Kinch—it will get 
	her accustomed to these matters. You remember what you told me this mornin
	g\, eh\, old boy?\" he concluded\, archly. Kinch tried to blush\, but bein
	g very dark-complexioned\, his efforts in that direction were not at all a
	pparent\, so he evidenced his confusion by cramming a whole short-cake int
	o his mouth\, and almost caused a stoppage in the tunnel\; Caddy became ex
	cessively red in the face\, and was sure they wanted more cakes.\n\nBut Mr
	. Walters was equally confident they did not\, and put his back against th
	e door and stood there\, whilst Mrs. Ellis gravely informed them that she 
	soon expected to be her own housekeeper\, for that she had detected Caddy 
	and Kinch in a furniture establishment\, pricing a chest of drawers and a 
	wash-stand\; and that Kinch had unblushingly told her they had for some ti
	me been engaged to be married\, but somehow or other had forgotten to ment
	ion it to her.\n\nThis caused a general shout of laughter around the table
	\, in which baby tumultuously joined\, and rattled her spoon against the t
	ea-urn until she almost deafened them.\n\nThis noise frightened Mr. Ellis\
	, who cried\, \"There they come! there they come!\" and cowered down in hi
	s great chair\, and looked so exceedingly terrified\, that the noise was h
	ushed instantly\, and tears sprang into the eyes of dear old Ess\, who ros
	e and stood by him\, and laid his withered face upon her soft warm bosom\,
	 smoothed down the thin grey hair\, and held him close to her throbbing te
	nder heart\, until the wild light vanished from his bleared and sunken eye
	s\, and the vacant childish smile came back on his thin\, wan face again\,
	 when she said\, \"Pray don't laugh so very loud\, it alarms father\; he i
	s composed now\, pray don't startle him so again.\"\n\nThis sobered them d
	own a little\, and they quietly recommenced discussing the matrimonial arr
	angements\; but they were all in such capital spirits that an occasional h
	earty and good-humoured laugh could not be suppressed.\n\nMr. Walters acte
	d in his usual handsome manner\, and facetiously collaring Charlie\, took 
	him into a corner and informed him that he had an empty house that be wish
	ed him to occupy\, and that if he ever whispered the word rent\, or offere
	d him any money before he was worth twenty thousand dollars\, he should be
	lieve that he wanted to pick a quarrel with him\, and should refer him to 
	a friend\, and then pistols and coffee would be the inevitable result.\n\n
	Then it came out that Caddy and Kinch had been\, courting for some time\, 
	if not with Mrs. Ellis's verbal consent\, with at least no objection from 
	that good lady\; for Master Kinch\, besides being an exceedingly good-natu
	red fellow\, was very snug in his boots\, and had a good many thousand dol
	lars at his disposal\, bequeathed him by his father.\n\nThe fates had cons
	pired to make that old gentleman rich. He owned a number of lots on the ou
	tskirts of the city\, on which he had been paying taxes a number of years\
	, and he awoke one fine morning to find them worth a large sum of money. T
	he city council having determined to cut a street just beside them\, and t
	he property all around being in the hands of wealthy and fashionable peopl
	e\, his own proved to be exceedingly valuable.\n\nIt was a sad day for the
	 old man\, as Kinch and his mother insisted that he should give up busines
	s\, which he did most reluctantly\, and Kinch had to be incessantly on the
	 watch thereafter\, to prevent him from hiring cellars\, and sequestering 
	their old clothes to set up in business again. They were both gone now\, a
	nd Kinch was his own master\, with a well-secured income of a thousand dol
	lars a-year\, with a prospect of a large increase.\n\nThey talked matters 
	over fully\, and settled all their arrangements before the time for partin
	g\, and then\, finding the baby had scrambled into Mrs. Ellis's lap and go
	ne fast asleep\, and that it was long after ten o'clock\, each departed\, 
	taking their several ways for home.\n\nCHAPTER XXXIII.\nThe Fatal Discover
	y.\n\nThere is great bustle and confusion in the house of Mr. Bates. Mantu
	a-makers and milliners are coming in at unearthly hours\, and consultation
	s of deep importance are being duly held with maiden aunts and the young l
	adies who are to officiate as bridesmaids at the approaching ceremony. The
	re are daily excursions to drapers' establishments\, and jewellers\, and\,
	 in fact\, so much to be done and thought of\, that little Birdie is in co
	nstant confusion\, and her dear little curly head is almost turned topsy-t
	urvy. Twenty times in each day is she called upstairs to where the sempstr
	esses are at work\, to have something tried on or fitted. Poor little Bird
	ie! she declares she never can stand it: she did not dream that to be marr
	ied she would have been subjected to such a world of trouble\, or she woul
	d never have consented\,—never!\n\nAnd then Clarence\, too\, comes in ev
	ery morning\, and remains half the day\, teasing her to play\, to talk\, o
	r sing. Inconsiderate Clarence! when she has so much on her mind\; and whe
	n at last he goes\, and she begins to felicitate herself that she is rid o
	f him\, back he comes again in the evening\, and repeats the same annoyanc
	e. O\, naughty\, tiresome\, Clarence! how can you plague little Birdie so?
	 Perhaps you think she doesn't dislike it\; you may be right\, very likely
	 she doesn't.\n\nShe sometimes wonders why he grows paler and thinner each
	 day\, and his nervous and sometimes distracted manner teases her dreadful
	ly\; but she supposes all lovers act thus\, and expects they cannot help i
	t—and then little Birdie takes a sly peep in the glass\, and does not so
	 much wonder after all.\n\nYet if she sometimes deems his manner startling
	 and odd\, what would she say if she knew that\, night after night\, when 
	he left her side\, he wandered for long hours through the cold and dreary 
	streets\, and then went to his hotel\, where he paced his room until almos
	t day?\n\nAh\, little Birdie\, a smile will visit his pale face when you c
	hirp tenderly to him\, and a faint tinge comes upon his cheek when you lay
	 your soft tiny hand upon it\; yet all the while there is that desperate s
	ecret lying next his heart\, and\, like a vampire\, sucking away\, drop by
	 drop\, happiness and peace.\n\nNot so with little Birdie\; she is happy
	—oh\, so happy: she rises with a song upon her lips\, and is chirping in
	 the sunshine she herself creates\, the live-long day. Flowers of innocenc
	e bloom and flourish in her peaceful lithesome heart. Poor\, poor\, little
	 Birdie! those flowers are destined to wither soon\, and the sunlight fade
	 from thy happy face for ever.\n\nOne morning\, Clarence\, little Birdie\,
	 and her intended bridesmaid\, Miss Ellstowe\, were chatting together\, wh
	en a card was handed to the latter\, who\, on looking at it\, exclaimed\, 
	\"Oh\, dear me! an old beau of mine\; show him up\,\" and scampering off t
	o the mirror\, she gave a hasty glance\, to see that every curl was in its
	 effective position.\n\n\"Who is it?\" asked little Birdie\, all alive wit
	h curiosity\; \"do say who it is.\"\n\n\"Hush!\" whispered Miss Ellstowe\,
	 \"here he comes\, my dear\; he is very rich—a great catch\; are my curl
	s all right?\"\n\nScarcely had she asked the question\, and before an answ
	er could be returned\, the servant announced Mr. George Stevens\, and the 
	gentleman walked into the room.\n\nStart not\, reader\, it is not the old 
	man we left bent over the prostrate form of his unconscious daughter\, but
	 George Stevens\, junior\, the son and heir of the old man aforesaid. The 
	heart of Clarence almost ceased to beat at the sound of that well-known na
	me\, and had not both the ladies been so engrossed in observing the new-co
	mer\, they must have noticed the deep flush that suffused his face\, and t
	he deathly pallor that succeeded it.\n\nMr. Stevens was presented to Miss 
	Bates\, and Miss Ellstowe turned to present him to Clarence. \"Mr. Garie
	—Mr. Stevens\,\" said she. Clarence bowed.\n\n\"Pardon me\, I did not ca
	tch the name\,\" said the former\, politely.\n\n\"Mr. Clarence Garie\,\" s
	he repeated\, more distinctly.\n\nGeorge Stevens bowed\, and then sitting 
	down opposite Clarence\, eyed him for a few moments intently. \"I think we
	 have met before\,\" said he at last\, in a cold\, contemptuous tone\, not
	 unmingled with surprise\, \"have we not?\"\n\nClarence endeavoured to ans
	wer\, but could not\; he was\, for a moment\, incapable of speech\; a slig
	ht gurgling noise was heard in his throat\, as he bowed affirmatively.\n\n
	\"We were neighbours at one time\, I think\,\" added George Stevens.\n\n\"
	We were\,\" faintly ejaculated Clarence.\n\n\"It is a great surprise to me
	 to meet you here\,\" pursued George Stevens.\n\n\"The surprise is mutual\
	, I assure you\, sir\,\" rejoined Clarence\, coldly\, and with slightly ag
	itated manner.\n\nHereupon ensued an embarrassing pause in the conversatio
	n\, during which the ladies could not avoid observing the livid hue of Cla
	rence's face. There was a perfect tumult raging in his breast\; he knew th
	at now his long-treasured secret would be brought out\; this was to be the
	 end of his struggle to preserve it—to be exposed at last\, when on the 
	brink of consummating his happiness. As he sat there\, looking at George S
	tevens\, he became a murderer in his heart\; and if an invisible dagger co
	uld have been placed in his hands\, he would have driven it to the hilt in
	 his breast\, and stilled for ever the tongue that was destined to betray 
	him.\n\nBut it was too late\; one glance at the contemptuous\, malignant f
	ace of the son of his father's murderer\, told him his fate was sealed—t
	hat it was now too late to avert exposure. He grew faint\, dizzy\, ill\,
	—and rising\, declared hurriedly he must go\, staggered towards the door
	\, and fell upon the carpet\, with a slight stream of blood spirting from 
	his mouth.\n\nLittle Birdie screamed\, and ran to raise him\; George Steve
	ns and Miss Ellstowe gave their assistance\, and by their united efforts h
	e was placed upon the sofa. Little Birdie wiped the bloody foam from his m
	outh with her tiny lace handkerchief\, bathed his head\, and held cold wat
	er to his lips\; but consciousness was long returning\, and they thought h
	e was dying.\n\nPoor torn heart! pity it was thy beatings were not stilled
	 then for ever. It was not thy fate\; long\, long months of grief and desp
	air were yet to come before the end approached and day again broke upon th
	ee.\n\nJust at this crisis Mr. Bates came in\, and was greatly shocked and
	 alarmed by Clarence's deathly appearance. As he returned to consciousness
	 he looked wildly about him\, and clasping little Birdie's hand in his\, g
	azed at her with a tender imploring countenance: yet it was a despairing l
	ook—such a one as a shipwrecked seaman gives when\, in sight of land\, h
	e slowly relaxes his hold upon the sustaining spar that he has no longer t
	he strength to clutch\, and sinks for ever beneath the waters.\n\nA physic
	ian was brought in\, who declared he had ruptured a minor blood-vessel\, a
	nd would not let him utter a whisper\, and\, assisted by Mr. Bates\, place
	d him in his carriage\, and the three were driven as swiftly as possible t
	o the hotel where Clarence was staying. Little Birdie retired to her room 
	in great affliction\, followed by Miss Ellstowe\, and George Stevens was l
	eft in the room alone.\n\n\"What can the fellow have been doing here?\" he
	 soliloquised\; \"on intimate terms too\, apparently\; it is very singular
	\; I will wait Miss Ellstowe's return\, and ask an explanation.\"\n\nWhen 
	Miss Ellstowe re-entered the room\, he immediately inquired\, \"What was t
	hat Mr. Garie doing here? He seems on an exceedingly intimate footing\, an
	d your friend apparently takes a wonderful interest in him.\"\n\n\"Of cour
	se she does\; that is her fiance.\"\n\n\"Impossible!\" rejoined he\, with 
	an air of astonishment.\n\n\"Impossible!—why so? I assure you he is. The
	y are to be married in a few weeks. I am here to officiate as bridesmaid.\
	"\n\n\"Phew!\" whistled George Stevens\; and then\, after pausing a moment
	\, he asked\, \"Do you know anything about this Mr. Garie—anything\, I m
	ean\, respecting his family?\"\n\n\"Why\, no—that is\, nothing very defi
	nite\, more than that he is an orphan\, and a gentleman of education and i
	ndependent means.\"\n\n\"Humph!\" ejaculated George Stevens\, significantl
	y.\n\n\"Humph!\" repeated Miss Ellstowe\, \"what do you mean? Do you know 
	anything beyond that? One might suppose you did\, from your significant lo
	oks and gestures.\"\n\n\"Yes\, I do know something about this Mr. Garie\,\
	" he replied\, after a short silence. \"But tell me what kind of people ar
	e these you are visiting—Abolitionists\, or anything of that sort?\"\n\n
	\"How absurd\, Mr. Stevens\, to ask such a question\; of course they are n
	ot\,\" said she\, indignantly\; \"do you suppose I should be here if they 
	were? But why do you ask—is this Mr. Garie one?\"\n\n\"No\, my friend\,\
	" answered her visitor\; \"I wish that was all.\"\n\n\"That was all!—how
	 strangely you talk—you alarm me\,\" continued she\, with considerable a
	gitation. \"If you know anything that will injure the happiness of my frie
	nd—anything respecting Mr. Garie that she or her father should know—ma
	ke no secret of it\, but disclose it to me at once. Anne is my dearest fri
	end\, and I\, of course\, must be interested in anything that concerns her
	 happiness. Tell me\, what is it you know?\"\n\n\"It is nothing\, I assure
	 you\, that it will give me any pleasure to tell\,\" answered he. \"Do spe
	ak out\, Mr. Stevens. Is there any stain on his character\, or that of his
	 family? Did he ever do anything dishonourable?\"\n\n\"I wish that was all
	\,\" coolly repeated George Stevens. \"I am afraid he is a villain\, and h
	as been imposing himself upon this family for what he is not.\"\n\n\"Good 
	Heavens! Mr. Stevens\, how is he a villain or impostor?\"\n\n\"You all sup
	pose him to be a white man\, do you not?\" he asked.\n\n\"Of course we do\
	,\" she promptly answered.\n\n\"Then you are all grievously mistaken\, for
	 he is not. Did you not notice how he changed colour\, how agitated he bec
	ame\, when I was presented? It was because he knew that his exposure was a
	t hand. I know him well—in fact\, he is the illegitimate son of a deceas
	ed relative of mine\, by a mulatto slave.\"\n\n\"It cannot be possible\,\"
	 exclaimed Miss Ellstowe\, with a wild stare of astonishment. \"Are you su
	re of it?\"\n\n\"Sure of it! of course I am. I should indeed be a rash man
	 to make such a terrible charge unless perfectly able to substantiate it. 
	I have played with him frequently when a child\, and my father made a very
	 liberal provision for this young man and his sister\, after the death of 
	their father\, who lost his life through imprudently living with this woma
	n in Philadelphia\, and consequently getting himself mixed up with these d
	etestable Abolitionists.\"\n\n\"Can this be true?\" asked Miss Ellstowe\, 
	incredulously.\n\n\"I assure you it is. We had quite lost sight of them fo
	r a few years back\, and I little supposed we should meet under such circu
	mstances. I fear I shall be the cause of great discomfort\, but I am sure 
	in the end I shall be thanked. I could not\, with any sense of honour or p
	ropriety\, permit such a thing as this marriage to be consummated\, withou
	t at least warning your friends of the real position of this fellow. I tru
	st\, Miss Ellstowe\, you will inform them of what I have told you.\" \"How
	 can I? Oh\, Mr. Stevens!\" said she\, in a tone of deep distress\, \"this
	 will be a terrible blow—it will almost kill Anne. No\, no\; the task mu
	st not devolve on me—I cannot tell them. Poor little thing! it will brea
	k her heart\, I am afraid.\"\n\n\"Oh\, but you must\, Miss Ellstowe\; it w
	ould seem very impertinent in me—a stranger—to meddle in such a matter
	\; and\, besides\, they may be aware of it\, and not thank me for my inter
	ference.\"\n\n\"No\, I assure you they are not\; I am confident they have 
	not the most distant idea of such a thing—they would undoubtedly regard 
	it as an act of kindness on your part. I shall insist upon your remaining 
	until the return of Mr. Bates\, when I shall beg you to repeat to him what
	 you have already revealed to me.\"\n\n\"As you insist upon it\, I suppose
	 I must\,\" repeated he\, after some reflection\; \"but I must say I do no
	t like the office of informer\,\" concluded he\, with assumed reluctance.\
	n\n\"I am sorry to impose it upon you\; yet\, rest assured\, they will tha
	nk you.\nExcuse me for a few moments—I will go and see how Anne is.\"\n\
	nMiss Ellstowe returned\, after a short interval\, with the information th
	at little Birdie was much more composed\, and would\, no doubt\, soon reco
	ver from her fright.\n\n\"To receive a worse blow\,\" observed George Stev
	ens. \"I pity the poor little thing—only to think of the disgrace of bei
	ng engaged to a nigger. It is fortunate for them that they will make the d
	iscovery ere it be too late. Heavens! only think what the consequences mig
	ht have been had she married this fellow\, and his peculiar position becam
	e known to them afterwards! She would have been completely 'done for.'\"\n
	\nThus conversing respecting Clarence\, they awaited the return of Mr. Bat
	es. After the lapse of a couple of hours he entered the drawing-room. Mr. 
	Stevens was presented to him by Miss Ellstowe\, as a particular friend of 
	herself and family. \"I believe you were here when I came in before\; I re
	gret I was obliged to leave so abruptly\,\" courteously spoke Mr. Bates\, 
	whilst bowing to his new acquaintance\; \"the sudden and alarming illness 
	of my young friend will\, I trust\, be a sufficient apology.\"\n\n\"How is
	 he now?\" asked Miss Ellstowe.\n\n\"Better—much better\,\" answered he\
	, cheerfully\; \"but very wild and distracted in his manner—alarmingly s
	o\, in fact. He clung to my hand\, and wrung it when we parted\, and bid m
	e good bye again and again\, as if it was for the last time. Poor fellow! 
	he is frightened at that hemorrhage\, and is afraid it will be fatal\; but
	 there is not any danger\, he only requires to be kept quiet—he will soo
	n come round again\, no doubt. I shall have to ask you to excuse me again\
	,\" said he\, in conclusion\; \"I must go and see my daughter.\"\n\nMr. Ba
	tes was rising to depart\, when George Stevens gave Miss Ellstowe a signif
	icant look\, who said\, in a hesitating tone\, \"Mr. Bates\, one moment be
	fore you go. My friend\, Mr. Stevens\, has a communication to make to you 
	respecting Mr. Garie\, which will\, I fear\, cause you\, as it already has
	 me\, deep distress.\"\n\n\"Indeed!\" rejoined Mr. Bates\, in a tone of su
	rprise\; \"What is it? Nothing that reflects upon his character\, I hope.\
	"\n\n\"I do not know how my information will influence your conduct toward
	s him\, for I do not know what your sentiments may be respecting such pers
	ons. I know society in general do not receive them\, and my surprise was v
	ery great to find him here.\"\n\n\"I do not understand you\; what do you m
	ean?\" demanded Mr. Bates\, in a tone of perplexity\; \"has he ever commit
	ted any crime?\"\n\n\"HE IS A COLOURED MAN\,\" answered George Stevens\, b
	riefly. Mr. Bates became almost purple\, and gasped for breath\; then\, af
	ter staring at his informant for a few seconds incredulously\, repeated th
	e words \"Coloured man\,\" in a dreamy manner\, as if in doubt whether he 
	had really heard them.\n\n\"Yes\, coloured man\,\" said George Stevens\, c
	onfidently\; \"it grieves me to be the medium of such disagreeable intelli
	gence\; and I assure you I only undertook the office upon the representati
	on of Miss Ellstowe\, that you were not aware of the fact\, and would rega
	rd my communication as an act of kindness.\"\n\n\"It—it can't be\,\" exc
	laimed Mr. Bates\, with the air of a man determined not to be convinced of
	 a disagreeable truth\; \"it cannot be possible.\"\n\nHereupon George Stev
	ens related to him what he had recently told Miss Ellstowe respecting the 
	parentage and position of Clarence. During the narration\, the old man bec
	ame almost frantic with rage and sorrow\, bursting forth once or twice wit
	h the most violent exclamations\; and when George Stevens concluded\, he r
	ose and said\, in a husky voice—\n\n\"I'll kill him\, the infernal hypoc
	rite! Oh! the impostor to come to my house in this nefarious manner\, and 
	steal the affections of my daughter—the devilish villain! a bastard! a c
	ontemptible black-hearted nigger. Oh\, my child—my child! it will break 
	your heart when you know what deep disgrace has come upon you. I'll go to 
	him\,\" added he\, his face flushed\, and his white hair almost erect with
	 rage\; \"I'll murder him—there's not a man in the city will blame me fo
	r it\,\" and he grasped his cane as though he would go at once\, and infli
	ct summary vengeance upon the offender.\n\n\"Stop\, sir\, don't be rash\,\
	" exclaimed George Stevens\; \"I would not screen this fellow from the eff
	ects of your just and very natural indignation—he is abundantly worthy o
	f the severest punishment you can bestow\; but if you go in your present e
	xcited state\, you might be tempted to do something which would make this 
	whole affair public\, and injure\, thereby\, your daughter's future. You'l
	l pardon me\, I trust\, and not think me presuming upon my short acquainta
	nce in making the suggestion.\"\n\nMr. Bates looked about him bewilderedly
	 for a short time\, and then replied\, \"No\, no\, you need not apologize\
	, you are right—I thank you\; I myself should have known better. But my 
	poor child! what will become of her?\" and in an agony of sorrow he resume
	d his seat\, and buried his face in his hands.\n\nGeorge Stevens prepared 
	to take his departure\, but Mr. Bates pressed him to remain. \"In a little
	 while\,\" said he\, \"I shall be more composed\, and then I wish you to g
	o with me to this worthless scoundrel. I must see him at once\, and warn h
	im what the consequences will be should he dare approach my child again. D
	on't fear me\,\" he added\, as he saw George Stevens hesitated to remain\;
	 \"that whirlwind of passion is over now. I promise you I shall do nothing
	 unworthy of myself or my child.\"\n\nIt was not long before they departed
	 together for the hotel at which Clarence was staying. When they entered h
	is room\, they found him in his bed\, with the miniature of little Birdie 
	in his hands. When he observed the dark scowl on the face of Mr. Bates\, a
	nd saw by whom he was accompanied\, he knew his secret was discovered\; he
	 saw it written on their faces. He trembled like a leaf\, and his heart se
	emed like a lump of ice in his bosom. Mr. Bates was about to speak\, when 
	Clarence held up his hand in the attitude of one endeavouring to ward off 
	a blow\, and whispered hoarsely—\n\n\"Don't tell me—not yet—a little
	 longer! I see you know all. I see my sentence written on your face! Let m
	e dream a little longer ere you speak the words that must for ever part me
	 and little Birdie. I know you have come to separate us—but don't tell m
	e yet\; for when you do\,\" said he\, in an agonized tone\, \"it will kill
	 me!\"\n\n\"I wish to God it would!\" rejoined Mr. Bates. \"I wish you had
	 died long ago\; then you would have never come beneath my roof to destroy
	 its peace for ever. You have acted basely\, palming yourself upon us—co
	unterfeit as you were! and taking in exchange her true love and my honest\
	, honourable regard.\"\n\nClarence attempted to speak\, but Mr. Bates glar
	ed at him\, and continued—\"There are laws to punish thieves and counter
	feits—but such as you may go unchastised\, except by the abhorrence of a
	ll honourable men. Had you been unaware of your origin\, and had the revel
	ation of this gentleman been as new to you as to me\, you would have deser
	ved sympathy\; but you have been acting a lie\, claiming a position in soc
	iety to which you knew you had no right\, and deserve execration and conte
	mpt. Did I treat you as my feelings dictated\, you would understand what i
	s meant by the weight of a father's anger\; but I do not wish the world to
	 know that my daughter has been wasting her affections upon a worthless ni
	gger\; that is all that protects you! Now\, hear me\,\" he added\, fiercel
	y\,—\"if ever you presume to darken my door again\, or attempt to approa
	ch my daughter\, I will shoot you\, as sure as you sit there before me!\"\
	n\n\"And serve you perfectly right!\" observed George Stevens.\n\n\"Silenc
	e\, sir!\" rejoined Clarence\, sternly. \"How dare you interfere? He may s
	ay what he likes—reproach me as he pleases—he is her father—I have n
	o other reply\; but if you dare again to utter a word\, I'll—\" and Clar
	ence paused and looked about him as if in search of something with which t
	o enforce silence.\n\nFeeble-looking as he was\, there was an air of deter
	mination about him which commanded acquiescence\, and George Stevens did n
	ot venture upon another observation during the interview.\n\n\"I want my d
	aughter's letters—every line she ever wrote to you\; get them at once—
	I want them now\,\" said Mr. Bates\, imperatively.\n\n\"I cannot give them
	 to you immediately\, they are not accessible at present.\nDoes she want t
	hem?\" he asked\, feebly—\"has she desired to have them back?\"\n\n\"Nev
	er mind that!\" said the old man\, sternly\; \"no evasions. Give me the le
	tters!\"\n\n\"To-morrow I will send them\,\" said Clarence. \"I will read 
	them all over once again\,\" thought he.\n\n\"I cannot believe you\,\" sai
	d Mr. Bates.\n\n\"I promise you upon my honour I will send them tomorrow!\
	"\n\n\"A nigger's honour!\" rejoined Mr. Bates\, with a contemptuous sneer
	. \"Yes\, sir—a nigger's honour!\" repeated Clarence\, the colour mounti
	ng to his pale cheeks. \"A few drops of negro blood in a man's reins do no
	t entirely deprive him of noble sentiments. 'Tis true my past concealment 
	does not argue in my favour.—I concealed that which was no fault of my o
	wn\, but what the injustice of society has made a crime.\"\n\n\"I am not h
	ere for discussion\; and I suppose I must trust to your honour\,\" interru
	pted Mr. Bates\, with a sneer. \"But remember\, if the letters are not for
	thcoming to-morrow I shall be here again\, and then\,\" concluded he in a 
	threatening tone\, \"my visit will not be as harmless as this has been!\"\
	n\nAfter they had gone\, Clarence rose and walked feebly to his desk\, whi
	ch\, with great effort and risk\, he removed to the bed-side\; then taking
	 from it little Birdie's letters\, he began their perusal.\n\nAy! read the
	m again—and yet again\; pore over their contents—dwell on those passag
	es replete with tenderness\, until every word is stamped upon thy breaking
	 heart—linger by them as the weary traveller amid Sahara's sand pauses b
	y some sparkling fountain in a shady oasis\, tasting of its pure waters er
	e he launches forth again upon the arid waste beyond. This is the last gre
	en spot upon thy way to death\; beyond whose grim portals\, let us believe
	\, thou and thy \"little Birdie\" may meet again.\n\nCHAPTER XXXIV.\n\"Mur
	der will out.\"\n\nThe city clocks had just tolled out the hour of twelve\
	, the last omnibus had rumbled by\, and the silence without was broken onl
	y at rare intervals when some belated citizen passed by with hurried foots
	teps towards his home. All was still in the house of Mr. Stevens—so quie
	t\, that the ticking of the large clock in the hall could be distinctly he
	ard at the top of the stairway\, breaking the solemn stillness of the nigh
	t with its monotonous \"click\, click—click\, click!\"\n\nIn a richly fu
	rnished chamber overlooking the street a dim light was burning\; so dimly\
	, in fact\, that the emaciated form of Mr. Stevens was scarcely discernibl
	e amidst the pillows and covering of the bed on which he was lying. Above 
	him a brass head of curious workmanship held in its clenched teeth the can
	opy that overshadowed the bed\; and as the light occasionally flickered an
	d brightened\, the curiously carved face seemed to light up with a sort of
	 sardonic grin\; and the grating of the curtain-rings\, as the sick man to
	ssed from side to side in his bed\, would have suggested the idea that the
	 odd supporter of the canopy was gnashing his brazen teeth at him.\n\nOn t
	he wall\, immediately opposite the light\, hung a portrait of Mrs. Stevens
	\; not the sharp\, hard face we once introduced to the reader\, but a smoo
	ther\, softer countenance—yet a worn and melancholy one in its expressio
	n. It looked as if the waves of grief had beaten upon it for a long succes
	sion of years\, until they had tempered down its harsher peculiarities\, g
	iving a subdued appearance to the whole countenance.\n\n\"There is twelve 
	o'clock—give me my drops again\, Lizzie\,\" he remarked\, faintly. At th
	e sound of his voice Lizzie emerged from behind the curtains\, and essayed
	 to pour into a glass the proper quantity of medicine. She was twice oblig
	ed to pour back into the phial what she had just emptied forth\, as the tr
	embling of her hands caused her each time to drop too much\; at last\, hav
	ing succeeded in getting the exact number of drops\, she handed him the gl
	ass\, the contents of which he eagerly drank.\n\n\"There!\" said he\, \"th
	ank you\; now\, perhaps\, I may sleep. I have not slept for two nights—s
	uch has been my anxiety about that man\; nor you either\, my child—I hav
	e kept you awake also. You can sleep\, though\, without drops. To-morrow\,
	 when you are prepared to start\, wake me\, if I am asleep\, and let me sp
	eak to you before you go. Remember\, Lizzie\, frighten him if you can! Tel
	l him\, I am ill myself—that I can't survive this continued worriment an
	d annoyance. Tell him\, moreover\, I am not made of gold\, and will not be
	 always giving. I don't believe he is sick—dying—do you?\" he asked\, 
	looking into her face\, as though he did not anticipate an affirmative ans
	wer.\n\n\"No\, father\, I don't think he is really ill\; I imagine it is a
	nother subterfuge to extract money. Don't distress yourself unnecessarily\
	; perhaps I may have some influence with him—I had before\, you know!\"\
	n\n\"Yes\, yes\, dear\, you managed him very well that time—very well\,\
	" said he\, stroking down her hair affectionately. \"I—I—my child\, I 
	could never have told you of that dreadful secret\; but when I found that 
	you knew it all\, my heart experienced a sensible relief. It was a selfish
	 pleasure\, I know\; yet it eased me to share my secret\; the burden is no
	t half so heavy now.\"\n\n\"Father\, would not your mind be easier still\,
	 if you could be persuaded to make restitution to his children? This wealt
	h is valueless to us both. You can never ask forgiveness for the sin whils
	t you cling thus tenaciously to its fruits.\"\n\n\"Tut\, tut—no more of 
	that!\" said he\, impatiently\; \"I cannot do it without betraying myself.
	 If I gave it back to them\, what would become of you and George\, and how
	 am I to stop the clamours of that cormorant? No\, no! it is useless to ta
	lk of it—I cannot do it!\"\n\n\"There would be still enough left for Geo
	rge\, after restoring them their own\, and you might give this man my shar
	e of what is left. I would rather work day and night\,\" said she\, determ
	inedly\, \"than ever touch a penny of the money thus accumulated.\"\n\n\"I
	've thought all that over\, long ago\, but I dare not do it—it might cau
	se inquiries to be made that might result to my disadvantage. No\, I canno
	t do that\; sit down\, and let us be quiet now.\"\n\nMr. Stevens lay back 
	upon his pillow\, and for a moment seemed to doze\; then starting up again
	 suddenly\, he asked\, \"Have you told George about it? Have you ever conf
	ided anything to him?\"\n\n\"No\, papa\,\" answered she soothingly\, \"not
	 a breath\; I've been secret as the grave.\"\n\n\"That's right!\" rejoined
	 he—\"that is right! I love George\, but not as I do you. He only comes 
	to me when he wants money. He is not like you\, darling—you take care of
	 and nurse your poor old father. Has he come in yet?\"\n\n\"Not yet\; he n
	ever gets home until almost morning\, and is then often fearfully intoxica
	ted.\"\n\nThe old man shook his head\, and muttered\, \"The sins of the fa
	thers shall—what is that? Did you hear that noise?—hush!\"\n\nLizzie s
	tood quietly by him for a short while\, and then walked on tiptoe to the d
	oor—\"It is George\,\" said she\, after peering into the gloom of their 
	entry\; \"he has admitted him self with his night-key.\"\n\nThe shuffling 
	sound of footsteps was now quite audible upon the stairway\, and soon the 
	bloated face of Mr. Stevens's hopeful son was seen at the chamber door. In
	 society and places where this young gentleman desired to maintain a respe
	ctable character he could be as well behaved\, as choice in his language\,
	 and as courteous as anybody\; but at home\, where he was well known\, and
	 where he did not care to place himself under any restraint\, he was a ver
	y different individual.\n\n\"Let me in\, Liz\,\" said he\, in a thick voic
	e\; \"I want the old man to fork over some money—I'm cleaned out.\"\n\n\
	"No\, no—go to bed\, George\,\" she answered\, coaxingly\, \"and talk to
	 him about it in the morning.\"\n\n\"I'm coming in now\,\" said he\, deter
	minedly\; \"and besides\, I want to tell you something about that nigger G
	arie.\"\n\n\"Tell us in the morning\,\" persisted Lizzy.\n\n\"No—I'm goi
	ng to tell you now\,\" rejoined he\, forcing his way into the room—\"it'
	s too good to keep till morning. Pick up that wick\, let a fellow see if y
	ou are all alive!\"\n\nLizzie raised the wick of the lamp in accordance wi
	th his desire\, and then sat down with an expression of annoyance and vexa
	tion on her countenance.\n\nGeorge threw himself into an easy chair\, and 
	began\, \"I saw that white nigger Garie to-night\, he was in company with 
	a gentleman\, at that—the assurance of that fellow is perfectly incompre
	hensible. He was drinking at the bar of the hotel\; and as it is no secret
	 why he and Miss Bates parted\, I enlightened the company on the subject o
	f his antecedents. He threatened to challenge me! Ho! ho!—fight with a n
	igger—that is too good a joke!\" And laughing heartily\, the young ruffi
	an leant back in his chair. \"I want some money to-morrow\, dad\,\" contin
	ued he. \"I say\, old gentleman\, wasn't it a lucky go that darkey's fathe
	r was put out of the way so nicely\, eh?—We've been living in clover eve
	r since—haven't we?\"\n\n\"How dare you address me-in that disrespectful
	 manner? Go out of the room\, sir!\" exclaimed Mr. Stevens\, with a distur
	bed countenance.\n\n\"Come\, George\, go to bed\,\" urged his sister weari
	ly. \"Let father sleep—it is after twelve o'clock. I am going to wake th
	e nurse\, and then retire myself.\"\n\nGeorge rose stupidly from his chair
	\, and followed his sister from the room. On the stairway he grasped her a
	rm rudely\, and said\, \"I don't understand how it is that you and the old
	 man are so cursed thick all of a sudden. You are thick as two thieves\, a
	lways whispering and talking together. Act fair\, Liz—don't persuade him
	 to leave you all the money. If you do\, we'll quarrel—that's flat. Don'
	t try and cozen him out of my share as well as your own—you hear!\"\n\n\
	"Oh\, George!\" rejoined she reproachfully—\"I never had such an idea.\"
	\n\n\"Then what are you so much together for? Why is there so much whisper
	ing and writing\, and going off on journeys all alone? What does it all me
	an\, eh?\"\n\n\"It means nothing at all\, George. You are not yourself to-
	night\,\" said she evasively\; \"you had better go to bed.\"\n\n\"It is yo
	u that are not yourself\,\" he retorted. \"What makes you look so pale and
	 worried—and why do you and the old man start if the door cracks\, as if
	 the devil was after you? What is the meaning of that?\" asked he with a d
	runken leer. \"You had better look out\,\" concluded he\; \"I'm watching y
	ou both\, and will find out all your secrets by-and-by.\"\n\n\"Learn all o
	ur secrets! Ah\, my brother!\" thought she\, as he disappeared into his ro
	om\, \"you need not desire to have their fearful weight upon you\, or you 
	will soon grow as anxious\, thin\, and pale as I am.\"\n\nThe next day at 
	noon Lizzie started on her journey\, after a short conference with her fat
	her.\n\nNight had settled upon her native city\, when she was driven throu
	gh its straight and seemingly interminable thoroughfares. The long straigh
	t rows of lamps\, the snowy steps\, the scrupulously clean streets\, the s
	igns over the stores\, were like the faces of old acquaintances\, and at a
	ny other time would have caused agreeable recollections\; but the object o
	f her visit pre-occupied her mind\, to the exclusion of any other and more
	 pleasant associations.\n\nShe ordered the coachman to take her to an obsc
	ure hotel\, and\, after having engaged a room\, she left her baggage and s
	tarted in search of the residence of McCloskey.\n\nShe drew her veil down 
	over her face very closely\, and walked quickly through the familiar stree
	ts\, until she arrived at the place indicated in his letter. It was a smal
	l\, mean tenement\, in a by street\, in which there were but one or two ot
	her houses. The shutters were closed from the upper story to the lowest\, 
	and the whole place wore an uninhabited appearance. After knocking several
	 times\, she was about to give up in despair\, when she discovered through
	 the glass above the door the faint glimmer of a light\, and shortly after
	 a female voice demanded from the inside\, \"Who is there?\"\n\n\"Does Mr.
	 McCloskey live here?\" asked Lizzie.\n\nHearing a voice not more formidab
	le than her own\, the person within partially opened the door\; and\, whil
	st shading with one hand the candle she held in the other\, gazed out upon
	 the speaker.\n\n\"Does Mr. McCloskey live here?\" repeated Lizzie.\n\n\"Y
	es\, he does\,\" answered the woman\, in a weak voice\; \"but he's got the
	 typers.\"\n\n\"Has the what?\" inquired Lizzie\, who did not exactly unde
	rstand her.\n\n\"Got the typers—got the fever\, you know.\"\n\n\"The typ
	hus fever!\" said Lizzie\, with a start\; \"then he is really sick.\"\n\n\
	"Really sick!\" repeated the woman—\"really sick! Well\, I should think 
	he was! Why\, he's been a raving and swearing awful for days\; he stormed 
	and screamed so loud that the neighbours complained. Law! they had to even
	 shave his head.\"\n\n\"Is he any better?\" asked Lizzie\, with a sinking 
	heart. \"Can I see him?\"\n\n\"'Praps you can\, if you go to the hospital 
	to-morrow\; but whether you'll find him living or dead is more than I can 
	say. I couldn't keep him here—I wasn't able to stand him. I've had the f
	ever myself—he took it from me. You must come in\,\" continued the woman
	\, \"if you want to talk—I'm afraid of catching cold\, and can't stand a
	t the door. Maybe you're afraid of the fever\,\" she further observed\, as
	 she saw Lizzie hesitate on the door-step.\n\n\"Oh\, no\, I'm not afraid o
	f that\,\" answered Lizzie quickly—\"I am not in the least afraid.\"\n\n
	\"Come in\, then\,\" reiterated the woman\, \"and I'll tell you all about 
	it.\"\n\nThe woman looked harmless enough\, and Lizzie hesitated no longer
	\, but followed her through the entry into a decently furnished room. Sett
	ing the candlestick upon the mantelpiece\, she offered her visitor a chair
	\, and then continued—\n\n\"He came home this last time in an awful stat
	e. Before he left some one sent him a load of money\, and he did nothing b
	ut drink and gamble whilst it lasted. I used to tell him that he ought to 
	take care of his money\, and he'd snap his fingers and laugh. He used to s
	ay that he owned the goose that laid the golden eggs\, and could have mone
	y whenever he wanted it. Well\, as I was a saying\, he went\; and when he 
	came back he had an awful attack of delirium tremens\, and then he took th
	e typers. Oh\, laws mercy!\" continued she\, holding up her bony hands\, \
	"how that critter raved! He talked about killing people.\"\n\n\"He did!\" 
	interrupted Lizzie\, with a gesture of alarm\, and laying her hand upon he
	r heart\, which beat fearfully—\"did he mention any name?\"\n\nThe woman
	 did not stop to answer this question\, but proceeded as if she had not be
	en interrupted. \"He was always going on about two orphans and a will\, an
	d he used to curse and swear awfully about being obliged to keep something
	 hid. It was dreadful to listen to—it would almost make your hair stand 
	on end to hear him.\"\n\n\"And he never mentioned names?\" said Lizzie inq
	uiringly.\n\n\"No\, that was so strange\; he never mentioned no names—ne
	ver. He used to rave a great deal about two orphans and a will\, and he wo
	uld ransack the bed\, and pull up the sheets\, and look under the pillows\
	, as if he thought it was there. Oh\, he acted very strange\, but never me
	ntioned no names. I used to think he had something in his trunk\, he was s
	o very special about it. He was better the day they took him off\; and the
	 trunk went with him—he would have it\; but since then he's had a dreadf
	ul relapse\, and there's no knowin' whether he is alive or dead.\"\n\n\"I 
	must go to the hospital\,\" said Lizzie\, rising from her seat\, and great
	ly relieved to learn that nothing of importance had fallen from McCloskey 
	during his delirium. \"I shall go there as quickly as I can\,\" she observ
	ed\, walking to the door.\n\n\"You'll not see him to-night if you do\,\" r
	ejoined the woman. \"Are you a relation?\"\n\n\"Oh\, no\,\" answered Lizzi
	e\; \"my father is an acquaintance of his. I learned that he was ill\, and
	 came to inquire after him.\"\n\nHad the woman not been very indifferent o
	r unobservant\, she would have noticed the striking difference between the
	 manner and appearance of Lizzie Stevens and the class who generally came 
	to see McCloskey. She did not\, however\, appear to observe it\, nor did s
	he manifest any curiosity greater than that evidenced by her inquiring if 
	he was a relative.\n\nLizzie walked with a lonely feeling through the quie
	t streets until she arrived at the porter's lodge of the hospital. She pul
	led the bell with trembling hands\, and the door was opened by the little 
	bald-headed man whose loquacity was once (the reader will remember) so pai
	nful to Mrs. Ellis. There was no perceptible change in his appearance\, an
	d he manifestly took as warm an interest in frightful accidents as ever. \
	"What is it—what is it?\" he asked eagerly\, as Lizzie's pale face becam
	e visible in the bright light that shone from the inner office. \"Do you w
	ant a stretcher?\"\n\nThe rapidity with which he asked these questions\, a
	nd his eager manner\, quite startled her\, and she was for a moment unable
	 to tell her errand.\n\n\"Speak up\, girl—speak up! Do you want a stretc
	her—is it burnt or run over. Can't you speak\, eh?\"\n\nIt now flashed u
	pon Lizzie that the venerable janitor was labouring under the impression t
	hat she had come to make application for the admission of a patient\, and 
	she quickly answered—\n\n\"Oh\, no\; it is nothing of the kind\, I am gl
	ad to say.\"\n\n\"Glad to say\,\" muttered the old man\, the eager\, expec
	tant look disappearing from his face\, giving place to one of disappointme
	nt—\"glad to say\; why there hasn't been an accident to-day\, and here y
	ou've gone and rung the bell\, and brought me here to the door for nothing
	. What do you want then?\"\n\n\"I wish to inquire after a person who is he
	re.\"\n\n\"What's his number?\" gruffly inquired he.\n\n\"That I cannot te
	ll\,\" answered she\; \"his name is McCloskey.\"\n\n\"I don't know anythin
	g about him. Couldn't tell who he is unless I go all over the books to-nig
	ht. We don't know people by their names here\; come in the morning—ten o
	'clock\, and don't never ring that bell again\,\" concluded he\, sharply\,
	 \"unless you want a stretcher: ringing the bell\, and no accident\;\" and
	 grumbling at being disturbed for nothing\, he abruptly closed the door in
	 Lizzie's face.\n\nAnxious and discomfited\, she wandered back to her hote
	l\; and after drinking a weak cup of tea\, locked her room-door\, and reti
	red to bed. There she lay\, tossing from side to side—she could not sl
	eep—her anxiety respecting her father's safety\; her fears\, lest in the
	 delirium of fever McCloskey should discover their secret\, kept her awake
	 far into the night\, and the city clocks struck two ere she fell asleep.\
	n\nWhen she awoke in the morning the sun was shining brightly into her roo
	m\; for a few moments she could not realize where she was\; but the events
	 of the past night soon came freshly to her\; looking at her watch\, she r
	emembered that she was to go to the hospital at ten\, and it was already h
	alf-past nine\; her wakefulness the previous night having caused her to sl
	eep much later than her usual hour.\n\nDressing herself in haste\, she hur
	ried down to breakfast\; and after having eaten a slight meal\, ordered a 
	carriage\, and drove to the hospital.\n\nThe janitor was in his accustomed
	 seat\, and nodded smilingly to her as she entered. He beckoned her to him
	\, and whispered\, \"I inquired about him. McCloskey\, fever-ward\, No. 21
	\, died this morning at two o'clock and forty minutes.\"\n\n\"Dead!\" echo
	ed Lizzie\, with a start of horror.\n\n\"Yes\, dead\,\" repeated he\, with
	 a complacent look\; \"any relation of yours—want an order for the body?
	\"\n\nLizzie was so astounded by this intelligence\, that she could not re
	ply\; and the old man continued mysteriously. \"Came to before he died—w
	ish he hadn't—put me to a deal of trouble—sent for a magistrate—then
	 for a minister—had something on his mind—couldn't die without telling
	 it\, you know\; then there was oaths\, depositions—so much trouble. Are
	 you his relation—want an order for the body?\"\n\n\"Oaths! magistrate
	!—a confession no doubt\,\" thought Lizzie\; her limbs trembled\; she wa
	s so overcome with terror that she could scarcely stand\; clinging to the 
	railing of the desk by which she was standing for support\, she asked\, he
	sitatingly\, \"He had something to confess then?\"\n\nThe janitor looked a
	t her for a few moments attentively\, and seemed to notice for the first t
	ime her ladylike appearance and manners\; a sort of reserve crept over him
	 at the conclusion of his scrutiny\, for he made no answer to her question
	\, but simply asked\, with more formality than before\, \"Are you a relati
	on—do you want an order for the body?\"\n\nEre Lizzie could answer his q
	uestion\, a man\, plainly dressed\, with keen grey eyes that seemed to loo
	k restlessly about in every corner of the room\, came and stood beside the
	 janitor. He looked at Lizzie from the bow on the top of her bonnet to the
	 shoes on her feet\; it was not a stare\, it was more a hasty glance—and
	 yet she could not help feeling that he knew every item of her dress\, and
	 could have described her exactly.\n\n\"Are you a relative of this person\
	,\" he asked\, in a clear sharp voice\, whilst his keen eyes seemed to be 
	piercing her through in search of the truth.\n\n\"No\, sir\,\" she answere
	d\, faintly.\n\n\"A friend then\, I presume\,\" continued he\, respectfull
	y.\n\n\"An acquaintance\,\" returned she. The man paused for a few moments
	\, then taking out his watch\, looked at the time\, and hastened from the 
	office.\n\nThis man possessed Lizzie with a singular feeling of dread—wh
	y she could not determine\; yet\, after he was gone\, she imagined those c
	old grey eyes were resting on her\, and bidding the old janitor\, who had 
	grown reserved so suddenly\, good morning\, she sprang into her carriage a
	s fast as her trembling limbs could carry her\, and ordered the coachman t
	o drive back to the hotel.\n\n\"Father must fly!\" soliloquized she\; \"th
	e alarm will\, no doubt\, lend him energy. I've heard of people who have n
	ot been able to leave their rooms for months becoming suddenly strong unde
	r the influence of terror. We must be off to some place of concealment unt
	il we can learn whether he is compromised by that wretched man's confessio
	n.\"\n\nLizzie quickly paid her bill\, packed her trunk\, and started for 
	the station in hopes of catching the mid-day train for New York.\n\nThe dr
	iver did not spare his horses\, but at her request drove them at their utm
	ost speed—but in vain. She arrived there only time enough to see the tra
	in move away\; and there\, standing on the platform\, looking at her with 
	a sort of triumphant satisfaction\, was the man with the keen grey eyes. \
	"Stop! stop!\" cried she.\n\n\"Too late\, miss\,\" said a bystander\, symp
	athizingly\; \"just too late—no other train for three hours.\"\n\n\"Thre
	e hours!\" said Lizzie\, despairingly\; \"three hours! Yet I must be patie
	nt—there is no remedy\,\" and she endeavoured to banish her fears and oc
	cupy herself in reading the advertisements that were posted up about the s
	tation. It was of no avail\, that keen-looking man with his piercing grey 
	eyes haunted her\; and she could not avoid associating him in her thoughts
	 with her father and McCloskey. What was he doing on the train\, and why d
	id he regard her with that look of triumphant satisfaction.\n\nThose were 
	to her the three longest hours of her life. Wearily and impatiently she pa
	ced up and down the long saloon\, watching the hands of the clock as they 
	appeared to almost creep over the dial-plate. Twenty times during those th
	ree hours did she compare the clock with her watch\, and found they moved 
	on unvaryingly together.\n\nAt last the hour for the departure of the trai
	n arrived\; and seated in the car\, she was soon flying at express speed o
	n the way towards her home. \"How much sooner does the other train arrive 
	than we?\" she asked of the conductor.\n\n\"Two hours and a half\, miss\,\
	" replied he\, courteously\; \"we gain a half-hour upon them.\"\n\n\"A hal
	f-hour—that is something gained\,\" thought she\; \"I may reach my fathe
	r before that man. Can he be what I suspect?\"\n\nOn they went—thirty—
	forty—fifty miles an hour\, yet she thought it slow. Dashing by villages
	\, through meadows\, over bridges\,—rattling\, screaming\, puffing\, on 
	their way to the city of New York. In due time they arrived at the ferry\,
	 and after crossing the river were in the city itself. Lizzie took the fir
	st carriage that came to hand\, and was soon going briskly through the str
	eets towards her father's house. The nearer she approached it\, the greate
	r grew her fears\; a horrible presentiment that something awful had occurr
	ed\, grew stronger and stronger as she drew nearer home. She tried to brav
	e it off—resist it—crush it—but it came back upon her each time with
	 redoubled force.\n\nOn she went\, nearer and nearer every moment\, until 
	at last she was in the avenue itself. She gazed eagerly from the carriage\
	, and thought she observed one or two persons run across the street opposi
	te her father's house. It could not be!—she looked again—yes\, there w
	as a group beneath his window. \"Faster! faster!\" she cried frantically\;
	 \"faster if you can.\" The door was at last reached\; she sprang from the
	 carriage and pressed through the little knot of people who were gathered 
	on the pavement. Alas! her presentiments were correct. There\, lying on th
	e pavement\, was the mangled form of her father\, who had desperately spru
	ng from the balcony above\, to escape arrest from the man with the keen gr
	ey eyes\, who\, with the warrant in his hand\, stood contemplating the lif
	eless body.\n\n\"Father! father!\" cried Lizzie\, in an anguished voice\; 
	\"father\, speak once!\" Too late! too late! the spirit had passed away—
	the murderer had rushed before a higher tribunal—a mightier Judge—into
	 the presence of One who tempers justice with mercy.\n\nCHAPTER XXXV.\nThe
	 Wedding.\n\nThe night that Lizzie Stevens arrived in Philadelphia was the
	 one decided upon for the marriage of Emily Garie and Charles Ellis\; and 
	whilst she was wandering so lonely through the streets of one part of the 
	city\, a scene of mirth and gaiety was transpiring in another\, some of th
	e actors in which would be made more happy by events that would be product
	ive of great sorrow to her.\n\nThroughout that day bustle and confusion ha
	d reigned supreme in the house of Mr. Walters. Caddy\, who had been there 
	since the break of day\, had taken the domestic reins entirely from the ha
	nds of the mistress of the mansion\, and usurped command herself. Quiet Es
	ther was well satisfied to yield her full control of the domestic arrangem
	ents for the festivities\, and Caddy was nothing loath to assume them.\n\n
	She entered upon the discharge of her self-imposed duties with such ardour
	 as to leave no doubt upon the minds of the parties most interested but th
	at they would be thoroughly performed\, and with an alacrity too that posi
	tively appalled quiet Esther's easy-going servants.\n\nGreat doubts had be
	en expressed as to whether Caddy could successfully sustain the combined c
	haracters of chef de cuisine and bridesmaid\, and a failure had been proph
	esied. She therefore felt it incumbent upon her to prove these prognostica
	tions unfounded\, and demonstrate the practicability of the undertaking. O
	n the whole\, she went to work with energy\, and seemed determined to esta
	blish the fact that her abilities were greatly underrated\, and that a wom
	an could accomplish more than one thing at a time when she set about it.\n
	\nThe feelings of all such persons about the establishment of Mr. Walters 
	as were \"constitutionally tired\" received that day divers serious shocks
	 at the hands of Miss Caddy—who seemed endowed with a singular faculty w
	hich enabled her to discover just what people did not want to do\, and of 
	setting them at it immediately.\n\nFor instance\, Jane\, the fat girl\, ha
	ted going upstairs excessively. Caddy employed her in bringing down glass 
	and china from a third-story pantry\; and\, moreover\, only permitted her 
	to bring a small quantity at a time\, which rendered a number of trips str
	ictly necessary\, to the great aggravation and serious discomfort of the f
	at girl in question.\n\nOn the other hand\, Julia\, the slim chambermaid\,
	 who would have been delighted with such employment\, and who would have u
	ndoubtedly refreshed herself on each excursion upstairs with a lengthened 
	gaze from the window\, was condemned to the polishing of silver and dustin
	g of plates and glass in an obscure back pantry\, which contained but one 
	window\, and that commanding a prospect of a dead wall.\n\nMiss Caddy felt
	 in duty bound to inspect each cake\, look over the wine\, and (to the gre
	at discomfiture of the waiter) decant it herself\, not liking to expose hi
	m to any unnecessary temptation. She felt\, too\, all the more inclined to
	 assume the office of butler from the fact that\, at a previous party of h
	er sister's\, she had detected this same gentleman with a bottle of the be
	st sherry at his mouth\, whilst he held his head thrown back in a most sur
	prising manner\, with a view\, no doubt\, of contemplating the ceiling mor
	e effectually from that position.\n\nBefore night such was the increasing 
	demand for help in the kitchen that Caddy even kidnapped the nurse\, and l
	ocked the brown baby and her sister in the bath-room\, where there was no 
	window in their reach\, nor any other means at hand from which the slighte
	st injury could result to them. Here they were supplied with a tub half fi
	lled with water\, and spent the time most delightfully in making boats of 
	their shoes\, and lading them with small pieces of soap\, which they bit o
	ff from the cake for the occasion\; then\, coasting along to the small tow
	ns on the borders of the tub\, they disposed of their cargoes to imaginary
	 customers to immense advantage.\n\nWalters had declared the house uninhab
	itable\, and had gone out for the day. Esther and Emily busied themselves 
	in arranging the flowers in the drawing-room and hall\, and hanging amidst
	 the plants on the balcony little stained glass lamps\; all of which Caddy
	 thought very well in its way\, but which she was quite confident would be
	 noticed much less by the guests than the supper—in which supposition sh
	e was undoubtedly correct.\n\nKinch also lounged in two or three times dur
	ing the day\, to seek consolation at the hands of Esther and Emily. He was
	 in deep distress of mind—in great perturbation. His tailor had promised
	 to send home a vest the evening previous and had not fulfilled his agreem
	ent. After his first visit Kinch entered the house in the most stealthy ma
	nner\, for fear of being encountered by Caddy\; who\, having met him in th
	e hall during the morning\, posted him off for twenty pounds of sugar\, a 
	ball of twine\, and a stone jar\, despite his declaration of pre-engagemen
	ts\, haste\, and limited knowledge of the articles in question.\n\nWhilst 
	Lizzie Stevens was tremblingly ringing the bell at the lodge of the hospit
	al\, busy hands were also pulling at that of Mr. Walters's dwelling. Carri
	age after carriage rolled up\, and deposited their loads of gay company\, 
	who skipped nimbly over the carpet that was laid down from the door to the
	 curbstone. Through the wide hall and up the stairway\, flowers of various
	 kinds mingled their fragrance and loaded the air with their rich perfume\
	; and expressions of delight burst from the lips of the guests as they pas
	sed up the brilliantly-lighted stairway and thronged the spacious drawing-
	rooms. There were but few whites amongst them\, and they particular friend
	s. There was Mrs. Bird\, who had travelled from Warmouth to be present at 
	the ceremony\; Mr. Balch\, the friend and legal adviser of the bride's fat
	her\; Father Banks\, who was to tie the happy knot\; and there\, too\, was
	 Mrs. Burrell\, and that baby\, now grown to a promising lad\, and who wou
	ld come to the wedding because Charlie had sent him a regular invitation w
	ritten like that sent his parents.\n\nMr. and Mrs. Ellis were of course th
	ere\,—the latter arrayed in a rich new silk made up expressly for the oc
	casion—and the former almost hidden in his large easy chair. The poor ol
	d gentleman scarcely seemed able to comprehend the affair\, and apparently
	 laboured under the impression that it was another mob\, and looked a litt
	le terrified at times when the laughter or conversation grew louder than u
	sual.\n\nThe hour for the ceremony was fast approaching\, and Esther left 
	the assembled guests and went up into Emily Garie's room to assist the you
	ng ladies in preparing the bride. They all besought her to be calm\, not t
	o agitate herself upon any consideration\; and then bustled about her\, an
	d flurried themselves in the most ridiculous manner\, with a view\, no dou
	bt\, of tranquillizing her feelings more effectually.\n\n\"Little Em\,\" s
	oon to be Mrs. Ellis\, was busily engaged in dressing\; the toilet-table w
	as covered with lighted candles\, and all the gas-burners in the room were
	 in full blaze\, bringing everything out in bold relief.\n\n\"We are havin
	g quite an illumination\; the glare almost blinds me\,\" said\nEmily. \"Pu
	t out some of the candles.\"\n\n\"No\, no\, my dear\,\" rejoined one of th
	e young ladies engaged in dressing her\; \"we cannot sacrifice a candle. W
	e don't need them to discern your charms\, Em\; only to enable us to disco
	ver how to deck them to the best advantage. How sweet you look!\"\n\nEmily
	 gazed into the mirror\; and from the blush that suffused her face and the
	 look of complacency that followed\, it was quite evident that she shared 
	her friend's opinion. She did\, indeed\, look charming. There was a deeper
	 colour than usual on her cheeks\, and her eyes were illumined with a soft
	\, tender light. Her wavy brown hair was parted smoothly on the front\, an
	d gathered into a cluster of curls at the back. Around her neck glistened 
	a string of pearls\, a present from Mr. Winston\, who had just returned fr
	om South America. The pure white silk fitted to a nicety\, and the tiny sa
	tin slippers seemed as if they were made upon her feet\, and never intende
	d to come off again. Her costume was complete\, with the exception of the 
	veil and wreath\, and Esther opened the box that she supposed contained th
	em\, for the purpose of arranging them on the bride.\n\n\"Where have you p
	ut the veil\, my dear?\" she asked\, after raising the lid of the box\, an
	d discovering that they were not there.\n\n\"In the box\, are they not?\" 
	answered one of the young ladies.\n\n\"No\, they are not there\,\" continu
	ed Esther\, as she turned over the various articles with which the tables 
	were strewed. All in vain\; the veil and wreath could be nowhere discovere
	d.\n\n\"Are you sure it came home?\" asked one.\n\n\"Of course\,\" replied
	 another\; \"I had it in my hand an hour ago.\"\n\nThen a thorough search 
	was commenced\, all the drawers ransacked\, and everything turned over aga
	in and again\; and just when they were about to abandon the search in desp
	air\, one of the party returned from the adjoining room\, dragging along t
	he brown baby\, who had the veil wrapped about her chubby shoulders as a s
	carf\, and the wreath ornamenting her round curly head. Even good-natured 
	Esther was a little ruffled at this daring act of baby's\, and hastily div
	ested that young lady of her borrowed adornments\, amidst the laughter of 
	the group.\n\nPoor baby was quite astonished at the precipitate manner in 
	which she was deprived of her finery\, and was for a few moments quite ove
	rpowered by her loss\; but\, perceiving a drawer open in the toilet-table\
	, she dried her eyes\, and turned her attention in that direction\, and in
	 tossing its contents upon the floor amply solaced herself for the depriva
	tion she had just undergone.\n\n\"Caddy is a famous chief bridesmaid—has
	n't been here to give the least assistance\,\" observed Esther\; \"she is 
	not even dressed herself. I will ring\, and ask where she can be—in the 
	kitchen or supper-room I've no doubt. Where is Miss Ellis?\" she asked of 
	the servant who came in answer her summons.\n\n\"Downstairs\, mem—the bo
	y that brought the ice-cream kicked over a candy ornament\, and Miss Ellis
	 was very busy a shaking of him when I came up.\"\n\n\"Do beg her to stop\
	,\" rejoined Esther\, with a laugh\, \"and tell her I say she can shake hi
	m in the morning—we are waiting for her to dress now\; and also tell Mr.
	 De Younge to come here to the door—I want him.\"\n\nKinch soon made his
	 appearance\, in accordance with Esther's request\, and fairly dazzled her
	 with his costume. His blue coat was brazen with buttons\, and his white c
	ravat tied with choking exactness\; spotless vest\, black pants\, and such
	 patent leathers as you could have seen your face in with ease.\n\n\"How f
	ine you look\, Kinch\,\" said Esther admiringly.\n\n\"Yes\,\" he answered\
	; \"the new vest came home—how do you like it?\"\n\n\"Oh\, admirable! Bu
	t\, Kinch\, can't you go down\, and implore Caddy to come up and dress—t
	ime is slipping away very fast?\"\n\n\"Oh\, I daren't\,\" answered Kinch\,
	 with a look of alarm—\"I don't dare to go down now that I'm dressed. Sh
	e'll want me to carry something up to the supper-room if I do—a pile of 
	dishes\, or something of the kind. I'd like to oblige you\, Mrs. Walters\,
	 but it's worth my new suit to do it.\"\n\nUnder these circumstances\, Kin
	ch was excused\; and a deputation\, headed by Mr. Walters\, was sent into 
	the lower regions to wait upon Caddy\, who prevailed upon her to come up a
	nd dress\, which she did\, being all the while very red in the face\, and 
	highly indignant at being sent for so often.\n\n\"Good gracious!\" she exc
	laimed\, \"what a pucker you are all in!\"\n\n\"Why\, Caddy\, it's time to
	 be\,\" replied Esther—\"it wants eight minutes of the hour.\"\n\n\"And 
	that is just three minutes more than I should want for dressing if I was g
	oing to be married myself\,\" rejoined she\; and hastening away\, she retu
	rned in an incredibly short time\, all prepared for the ceremony.\n\nCharl
	ie was very handsomely got up for the occasion. Emily\, Esther\, Caddy—i
	n fact\, all of them—agreed that he never looked better in his life. \"T
	hat is owing to me—all my doings\,\" said Kinch exultingly. \"He wanted 
	to order his suit of old Forbes\, who hasn't looked at a fashion-plate for
	 the last ten years\, and I wouldn't let him. I took him to my man\, and s
	ee what he has made of him—turned him out looking like a bridegroom\, in
	stead of an old man of fifty! It's all owing to me\,\" said the delighted 
	Kinch\, who skipped about the entry until he upset a vase of flowers that 
	stood on a bracket behind him\; whereupon Caddy ran and brought a towel\, 
	and made him take off his white gloves and wipe up the water\, in spite of
	 his protestations that the shape of his pantaloons would not bear the str
	ain of stooping.\n\nAt last the hour arrived\, and the bridal party descen
	ded to the drawing-room in appropriate order\, and stood up before Father 
	Banks. The ceremony was soon over\, and Emily was clasped in Mrs. Ellis's 
	arms\, who called her \"daughter\,\" and kissed her cheek with such warm a
	ffection that she no longer felt herself an orphan\, and paid back with te
	ars and embraces the endearments that were lavished upon her by her new re
	latives.\n\nFather Banks took an early opportunity to give them each some 
	good advice\, and managed to draw them apart for that purpose. He told the
	m how imperfect and faulty were all mankind—that married life was not al
	l couleur de rose—that the trials and cares incident to matrimony fully 
	equalled its pleasures\; and besought them to bear with each other patient
	ly\, to be charitable to each other's faults—and a reasonable share of e
	arthly happiness must be the result.\n\nThen came the supper. Oh! such a s
	upper!—such quantities of nice things as money and skill alone can bring
	 together. There were turkeys innocent of a bone\, into which you might pl
	unge your knife to the very hilt without coming in contact with a splinter
	—turkeys from which cunning cooks had extracted every bone leaving the m
	eat alone behind\, with the skin not perceptibly broken. How brown and tem
	pting they looked\, their capacious bosoms giving rich promise of high-sea
	soned dressing within\, and looking larger by comparison with the tiny ree
	d-birds beside them\, which lay cosily on the golden toast\, looking as mu
	ch as to say\, \"If you want something to remember for ever\, come and giv
	e me a bite!\"\n\nThen there were dishes of stewed terrapin\, into which t
	he initiated dipped at once\, and to which they for some time gave their u
	ndivided attention\, oblivious\, apparently\, of the fact that there was a
	 dish of chicken-salad close beside them.\n\nThen there were oysters in ev
	ery variety—silver dishes containing them stewed\, their fragrant macey 
	odour wafting itself upward\, and causing watery sensations about the mout
	h. Waiters were constantly rushing into the room\, bringing dishes of them
	 fried so richly brown\, so smoking hot\, that no man with a heart in his 
	bosom could possibly refuse them. Then there were glass dishes of them pic
	kled\, with little black spots of allspice floating on the pearly liquid t
	hat contained them. And lastly\, oysters broiled\, whose delicious flavour
	 exceeds my powers of description—these\, with ham and tongue\, were the
	 solid comforts. There were other things\, however\, to which one could tu
	rn when the appetite grew more dainty\; there were jellies\, blancmange\, 
	chocolate cream\, biscuit glace\, peach ice\, vanilla ice\, orange-water i
	ce\, brandy peaches\, preserved strawberries and pines\; not to say a word
	 of towers of candy\, bonbons\, kisses\, champagne\, Rhine wine\, sparklin
	g Catawba\, liquors\, and a man in the corner making sherry cobblers of wo
	ndrous flavour\, under the especial supervision of Kinch\; on the whole\, 
	it was an American supper\, got up regardless of expense—and whoever has
	 been to such an entertainment knows very well what an American supper is.
	\n\nWhat a merry happy party it was—how they all seemed to enjoy themsel
	ves—and how they all laughed\, when the bride essayed to cut the cake\, 
	and could not get the knife through the icing—and how the young girls pu
	t pieces away privately\, that they might place them under their pillows t
	o dream upon! What a happy time they had!\n\nFather Banks enjoyed himself 
	amazingly\; he eat quantities of stewed terrapin\, and declared it the bes
	t he ever tasted. He talked gravely to the old people—cheerfully and amu
	singly to the young\; and was\, in fact\, having a most delightful time—
	when a servant whispered to him that there was a person in the entry who w
	ished to see him immediately.\n\n\"Oh dear!\" he exclaimed to Mr. Balch\, 
	\"I was just congratulating myself that I should have one uninterrupted ev
	ening\, and you see the result—called off at this late hour.\"\n\nFather
	 Banks followed the servant from the room\, and inquired of the messenger 
	what was wanted.\n\n\"You must come to the hospital immediately\, sir\; th
	e man with the typhus-fever—you saw him yesterday—he's dying\; he says
	 he must see you—that he has something important to confess. I'm to go f
	or a magistrate as well.\"\n\n\"Ah!\" said Father Banks\, \"you need go no
	 further\, Alderman Balch is here—he is quite competent to receive his d
	epositions.\"\n\n\"I'm heartily glad of it\,\" replied the man\, \"it will
	 save me another hunt. I had a hard time finding you. I've been to your ho
	use and two or three other places\, and was at last sent here. I'll go bac
	k and report that you are coming and will bring a magistrate with you.\"\n
	\n\"Very good\,\" rejoined Father Banks\, \"do so. I will be there immedia
	tely.\" Hastening back to the supper room\, he discovered Mr. Balch in the
	 act of helping himself to a brandy peach\, and apprised him of the demand
	 for his services.\n\n\"Now\, Banks\,\" said he\, good-humouredly\, \"that
	 is outrageous. Why did you not let him go for some one else? It is too ba
	d to drag me away just when the fun is about to commence.\" There was no a
	lternative\, however\, and Mr. Balch prepared to follow the minister to th
	e bedside of McCloskey.\n\nWhen they arrived at the hospital\, they found 
	him fast sinking—the livid colour of his face\, the sunken glassy eyes\,
	 the white lips\, and the blue tint that surrounded the eyes and mouth tol
	d at once the fearful story. Death had come. He was in full possession of 
	his faculties\, and told them all. How Stevens had saved him from the gall
	ows—and how he agreed to murder Mr. Garie—of his failure when the time
	 of action arrived\, and how\, in consequence\, Stevens had committed the 
	deed\, and how he had paid him time after time to keep his secret.\n\n\"In
	 my trunk there\,\" said he\, in a dying whisper\,—\"in my trunk is the 
	will. I found it that night amongst his papers. I kept it to get money out
	 of his children with when old Stevens was gone. Here\,\" continued he\, h
	anding his key from beneath the pillow\, \"open my trunk and get it.\"\n\n
	Mr. Balch eagerly unlocked the trunk\, and there\, sure enough\, lay the l
	ong-sought-for and important document.\n\n\"I knew it would be found at la
	st. I always told Walters so\; and now\,\" said he\, exultingly\, \"see my
	 predictions are verified.\"\n\nMcCloskey seemed anxious to atone for the 
	past by making an ample confession. He told them all he knew of Mr. Steven
	s's present circumstances—how his property was situated\, and every deta
	il necessary for their guidance. Then his confession was sworn to and witn
	essed\; and the dying man addressed himself to the affairs of the next wor
	ld\, and endeavoured to banish entirely from his mind all thoughts of this
	.\n\nAfter a life passed in the exercise of every Christian virtue—after
	 a lengthened journey over its narrow stony pathway\, whereon temptations 
	have been met and triumphed over—where we have struggled with difficulti
	es\, and borne afflictions without murmur or complaint\, cheering on the w
	eary we have found sinking by the wayside\, comforting and assisting the f
	allen\, endeavouring humbly and faithfully to do our duty to God and human
	ity—even after a life thus passed\, when we at last lie down to die the 
	most faithful and best may well shrink and tremble when they approach the 
	gloomy portals of death. At such an hour memory\, more active than every o
	ther faculty\, drags all the good and evil from the past and sets them in 
	distinct array before us. Then we discover how greatly the latter exceeds 
	the former in our lives\, and how little of our Father's work we have acco
	mplished after all our toils and struggles. 'Tis then the most devoted ser
	vant of our common Master feels compelled to cry\, \"Mercy! O my Father!
	—for justice I dare not ask.\"\n\nIf thus the Christian passes away—wh
	at terror must fill the breast of one whose whole life has been a constant
	 warfare upon the laws of God and man? How approaches he the bar of that a
	wful Judge\, whose commands he has set at nought\, and whose power he has 
	so often contemned? With a fainting heart\, and tongue powerless to crave 
	the mercy his crimes cannot deserve!\n\nMcCloskey struggled long with deat
	h—died fearfully hard. The phantoms of his victims seemed to haunt him i
	n his dying hour\, interposing between him and God\; and with distorted fa
	ce\, clenched hands\, and gnashing teeth\, he passed away to his long acco
	unt.\n\nFrom the bedside of the corpse Mr. Balch went—late as it was—t
	o the office of the chief of police. There he learned\, to his great satis
	faction\, that the governor was in town\; and at an early hour the next mo
	rning he procured a requisition for the arrest of Mr. Stevens\, which he p
	ut into the hands of the man with the keen grey eyes for the purpose of se
	curing the criminal\; and with the result of his efforts the reader is alr
	eady acquainted.\n\nCHAPTER XXXVI.\nAnd the last.\n\nWith such celerity di
	d Mr. Balch work in behalf of his wards\, that he soon had everything in t
	rain for the recovery of the property.\n\nAt first George Stevens was incl
	ined to oppose the execution of the will\, but he was finally prevailed up
	on by his advisers to make no difficulty respecting it\, and quietly resig
	n what he must inevitably sooner or later relinquish. Lizzie Stevens\, on 
	the contrary\, seemed rather glad that an opportunity was afforded to do j
	ustice to her old playmates\, and won the good opinion of all parties by h
	er gentleness and evident anxiety to atone for the wrong done them by her 
	father. Even after the demands of the executors of Mr. Garie were fully sa
	tisfied\, such had been the thrift of her father that there still remained
	 a comfortable support for her and her brother.\n\nTo poor Clarence this a
	ccession of fortune brought no new pleasure\; he already had sufficient fo
	r his modest wants\; and now that his greatest hope in life had been bligh
	ted\, this addition of wealth became to him rather a burden than a pleasur
	e.\n\nHe was now completely excluded from the society in which he had so l
	ong been accustomed to move\; the secret of his birth had become widely kn
	own\, and he was avoided by his former friends and sneered at as a \"nigge
	r.\" His large fortune kept some two or three whites about him\, but he kn
	ew they were leeches seeking to bleed his purse\, and he wisely avoided th
	eir society.\n\nHe was very wretched and lonely: he felt ashamed to seek t
	he society of coloured men now that the whites despised and rejected him\,
	 so he lived apart from both classes of society\, and grew moody and misan
	thropic.\n\nMr. Balch endeavoured to persuade him to go abroad—to visit 
	Europe: he would not. He did not confess it\, but the truth was\, he could
	 not tear himself away from the city where little Birdie dwelt\, where he 
	now and then could catch a glimpse of her to solace him in his loneliness.
	 He was growing paler and more fragile-looking each day\, and the doctor a
	t last frankly told him that\, if he desired to live\, he must seek some w
	armer climate for the winter.\n\nReluctantly Clarence obeyed\; in the fall
	 he left New York\, and during the cold months wandered through the West I
	ndia islands. For a while his health improved\, but when the novelty produ
	ced by change of scene began to decline he grew worse again\, and brooded 
	more deeply than ever over his bitter disappointment\, and consequently de
	rived but little benefit from the change\; the spirit was too much broken 
	for the body to mend—his heart was too sore to beat healthily or happily
	.\n\nHe wrote often now to Emily and her husband\, and seemed desirous to 
	atone for his past neglect. Emily had written to him first\; she had learn
	ed of his disappointment\, and gave him a sister's sympathy in his lonelin
	ess and sorrow.\n\nThe chilly month of March had scarcely passed away when
	 they received a letter from him informing them of his intention to return
	. He wrote\, \"I am no better\, and my physician says that a longer reside
	nce here will not benefit me in the least—that I came too late. I cough\
	, cough\, cough\, incessantly\, and each day become more feeble. I am comi
	ng home\, Emmy\; coming home\, I fear\, to die. I am but a ghost of my for
	mer self. I write you this that you may not be alarmed when you see me. It
	 is too late now to repine\, but\, oh! Em\, if my lot had only been cast w
	ith yours—had we never been separated—I might have been to-day as happ
	y as you are.\"\n\nIt was a clear bright morning when Charlie stepped into
	 a boat to be conveyed to the ship in which Clarence had returned to New Y
	ork: she had arrived the evening previous\, and had not yet come up to the
	 dock. The air came up the bay fresh and invigorating from the sea beyond\
	, and the water sparkled as it dripped from the oars\, which\, with monoto
	nous regularity\, broke the almost unruffled surface of the bay. Some of t
	he ship's sails were shaken out to dry in the morning sun\, and the cordag
	e hung loosely and carelessly from the masts and yards. A few sailors loun
	ged idly about the deck\, and leaned over the side to watch the boat as it
	 approached. With their aid it was soon secured alongside\, and Charlie cl
	ambered up the ladder\, and stood upon the deck of the vessel. On inquirin
	g for Clarence\, he was shown into the cabin\, where he found him extended
	 on a sofa.\n\nHe raised himself as he saw Charlie approach\, and\, extend
	ing his hand\, exclaimed\,—\"How kind! I did not expect you until we rea
	ched the shore.\"\n\nFor a moment\, Charlie could not speak. The shock cau
	sed by Clarence's altered appearance was too great\,—the change was terr
	ible. When he had last seen him\, he was vigorous-looking\, erect\, and he
	althful\; now he was bent and emaciated to a frightful extent. The veins o
	n his temples were clearly discernible\; the muscles of his throat seemed 
	like great cords\; his cheeks were hollow\, his sunken eyes were glassy br
	ight and surrounded with a dark rim\, and his breathing was short and evid
	ently painful. Charlie held his thin fleshless hand in his own\, and gazed
	 in his face with an anguished expression.\n\n\"I look badly\,—don't I C
	harlie?\" said he\, with assumed indifference\; \"worse than you expected\
	, eh?\"\n\nCharlie hesitated a little\, and then answered\,—\"Rather bad
	\; but it is owing to your sea-sickness\, I suppose\; that has probably re
	duced you considerably\; then this close cabin must be most unfavourable t
	o your health. Ah\, wait until we get you home\, we shall soon have you be
	tter.\"\n\n\"Home!\" repeated Clarence\,—\"home! How delightful that wor
	d sounds! I feel it is going home to go to you and Em.\" And he leant back
	 and repeated the word \"home\,\" and paused afterward\, as one touches so
	me favourite note upon an instrument\, and then silently listens to its vi
	brations. \"How is Em?\" he asked at length.\n\n\"Oh\, well—very well\,\
	" replied Charlie. \"She has been busy as a bee ever since she received yo
	ur last letter\; such a charming room as she has prepared for you!\"\n\n\"
	Ah\, Charlie\,\" rejoined Clarence\, mournfully\, \"I shall not live long 
	to enjoy it\, I fear.\"\n\n\"Nonsense!\" interrupted Charlie\, hopefully\;
	 \"don't be so desponding\, Clary: here is spring again\,—everything is 
	thriving and bursting into new life. You\, too\, will catch the spirit of 
	the season\, and grow in health and strength again. Why\, my dear fellow\,
	\" continued he\, cheerfully\, \"you can't help getting better when we onc
	e get hold of you. Mother's gruels\, Doctor Burdett's prescriptions\, and 
	Em's nursing\, would lift a man out of his coffin. Come\, now\, don't let 
	us hear anything more about dying.\"\n\nClarence pressed his hand and look
	ed at him affectionately\, as though he appreciated his efforts to cheer h
	im and felt thankful for them\; but he only shook his head and smiled mour
	nfully.\n\n\"Let me help your man to get you up. When once you get ashore 
	you'll feel better\, I've no doubt. We are not going to an hotel\, but to 
	the house of a friend who has kindly offered to make you comfortable until
	 you are able to travel.\"\n\nWith the assistance of Charlie and the serva
	nt\, Clarence was gradually prepared to go ashore. He was exceedingly weak
	\, could scarcely totter across the deck\; and it was with some difficulty
	 that they at last succeeded in placing him safely in the boat. After they
	 landed\, a carriage was soon procured\, and in a short time thereafter Cl
	arence was comfortably established in the house of Charlie's friend.\n\nTh
	eir hostess\, a dear old motherly creature\, declared that she knew exactl
	y what Clarence needed\; and concocted such delicious broths\, made such s
	trengthening gruels\, that Clarence could not avoid eating\, and in a day 
	or two he declared himself better than he had been for a month\, and felt 
	quite equal to the journey to Philadelphia.\n\nThe last night of their sta
	y in New York was unusually warm\; and Clarence informed Charlie he wished
	 to go out for a walk. \"I wish to go a long distance\,—don't think me f
	oolish when I tell you where. I want to look at the house where little Bir
	die lives. It may be for the last time. I have a presentiment that I shall
	 see her if I go\,—I am sure I shall\,\" added he\, positively\, as thou
	gh he felt a conviction that his desire would be accomplished.\n\n\"I woul
	d not\, Clary\,\" remonstrated Charlie. \"Your health won't permit the exe
	rtion\; it is a long distance\, too\, you say\; and\, moreover\, don't you
	 think\, my dear fellow\, that it is far more prudent to endeavour\, if po
	ssible\, to banish her from your mind entirely. Don't permit yourself to t
	hink about her\, if you can help it. You know she is unattainable by you\,
	 and you should make an effort to conquer your attachment.\"\n\n\"It is to
	o late—too late now\, Charlie\,\" he replied\, mournfully. \"I shall con
	tinue to love her as I do now until I draw my last breath. I know it is ho
	peless—I know she can never be more to me than she already is\; but I ca
	nnot help loving her. Let us go\; I may see her once again. Ah\, Charlie\,
	 you cannot even dream what inexpressible pleasure the merest glimpse of h
	er affords me! Come\, let us go.\"\n\nCharlie would not permit him to atte
	mpt to walk\; and they procured a carriage\, in which they rode to within 
	a short distance of the house. The mansion of Mr. Bates appeared quite glo
	omy as they approached it. The blinds were down\, and no lights visible in
	 any part of the house.\n\n\"I am afraid they are out of town\,\" remarked
	 Charlie\, when Clarence pointed out the house\; \"everything looks so dul
	l about it. Let us cross over to the other pavement.\" And they walked ove
	r to the other side of the street\, and gazed upward at the house.\n\n\"Le
	t us sit down here\,\" suggested Clarence\,—\"here\, on this broad stone
	\; it is quite dark now\, and no one will observe us.\"\n\n\"No\, no!\" re
	monstrated Charlie\; \"the stone is too damp and cold.\"\n\n\"Is it?\" sai
	d Clarence vacantly. And taking out his handkerchief\, he spread it out\, 
	and\, in spite of Charlie's dissuasions\, sat down upon it.\n\n\"Charlie\,
	\" said he\, after gazing at the house a long time in silence\, \"I have o
	ften come here and remained half the night looking at her windows. People 
	have passed by and stared at me as though they thought me crazy\; I was ha
	lf crazy then\, I think. One night I remember I came and sat here for hour
	s\; far in the night I saw her come to the window\, throw up the casement\
	, and look out. That was in the summer\, before I went away\, you know. Th
	ere she stood in the moonlight\, gazing upward at the sky\, so pale\, so c
	alm and holy-looking\, in her pure white dress\, that I should not have th
	ought it strange if the heavens had opened\, and angels descended and born
	e her away with them on their wings.\" And Clarence closed his eyes as he 
	concluded\, to call back upon the mirror of his mind the image of little B
	irdie as she appeared that night.\n\nThey waited a long while\, during whi
	ch there was no evidence exhibited that there was any one in the house. At
	 last\, just as they were about to move away\, they descried the glimmer o
	f a light in the room which Clarence declared to be her room. His frame tr
	embled with expectation\, and he walked to and fro opposite the house with
	 an apparent strength that surprised his companion. At length the light di
	sappeared again\, and with it Clarence's hopes.\n\n\"Now then we must go\,
	\" said Charlie\, \"it is useless for you to expose yourself in this manne
	r. I insist upon your coming home.\"\n\nReluctantly Clarence permitted him
	self to be led across the street again. As they were leaving the pavement\
	, he turned to look back again\, and\, uttering a cry of surprise and joy\
	, he startled Charlie by clutching his arm. \"Look! look!\" he cried\, \"t
	here she is—my little Birdie.\" Charlie looked up at the window almost i
	mmediately above them\, and observed a slight pale girl\, who was gazing u
	p the street in an opposite direction.\n\n\"Little Birdie—little Birdie\
	,\" whispered Clarence\, tenderly. She did not look toward them\, but afte
	r standing there a few seconds\, moved from between the curtains and disap
	peared.\n\n\"Thank God for that!\" exclaimed Clarence\, passionately\, \"I
	 knew—I knew I should see her. I knew it\,\" repeated he\, exultingly\; 
	and then\, overcome with joy\, he bowed his head upon Charlie's shoulder a
	nd wept like a child. \"Don't think me foolish\, Charlie\,\" apologized he
	\, \"I cannot help it. I will go home now. Oh\, brother\, I feel so much h
	appier.\" And with a step less faint and trembling\, he walked back to the
	 carriage.\n\nThe following evening he was at home\, but so enfeebled with
	 the exertions of the last two days\, as to be obliged to take to his bed 
	immediately after his arrival. His sister greeted him affectionately\, thr
	ew her arms about his neck and kissed him tenderly\; years of coldness and
	 estrangement were forgotten in that moment\, and they were once more to e
	ach other as they were before they parted.\n\nEmily tried to appear as tho
	ugh she did not notice the great change in his appearance\, and talked che
	erfully and encouragingly in his presence\; but she wept bitterly\, when a
	lone\, over the final separation which she foresaw was not far distant.\n\
	nThe nest day Doctor Burdett called\, and his grave manner and apparent di
	sinclination to encourage any hope\, confirmed the hopeless impression the
	y already entertained.\n\nAunt Ada came from Sudbury at Emily's request\; 
	she knew her presence would give pleasure to Clarence\, she accordingly wr
	ote her to come\, and she and Emily nursed by turns the failing sufferer.\
	n\nEsther and her husband\, Mrs. Ellis and Caddy\, and even Kinch\, were u
	nremitting in their attentions\, and did all in their power to amuse and c
	omfort him. Day by day he faded perceptibly\, grew more and more feeble\, 
	until at last Doctor Burdett began to number days instead of weeks as his 
	term of life. Clarence anticipated death with calmness—did not repine or
	 murmur. Father Banks was often with him cheering him with hopes of a happ
	ier future beyond the grave.\n\nOne day he sent for his sister and desired
	 her to write a letter for him. \"Em\,\" said he\, \"I am failing fast\; t
	hese fiery spots on my cheek\, this scorching in my palms\, these hard-dra
	wn\, difficult breaths\, warn me that the time is very near. Don't weep\, 
	Em!\" continued he\, kissing her—\"there\, don't weep—I shall be bette
	r off—happier—I am sure! Don't weep now—I want you to write to littl
	e Birdie for me. I have tried\, but my hand trembles so that I cannot writ
	e legibly—I gave it up. Sit down beside me here\, and write\; here is th
	e pen.\" Emily dried her eyes\, and mechanically sat down to write as he d
	esired. Motioning to him that she was ready\, he dictated—\n\n\"My Dear 
	Little Birdie\,—I once resolved never to write to you again\, and partia
	lly promised your father that I would not\; then I did not dream that I sh
	ould be so soon compelled to break my resolution. Little Birdie\, I am dyi
	ng! My physician informs me that I have but a few more days to live. I hav
	e been trying to break away from earth's affairs and fix my thoughts on ot
	her and better things. I have given up all but you\, and feel that I canno
	t relinquish you until I see you once again. Do not refuse me\, little Bir
	die! Show this to your father—he must consent to a request made by one o
	n the brink of the grave.\"\n\n\"There\, that will do\; let me read it ove
	r\,\" said he\, extending his hand for the note. \"Yes\, I will sign it no
	w—then do you add our address. Send it now\, Emily—send it in time for
	 to-night's mail.\"\n\n\"Clary\, do you think she will come?\" inquired hi
	s sister.\n\n\"Yes\,\" replied he\, confidently\; \"I am sure she will if 
	the note reaches her.\" Emily said no more\, but sealed and directed the n
	ote\, which she immediately despatched to the post-office\; and on the fol
	lowing day it reached little Birdie.\n\nFrom the time when the secret of C
	larence's birth had been discovered\, until the day she had received his n
	ote\, she never mentioned his name. At the demand of her father she produc
	ed his letters\, miniature\, and even the little presents he had given her
	 from time to time\, and laid them down before him without a murmur\; afte
	r this\, even when he cursed and denounced him\, she only left the room\, 
	never uttering a word in his defence. She moved about like one who had rec
	eived a stunning blow—she was dull\, cold\, apathetic. She would smile v
	acantly when her father smoothed her hair or kissed her cheek\; but she ne
	ver laughed\, or sang and played\, as in days gone by\; she would recline 
	for hours on the sofa in her room gazing vacantly in the air\, and taking 
	apparently no interest in anything about her. She bent her head when she w
	alked\, complained of coldness about her temples\, and kept her hand const
	antly upon her heart.\n\nDoctors were at last consulted\; they pronounced 
	her physically well\, and thought that time would restore her wonted anima
	tion\; but month after month she grew more dull and silent\, until her fat
	her feared she would become idiotic\, and grew hopeless and unhappy about 
	her. For a week before the receipt of the note from Clarence\, she had bee
	n particularly apathetic and indifferent\, but it seemed to rouse her into
	 life again. She started up after reading it\, and rushed wildly through t
	he hall into her father's library.\n\n\"See here!\" exclaimed she\, graspi
	ng his arm—\"see there—I knew it! I've felt day after day that it was 
	coming to that! You separated us\, and now he is dying—dying!\" cried sh
	e. \"Read it—read it!\"\n\nHer father took the note\, and after perusing
	 it laid it on the table\, and said coldly\, \"Well—\"\n\n\"Well!\" repe
	ated she\, with agitation—\"Oh\, father\, it is not well! Father!\" said
	 she\, hurriedly\, \"you bid me give him up—told me he was unworthy—po
	inted out to me fully and clearly why we could not marry: I was convinced 
	we could not\, for I knew you would never let it be. Yet I have never ceas
	ed to love him. I cannot control my heart\, but I could my voice\, and nev
	er since that day have I spoken his name. I gave him up—not that I would
	 not have gladly married\, knowing what he was—because you desired it—
	because I saw either your heart must break or mine. I let mine go to pleas
	e you\, and have suffered uncomplainingly\, and will so suffer until the e
	nd\; but I must see him once again. It will be a pleasure to him to see me
	 once again in his dying hour\, and I must go. If you love me\,\" continue
	d she\, pleadingly\, as her father made a gesture of dissent\, \"let us go
	. You see he is dying—begs you from the brink of the grave. Let me go\, 
	only to say good bye to him\, and then\, perhaps\,\" concluded she\, press
	ing her hand upon her heart\, \"I shall be better here.\"\n\nHer father ha
	d not the heart to make any objection\, and the next day they started for 
	Philadelphia. They despatched a note to Clarence\, saying they had arrived
	\, which Emily received\, and after opening it\, went to gently break its 
	contents to her brother.\n\n\"You must prepare yourself for visitors\, Cla
	ry\,\" said she\, \"no doubt some of our friends will call to-day\, the we
	ather is so very delightful.\"\n\n\"Do you know who is coming?\" he inquir
	ed.\n\n\"Yes\, dear\,\" she answered\, seating herself beside him\, \"I ha
	ve received a note stating that a particular friend will call to-day—one
	 that you desire to see.\"\n\n\"Ah!\" he exclaimed\, \"it is little Birdie
	\, is it not?\"\n\n\"Yes\,\" she replied\, \"they have arrived in town\, a
	nd will be here to-day.\"\n\n\"Did not I tell you so?\" said he\, triumpha
	ntly. \"I knew she would come. I knew it\,\" continued he\, joyfully. \"Le
	t me get up—I am strong enough—she is come—O! she has come.\"\n\nCla
	rence insisted on being dressed with extraordinary care. His long fierce-l
	ooking beard was trimmed carefully\, and he looked much better than he had
	 done for weeks\; he was wonderfully stronger\, walked across the room\, a
	nd chatted over his breakfast with unusual animation.\n\nAt noon they came
	\, and were shown into the drawing-room\, where Emily received them. Mr. B
	ates bowed politely\, and expressed a hope that Mr. Garie was better. Emil
	y held out her hand to little Birdie\, who clasped it in both her own\, an
	d said\, inquiringly: \"You are his sister?\"\n\n\"Yes\,\" answered Emily.
	 \"You\, I should have known from Clarence's description—you are his lit
	tle Birdie?\"\n\nShe did not reply—her lip quivered\, and she pressed Em
	ily's hand and kissed her. \"He is impatient to see you\,\" resumed Emily\
	, \"and if you are so disposed\, we will go up immediately.\"\n\n\"I will 
	remain here\,\" observed Mr. Bates\, \"unless Mr. Garie particularly desir
	es to see me. My daughter will accompany you.\"\n\nEmily took the hand of 
	little Birdie in her own\, and they walked together up the stairway. \"You
	 must not be frightened at his appearance\,\" she remarked\, tearfully\, \
	"he is greatly changed.\"\n\nLittle Birdie only shook her head—her heart
	 seemed too full for speech—and she stepped on a little faster\, keeping
	 her hand pressed on her breast all the while.\n\nWhen they reached the do
	or\, Emily was about to open it\, but her companion stopped her\, by sayin
	g: \"Wait a moment—stop! How my heart beats—it almost suffocates me.\"
	 They paused for a few moments to permit little Birdie to recover from her
	 agitation\, then throwing open the door they advanced into the room.\n\n\
	"Clarence!\" said his sister. He did not answer\; he was looking down into
	 the garden. She approached nearer\, and gently laying her hand on his sho
	ulder\, said\, \"Here is your little Birdie\, Clarence.\" He neither moved
	 nor spoke.\n\n\"Clarence!\" cried she\, louder. No answer. She touched hi
	s face—it was warm. \"He's fainted!\" exclaimed she\; and\, ringing the 
	bell violently\, she screamed for help. Her husband and the nurse rushed i
	nto the room\; then came Aunt Ada and Mr. Bates. They bathed his temples\,
	 held strong salts to his nostrils—still he did not revive. Finally\, th
	e nurse opened his bosom and placed her hand upon his heart. It was stil
	l—quite still: Clarence was dead!\n\nAt first they could not believe it.
	 \"Let me speak to him\,\" exclaimed little\nBirdie\, distractedly\; \"he 
	will hear my voice\, and answer. Clarence!\nClarence!\" she cried. All in 
	vain—all in vain. Clarence was dead!\n\nThey gently bore her away. That 
	dull\, cold look came back again upon her face\, and left it never more in
	 life. She walked about mournfully for a few years\, pressing her hand upo
	n her heart\; and then passed away to join her lover\, where distinctions 
	in race or colour are unknown\, and where the prejudices of earth cannot m
	ar their happiness.\n\nOur tale is now soon finished. They buried Clarence
	 beside his parents\; coloured people followed him to his last home\, and 
	wept over his grave. Of all the many whites that he had known\, Aunt Ada a
	nd Mr. Balch were the only ones that mingled their tears with those who li
	stened to the solemn words of Father Banks\, \"Ashes to ashes\, dust to du
	st.\"\n\nWe\, too\, Clarence\, cast a tear upon thy tomb—poor victim of 
	prejudice to thy colour! and deem thee better off resting upon thy cold pi
	llow of earth\, than battling with that malignant sentiment that persecute
	d thee\, and has crushed energy\, hope\, and life from many stronger heart
	s.\n\n* * * * *\n\nAunt Ada Bell remained for a short time with Emily\, an
	d then returned to Sudbury\, where\, during the remainder of her life\, sh
	e never omitted an opportunity of doing a kindness to a coloured person\; 
	and when the increasing liberality of sentiment opened a way for the admis
	sion of coloured pupils to the famous schools of Sudbury\, they could alwa
	ys procure board at her house\, and Aunt Ada was a friend and mother to th
	em.\n\nWalters and dear old Ess reared a fine family\; and the brown baby 
	and her sister took numberless premiums at school\, to the infinite deligh
	t of their parents. They also had a boy\, whom they named \"Charlie\;\" he
	 inherited his uncle's passionate fondness for marbles\, which fondness\, 
	it has been ascertained\, is fostered by his uncle\, who\, 'tis said\, fur
	nishes the sinews of war when there is a dearth in the treasury of Master 
	Walters.\n\nKinch and Caddy were finally united\, after various difficulti
	es raised by the latter\, who found it almost impossible to procure a hous
	e in such a state of order as would warrant her entering upon the blissful
	 state of matrimony. When it was all over\, Kinch professed to his acquain
	tances generally to be living in a perfect state of bliss\; but he private
	ly intimated to Charlie that if Caddy would permit him to come in at the f
	ront door\, and not condemn him to go through the alley\, whenever there h
	appened to be a shower—and would let him smoke where he liked—he would
	 be much more contented. When last heard from they had a little Caddy\, th
	e very image of its mother—a wonderful little girl\, who\, instead of bu
	ying candy and cake with her sixpences\, as other children did\, gravely i
	nvested them in miniature wash-boards and dust-brushes\, and was saving up
	 her money to purchase a tiny stove with a full set of cooking utensils. C
	addy declares her a child worth having.\n\nCharles and Emily took a voyage
	 to Europe for the health of the latter\, and returned after a two years' 
	tour to settle permanently in his native city. They were unremitting in th
	eir attention to father and mother Ellis\, who lived to good old age\, sur
	rounded by their children and grandchildren.\n\nTHE END.\nEnd of Project G
	utenberg's The Garies and Their Friends\, by Frank J. Webb\n\n*** END OF T
	HE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GARIES AND THEIR FRIENDS ***\nUpdated editi
	ons will replace the previous one—the old editions will be renamed.\nCre
	ating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright law me
	ans that no one owns a United States copyright in these works\, so the Fou
	ndation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
	 permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules\, set fo
	rth in the General Terms of Use part of this license\, apply to copying an
	d distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJEC
	T GUTENBERG™ concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered tr
	ademark\, and may not be used if you charge for an eBook\, except by follo
	wing the terms of the trademark license\, including paying royalties for u
	se of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for c
	opies of this eBook\, complying with the trademark license is very easy. Y
	ou may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivativ
	e works\, reports\, performances and research. Project Gutenberg eBooks ma
	y be modified and printed and given away—you may do practically ANYTHING
	 in the United States with eBooks not protected by U.S. copyright law. Red
	istribution is subject to the trademark license\, especially commercial re
	distribution.\nSTART: FULL LICENSE\nTHE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE\nPL
	EASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK\nTo protect the Proj
	ect Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free distribution of electronic 
	works\, by using or distributing this work (or any other work associated i
	n any way with the phrase “Project Gutenberg”)\, you agree to comply w
	ith all the terms of the Full Project Gutenberg™ License available with 
	this file or online at www.gutenberg.org/license.\nSection 1. General Term
	s of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works\n1.A. By
	 reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ electronic work\, 
	you indicate that you have read\, understand\, agree to and accept all the
	 terms of this license and intellectual property (trademark/copyright) agr
	eement. If you do not agree to abide by all the terms of this agreement\, 
	you must cease using and return or destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg
	™ electronic works in your possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a
	 copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do no
	t agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement\, you may obtain a refu
	nd from the person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in para
	graph 1.E.8.\n1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It m
	ay only be used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by peo
	ple who agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few 
	things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works eve
	n without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1
	.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg™ e
	lectronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help preserv
	e free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. See paragra
	ph 1.E below.\n1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“
	the Foundation” or PGLAF)\, owns a compilation copyright in the collecti
	on of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual wor
	ks in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an 
	individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the United States and y
	ou are located in the United States\, we do not claim a right to prevent y
	ou from copying\, distributing\, performing\, displaying or creating deriv
	ative works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenbe
	rg are removed. Of course\, we hope that you will support the Project Gute
	nberg™ mission of promoting free access to electronic works by freely sh
	aring Project Gutenberg™ works in compliance with the terms of this agre
	ement for keeping the Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. 
	You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this wor
	k in the same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License w
	hen you share it without charge with others.\n1.D. The copyright laws of t
	he place where you are located also govern what you can do with this work.
	 Copyright laws in most countries are in a constant state of change. If yo
	u are outside the United States\, check the laws of your country in additi
	on to the terms of this agreement before downloading\, copying\, displayin
	g\, performing\, distributing or creating derivative works based on this w
	ork or any other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no repres
	entations concerning the copyright status of any work in any country other
	 than the United States.\n1.E. Unless you have removed all references to P
	roject Gutenberg:\n1.E.1. The following sentence\, with active links to\, 
	or other immediate access to\, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must 
	appear prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any w
	ork on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears\, or with which th
	e phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed\, displayed\, 
	performed\, viewed\, copied or distributed:\nThis eBook is for the use of 
	anyone anywhere in the United States and most other parts of the world at 
	no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it\, give
	 it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License inc
	luded with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not locat
	ed in the United States\, you will have to check the laws of the country w
	here you are located before using this eBook.\n1.E.2. If an individual Pro
	ject Gutenberg™ electronic work is derived from texts not protected by U
	.S. copyright law (does not contain a notice indicating that it is posted 
	with permission of the copyright holder)\, the work can be copied and dist
	ributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees or charges.
	 If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase
	 “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work\, you mu
	st comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 o
	r obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™ t
	rademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.\n1.E.3. If an individu
	al Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted with the permission of t
	he copyright holder\, your use and distribution must comply with both para
	graphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional terms imposed by the copyrig
	ht holder. Additional terms will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ Lic
	ense for all works posted with the permission of the copyright holder foun
	d at the beginning of this work.\n1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove
	 the full Project Gutenberg™ License terms from this work\, or any files
	 containing a part of this work or any other work associated with Project 
	Gutenberg™.\n1.E.5. Do not copy\, display\, perform\, distribute or redi
	stribute this electronic work\, or any part of this electronic work\, with
	out prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with 
	active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project Gutenber
	g™ License.\n1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any b
	inary\, compressed\, marked up\, nonproprietary or proprietary form\, incl
	uding any word processing or hypertext form. However\, if you provide acce
	ss to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format othe
	r than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official vers
	ion posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website (www.gutenberg.org
	)\, you must\, at no additional cost\, fee or expense to the user\, provid
	e a copy\, a means of exporting a copy\, or a means of obtaining a copy up
	on request\, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or othe
	r form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg™ Li
	cense as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.\n1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for acc
	ess to\, viewing\, displaying\, performing\, copying or distributing any P
	roject Gutenberg™ works unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
	\n1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access
	 to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided that:
	\n• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from th
	e use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you alread
	y use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the owner of 
	the Project Gutenberg™ trademark\, but he has agreed to donate royalties
	 under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
	. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each date on whic
	h you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax retur
	ns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Proj
	ect Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Sect
	ion 4\, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary A
	rchive Foundation.”\n• You provide a full refund of any money paid by 
	a user who notifies you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receip
	t that s/he does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ L
	icense. You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of th
	e works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all 
	access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ works.\n• You provide\, i
	n accordance with paragraph 1.F.3\, a full refund of any money paid for a 
	work or a replacement copy\, if a defect in the electronic work is discove
	red and reported to you within 90 days of receipt of the work.\n• You co
	mply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution of Proje
	ct Gutenberg™ works.\n1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a
	 Project Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms
	 than are set forth in this agreement\, you must obtain permission in writ
	ing from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation\, the manager o
	f the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth 
	in Section 3 below.\n1.F.\n1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employe
	es expend considerable effort to identify\, do copyright research on\, tra
	nscribe and proofread works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creatin
	g the Project Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts\, Project Gut
	enberg™ electronic works\, and the medium on which they may be stored\, 
	may contain “Defects\,” such as\, but not limited to\, incomplete\, in
	accurate or corrupt data\, transcription errors\, a copyright or other int
	ellectual property infringement\, a defective or damaged disk or other med
	ium\, a computer virus\, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read b
	y your equipment.\n1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY\, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Excep
	t for the “Right of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.
	3\, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation\, the owner of the P
	roject Gutenberg™ trademark\, and any other party distributing a Project
	 Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement\, disclaim all liabilit
	y to you for damages\, costs and expenses\, including legal fees. YOU AGRE
	E THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE\, STRICT LIABILITY\, BREACH OF 
	WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. Y
	OU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION\, THE TRADEMARK OWNER\, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR U
	NDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL\, DIRECT\, INDIRE
	CT\, CONSEQUENTIAL\, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTIC
	E OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.\n1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT 
	OR REFUND - If you discover a defect in this electronic work within 90 day
	s of receiving it\, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you pai
	d for it by sending a written explanation to the person you received the w
	ork from. If you received the work on a physical medium\, you must return 
	the medium with your written explanation. The person or entity that provid
	ed you with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in 
	lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically\, the person or 
	entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to 
	receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy is
	 also defective\, you may demand a refund in writing without further oppor
	tunities to fix the problem.\n1.F.4. Except for the limited right of repla
	cement or refund set forth in paragraph 1.F.3\, this work is provided to y
	ou ‘AS-IS’\, WITH NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND\, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED
	\, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS F
	OR ANY PURPOSE.\n1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain im
	plied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damage
	s. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates th
	e law of the state applicable to this agreement\, the agreement shall be i
	nterpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by the a
	pplicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any provision o
	f this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.\n1.F.6. INDEMNIT
	Y - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation\, the trademark owner\,
	 any agent or employee of the Foundation\, anyone providing copies of Proj
	ect Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance with this agreement\, and 
	any volunteers associated with the production\, promotion and distribution
	 of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works\, harmless from all liability\, 
	costs and expenses\, including legal fees\, that arise directly or indirec
	tly from any of the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribu
	tion of this or any Project Gutenberg™ work\, (b) alteration\, modificat
	ion\, or additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work\, and (c)
	 any Defect you cause.\nSection 2. Information about the Mission of Projec
	t Gutenberg™\nProject Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribut
	ion of electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of compu
	ters including obsolete\, old\, middle-aged and new computers. It exists b
	ecause of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from people 
	in all walks of life.\nVolunteers and financial support to provide volunte
	ers with the assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenbe
	rg™’s goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
	 remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001\, the Project Gu
	tenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and pe
	rmanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To learn m
	ore about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how your e
	fforts and donations can help\, see Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation in
	formation page at www.gutenberg.org.\nSection 3. Information about the Pro
	ject Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation\nThe Project Gutenberg Literary
	 Archive Foundation is a non-profit 501(c)(3) educational corporation orga
	nized under the laws of the state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt st
	atus by the Internal Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal ta
	x identification number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenb
	erg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent perm
	itted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.\nThe Foundation’s bu
	siness office is located at 809 North 1500 West\, Salt Lake City\, UT 8411
	6\, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to date contact information
	 can be found at the Foundation’s website and official page at www.guten
	berg.org/contact\nSection 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gu
	tenberg Literary Archive Foundation\nProject Gutenberg™ depends upon and
	 cannot survive without widespread public support and donations to carry o
	ut its mission of increasing the number of public domain and licensed work
	s that can be freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by th
	e widest array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donat
	ions ($1 to $5\,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt 
	status with the IRS.\nThe Foundation is committed to complying with the la
	ws regulating charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the U
	nited States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a consi
	derable effort\, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up with the
	se requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where we have no
	t received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND DONATIONS or determ
	ine the status of compliance for any particular state visit www.gutenberg.
	org/donate.\nWhile we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states 
	where we have not met the solicitation requirements\, we know of no prohib
	ition against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states w
	ho approach us with offers to donate.\nInternational donations are gratefu
	lly accepted\, but we cannot make any statements concerning tax treatment 
	of donations received from outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swam
	p our small staff.\nPlease check the Project Gutenberg web pages for curre
	nt donation methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of o
	ther ways including checks\, online payments and credit card donations. To
	 donate\, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.\nSection 5. General Info
	rmation About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works\nProfessor Michael S. 
	Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg™ concept of a library o
	f electronic works that could be freely shared with anyone. For forty year
	s\, he produced and distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a lo
	ose network of volunteer support.\nProject Gutenberg™ eBooks are often c
	reated from several printed editions\, all of which are confirmed as not p
	rotected by copyright in the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. T
	hus\, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular 
	paper edition.\nMost people start at our website which has the main PG sea
	rch facility: www.gutenberg.org.\nThis website includes information about 
	Project Gutenberg™\, including how to make donations to the Project Gute
	nberg Literary Archive Foundation\, how to help produce our new eBooks\, a
	nd how to subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.\n\n\
	n\n	 \n\n\n\n	URL\n\n\n\n	https://www.gutenberg.org/cache/epub/11214/pg11
	214.html\n\n\n\n	 \n\n\n\n	Some Background for him\n\n\n\n	 \n\n\n\n	 H
	is parents and older siblings were among thousands of free African America
	ns who had left the United States in 1824 and returned in 1826\, attemptin
	g to immigrate to Haiti.\n\n\n\n	Webb's mother\, Louisa Burr\, was a daugh
	ter of Aaron Burr. She and her brother John Pierre Burr\, a prominent act
	ivist in Philadelphia's black community\,were born to a Bengali mother f
	rom Calcutta\, India named Mary Emmons\, who served in Burr's househol
	d as a governess.  After Francis Webb's death\, Louisa remarried and beca
	me Louisa Darius.\n\n\n\n	Webb's father\, Francis Webb\, served in Philade
	lphia as an elder in the First African Presbyterian Church\, a parishioner
	 at the African Episcopal Church of St. Thomas\, a founding member of the
	 Pennsylvania Augustine Education Society formed in 1818\, and secretary o
	f the Haytien Emigration Society organized in 1824. He worked as the Phila
	delphia distribution agent for Freedom's Journal from 1827 to 1829. Whil
	e living in Port au Platt\, Haiti\, from 1824 to 1826\, he served on the 
	Board of Instruction of a joint Episcopal-Presbyterian church school. He d
	ied of unknown causes in 1829\, a year after Frank's birth.\n\n\n\n	 \n\n
	\n\n	 In 1845\, at the age of 17\, Webb married Mary Espartero\, who had
	 been born in New Bedford\, Massachusetts in 1828\, shortly after her moth
	er had escaped from slavery in Virginia. Her father was described as \"a S
	panish gentleman of wealth [who] had made many efforts to purchase the fre
	edom of her mother\". Through her mother's efforts\, Mary was admitted to 
	a school where her education included poetry and dramatic literature\, and
	 developed a talent for performance. As an adult in Philadelphia\, she stu
	died elocution.\n\n\n\n	Mary soon gained renown for her dramatic readings 
	of works by Shakespeare\, Longfellow\, and Philip Sheridan. She attract
	ed the attention of Harriet Beecher Stowe and other prominent literary a
	bolitionists. Stowe acted as her patron\, adapting scenes from her best se
	lling novel Uncle Tom's Cabin expressly for Mary Webb's performance. In 
	late 1855 and 1856\, Mary Webb toured the north-eastern United States\,
	  including a performance of Uncle Tom attended by Longfellow\, who w
	rote\, \"A striking scene\, this Cleopatra with a white wreath in her dark
	 hair\, and a sweet\, musical voice\, reading to a great\, unimpassioned\,
	 immovable Boston audience.\" [NOTE: Can't Stand Boston]\n\n\n\n	\n\n\n\n	
	Engraved drawing of Mary E. Webb\, captioned \"Mrs. Mary E. Webb (a Colour
	ed Native of Philadelphia) Reading Uncle Tom's Cabin\, in the Hall of Staf
	ford-House\"\n\n	Date    2 August 1856\n\n	Source    \n\n	Engraving 
	from The Illustrated London News\, August 2\, 1856\n\n\n\n	Stowe arranged 
	a transatlantic tour for the Webbs\, and provided a letter of introduction
	 and a postscript that Longfellow which said \"...much pleased with Mrs. W
	ebb's reading of his new poem Hiawatha\". The Webbs traveled to England i
	n 1856\, where Mary's dramatic readings garnered further acclaim. The coup
	le received a warm welcome from many British nobles. While in London\, Web
	b asked his friend\, Charles Sumner\, to write an introductory letter for
	 his wife during her reading tour in Liverpool.\n\n\n\n	In 1857\, when Fra
	nk Webb was 29\, the London firm of G. Routledge and Company published h
	is first and only novel\, The Garies and Their Friends. Webb dedicated hi
	s book to supporter Lady Noel Byron\, who had encouraged him\, and Henry
	\, Lord Brougham wrote an introduction. It was published with an addition
	al preface by Stowe.\n\n\n\n	The international tour had taken a severe tol
	l on Mary Webb's health\, and on the advice of physicians who recommended 
	a warmer climate\, the Webbs made an extended visit to Cannes in 1857–
	1858. The Webbs then relocated in 1858 to Kingston\, Jamaica\, where Webb
	's British friends secured him a job with the postal service. However\, Ma
	ry Webb died there on June 17\, 1859 of tuberculosis. After her death\, F
	rank Webb lived in Jamaica for over ten years\, from 1858 to 1869\, and re
	married there before returning to the United States.\n\n\n\n	Webb's second
	 wife was Mary Rosabelle Rodgers (b. 1845)\, the daughter of a Jamaican me
	rchant. They had four children before moving in 1869 to the United States\
	, where they had two more children.\n\n\n\n	From late 1869 through 1870\, 
	Webb lived in Washington\, DC\, where he resumed writing. Webb published s
	everal essays\, poems\, and two novellas for the African American journal
	 The New Era. The weekly had been founded in Washington\, DC and was take
	n over that year by Frederick Douglass\, who published it through 1874.\n
	\n\n\n	While in Washington writing for The New Era in 1869–1870\, Webb
	 lived with his niece\, teacher Sara Iredell\, who had recently married C
	hristian Fleetwood\, recipient of the Medal of Honor for his military serv
	ice during the Civil War. Fleetwood was then a clerk for the Freedmen's B
	ureau\, established during the Reconstruction era after the American Ci
	vil War.\n\n\n\n	Later in 1870\, the Webbs moved to Galveston\, Texas\, w
	hich had developed a vibrant black community after the Civil War. In 1876\
	, Webb served as an alternative delegate to the Republican state conventio
	n.\n\n\n\n	Webb worked in Galveston first as a newspaper editor\, then as 
	a postal clerk\, and finally for thirteen years as principal of the Barnes
	 Institute\, a segregated school for \"colored children\".\n\n\n\n	He d
	ied in Galveston\, Texas in 1894.\n\n\n\n	Webb had six children\, all of w
	hom were from his second marriage. They were:\n\n\n\n	\n		Dr. Frank J. Web
	b Jr. (1865–1901)\, an 1895 graduate of Howard University Medical Scho
	ol\n	\n	\n		Evangeline Webb (1866–1945)\n	\n	\n		Ruth M.A. Webb (1867–
	1930)\n	\n	\n		Clarice Webb (1869–1962)\n	\n	\n		Ethelind Webb (1874–1
	969)\n	\n	\n		Thomas Rodgers Webb (1877–1964)\n	\n\n\n\n	 \n\n\n\n	Work
	s\n\n\n\n	\n		The Garies and Their Friends (novel\, 1857)\n	\n	\n		\"None
	 Spoke a Single Word to Me\" (poem\, The New Era\, 1870)\n	\n	\n		\"Waiti
	ng\" (poem\, 1870)\n	\n	\n		\"International Exhibition\" (editorial\, The
	 New Era\, 1870)\n	\n	\n		\"The Mixed School Question\" (editorial\, The 
	New Era\, 1870)\n	\n	\n		\"An Old Foe with a New Face\" (editorial\, The 
	New Era\, 1870)\n	\n	\n		Two Wolves and a Lamb (novella\, The New Era\, 
	1870)\n	\n	\n		Marvin Hayle (novella\, The New Era\, 1870)\n	\n\n\n\n	 
	\n\n\n\n	NOTE\n\n\n\n	Hoping to perform at Charles Dickens's seasonal the
	atre in Stafford House\, Mary Webb had an interview with the novelist's w
	ife\, Catherine Dickens\, at Gravesend\, Kent in early April 1857. Whi
	le moved by Catherine's description of Webb\, Dickens reacted unfavorably 
	to the idea of assisting the \"poor woman\" further on her reading tour\, 
	stating to the Earl of Carlisle in a letter of 15 April 1857\, \"I mysel
	f for example am the meekest of men\, and in abhorrence of Slavery yield t
	o no human creature—and yet I dont [sic] admit the sequence that I want
	 Uncle Tom (or Aunt Tomasina) to expound King Lear to me. And I believ
	e my case to be the case of thousands.\" Laura Korobkin interprets Dickens
	's dismissal of Webb\, an educated African American woman\, as evidence of
	 racial and social anxiety regarding his own status.\n\n
DTSTART;VALUE=DATE:20250321
RRULE:FREQ=YEARLY;INTERVAL=1
END:VEVENT
END:VCALENDAR
